You are on page 1of 152

First published 1984

This edition first published 1988

O DAVID TAME 1984


to the,seventh angel
to the two olive trees
and to all who will sing the new song

The good is one thing; the sensuously pleasant another. These


Alln'ght~re~erved.No pan of t h r ~book may be reproduced or utilized in any formor by two, differing in their ends, both prompt to action. Blessed are they
any meam, electronic or mechanical, ancfudz?tgphotocopying,recording or by any
information storage and retnevd system, without pennirsion in wnting from the that choose the good; they that choose the sensuously pleasant miss
Publisher the goal.
Both the good and the pleasant present themselves to men. The
British Library Cataloguing in Publication Data wise, having examined both, distinguish the one from the other. The
wise prefer the good to the pleasant; the foolish, driven by fleshly
Tame, David
The secret power of music. - 2nd ed. desires, prefer the pleasant to the good.
1. Music - Psychology
- Katha Upanishad
I. Tide
781'.15 ML3830

ISBN 0-85030-752-X

The Aquanirn Press ispart of the


Thorsons Publishing Group, Welhgborough,Northamptonshire,
NN8 2RQ England
Printed in Great Britain by
Woolnough Bookbinding Limited,
Irthlingborough, Northamptonshire
Contents

A c~nowledgements 11
verture: Music and its Power 13
usic as a power - music, the individual and society - music creates order out of chaos
as in music, so in l$; Music as a Mould for Society - the protest of Confucius;
sound, Music. and the Wisdom of the Ancients - the walls of Jericho destrqed by
the scientific use of sound - music for good and music for evil - the ancients were more
aware than we of the unseen causes behind all outer events - music and moraliy; The
Hidden Side of Music - a personal experience of the author; Primal Vibration -
music as a manrfestation of the O M ; Music and the Twentieth Century; Music and
Materialism - the modern viewpoint on music - Aquarian Age people have not yet
rejected anti-Aquarian Age music - an outline of this book.

1. The Ancient Wisdom: Music in China 33


Music and Morality - music as an energy formula - the beliefs of Confucius; Music
d Spirituality - the stoty of Master Wen of Cheng - the allegory behind the story -
rli.sit from the celestials; The O M in China; Astrology and the Twelve Cosmic
) n a - one Cosmic Tonefor each lpdiacal month; Sound Above and Sound Below
-- audible sound a manifestation of the twelve Cosmic Tones - music and ceremony -
Chinese music transposed in accordance with astrological gcles; The Mysticism of
Music - musical notes as an outpouring of the One Vibration - the subtlety of the
' iiuidual notes - the mystical basis of Oriental monotone instrument.^; Music and
actical Magic - gigantic orchestras to release vast quantities of Cosmic Sound;
usic and the T'ai Chi -the forces of yin and yang in Chinese music; The Concept
the Logos in Chinese Music - Cosmic Sound associated with Cosmic Consciousness
Chinese emperors as incarnations of the Word - the huang chung; O f Times and
{cles; Of Music and Modes - astrology, Cosmic Sound and earthly rtmtr - thr
ertial ynphony - to align earthly music with universal principles; T h e Hulrrrg Ch141g
;IS the Foundation of Civilization - standardiatron of 1~7~~qbtt and mtvrtttrri
rl<~~rrnrcnt
with the One Tone; The Eternal Quest - the prrilr offiw tm~;r.c~tr,~tr~k~lrl!:
8 T H E SECRET P O W E R O F MUSIC CONTENTS 9
the search for p6ection; Rigidity vs. Innovation: The Cwcial Dilemma - the
Consciousness - music is the Iangrri!yr o f languages; Motives For Music - Milk
dangers ofboth s t a p i o n and anarchy - the Chinese middle way; n e Mysticism of
Jager, "movingafter the minds' - tI,r M rrrnas and the Papas deliberately cause a riot -
Music and Numba - note-ratios - the sign$cances of1,2,3, 12, / and 7; Mode
the exalted ideals ofthe classical compttrt; Music Therapy: The Universal Cure? -
Mood - the 'biu!4m band', The Legendary Origins of Chinese Classical Music -
music therapy in histoy - music rhrrt~proday - musicfor the handicapped - 'evny
L f i v j v e legendary monarchs; The Historical ER - Prince Tsai-Yu discovms q w l
illness is a musical problem'; Music and the Stnlcture of Society - music and
temperamm; The Loss of the Logos - decline and falL - disappearance of the
langwge - music and the perception o f rinrr - does tonality encode the industrial world-
'hi& band'; The Use of Sound in Modern China - subject.rfir the no& opera
view? - the creative role of music in thc .Soviet Union di,rpnt~eddialectic materialism;
- anti-Western death-chants.
The Tonal Side of the American Rcvolurion.
2. The Twentieth Century: The 'New Music' 170
72 4. The Ancient Wisdom : Music in India
The Idealism of Pre-Twentieth-Cenmrj Music - the spiritual motives behind the
Intoning the OM - OM and the huang chung: O M - rlibration, the rource +he
music of Liqt - Mo~artand Masonry; The Revolution of Technique - the expan-
Creation - the Trinity in Hinduism - ahata and anahata; Thc Mystical Basis of
sion ofhannony; The Revolution into Materialism - 'hwiontdly'-directed music -
Music and Speech - the Trinity in music - the prima9 ofthe voice - the e~oteric
the 'new music' excludes God and moral purpose - Mussorgsb and his. 'bitter . . .
importance ofchanting; Music and Spirituality -yogi musicians; Name and Form -
language o f truth' - Tchaikovsb, over-emotionalism and de music of d+at; Debus~
names are key-note formulas - bija mantras; Indian Music and its Appreciation -
Points the - or a - Way - the poet of moonlight and of velvet shadows;
Indian and Western music compared - The Raga - the 22 intervals o f the scale -
Impressionism vs. Expressionism; The Serialists - tonality rmounced; Enter: The
over-rigidity VS. anarchy: the Indian solutim - structure of the raga; Music and
Commandos - Charles Ives - his music 'to beplnyedas not nice'; Igor Stravinsky -
Indian Civilization - differences between north and south - the entrance of Western-
The Rite of Spring - Ye shall know them 15 theirjuits; Ballet Michanique and
sole 'Pop'.
After - Edgar Varbe - Deserts and P o h e E l e c t r ~ n i ~ u-eSilver Apples of the
Moon - Bach is 'switched on'; Music Becomes Caged - John Cage: 'a ping
j. The Twentieth Century: Jazz and the Blues - Their Nature
pal$ed ly a thud' - indetminary in music - antimuszc and perverted Z m - 187
and Origin
LaMonte Young, David Tudor, Steve Reich - anti-theatre and anti-dance; A Visitor
Tonal Anarchisrs Through thc Ages - the decline of Greece; Roots - voodoo and the
From Sirius Stockhausen; The B.F. Skinner Show, or Music to Get Under Your
slave trade - early ragtime and blues - Buddy Bolden - the terms yax' and 'rock' 'n'
L

Skin - rock 'n' roll hot pants; Some Further Advances in the Art - the Water
roll' rgeweed to the Sex act; Resistance - media reactions - Cyril Scott on jan; 'My
Whistle; Computer Music- GIGO - uocoding: the uoice of 'Luciano Jagtrl;
Daddy Rocks M e With One Steady Roll' (- The Lyrical Content of the Blues -)
Courageously Exploring Backwards; Assessing the Avant-Garde; What is thc
lyrics of hard sex - s w l i g veiled Ly double-meanings; Jazz 'Arrives' - from
Purpose of Music? - Darwzni sugeestion - music aciording to M I T - .Ytephn
whwehouse to speateag - the Big Band; The Effects of the Music; Offsprings of
Halpm: 'reIuxing' into the New Age - Truth, Beau9 4 Goodness: separating the the Jazz Rhythm; The Modern Era - tbe intellecmliation o f j a x - a pophetic
three Sisters - eternal standards a d the double-minded man; Roll Over Beethoven;
starementfim the 1940s - About Rock.
Roll Over Man - composing compuiers - mechanical music teachws; Emptv Scan -
. , .
the public vote with their fief; Twentieth-Century Traditionalists - Vaughan
~

205
6. Assessment: The Physics of the OM
William - Holst.
OM and the Unity of Crcation Myths; 'And God Said . . .'-the meatit~tpowerof
sound allegorically desnibed in Gtne.ri.r - the seven Tones of Creation; Egyptian
3. Assessment: Music. Man and Society 136
Genesis - Creation 5 thought and sound - EgVptian bija mantras - the mysticism of
Music and the physical Body - music aflects the brain, the blood-pressure, the heart-
the voice; The Word Made Flesh - the Incarnation; Genesis Now; The Work of
rate and the muscles - music as a sedatizr or stimulant - musicogenL epilepg - the
Ernst Chladni and Hans Jenny - Chladniplates - the tonoscope; The Song of the
dangws ofloud music - the physiological effects of different tmrpos; Music and Plants:
Atom - matter = enerp = oibration; The Vocal Range of the One Singcr -
Some Preliminary Findings - Bach accelerates plant grobgth - death rock - electromagnetism and wave-Ffqumcy; The Mysticism of Colour - the colour octave;
objectively good and oeectively bad music - music changesplants' chromosomes;Music.
The Imminence of the Word - the OM in Tibetan music; Harmonic Ratios and
Mind and Emotion - all experiences, including music, affect man; character; Music
Proportions in Nature - universal harmonics in pbsics, chemisty and biology;
as an Encoder; Music as a Communicator and Multiplier of Statcs of
Harmonic Principles in the Natural Psycho1ogj of Man - Ur-song; Towards a
Overture :
Music and its Power
Our subject is not music as an abstract art, but music as a force
which affects aU. who hear it. Music - not as entertainment only, but
s a literal power.
Whenever we are within audible range of music, its influence is
laying upon us constantly - speeding or slowing, regularizing or
~rregularizingour heartbeat; relaxing or jarring the nerves; affecting
the blood pressure, the digestion and the rate of respiration. Its
effect upon the emotions and desires of man is believed t o be vast,
and the extent of its influence over even the purely intellectual,
mental processes is only just beginning to be suspected by
researchers.
Moreover, to affect the character of the individual is to alter that
basic atom or unit - the person - from which all of society is con-
structed. In other words, music may also play a far more important
role in determining the character and direction of civilization than
most people have until now been willing to believe. The powers of
music are multi-faceted, sometimes uncannily potent, and by no
means, as yet, entirely understood. They can be used or misused.
'Ve forsake the conscious, constructive use of these powers t o our
wn loss. W e ignore these powers at our peril.
Though little thought is given today as to the meaning or
lllnction of music within society, the civilizations of former times
were usually very conscious of music's power. This was especially
true of the pre-Christian cr.. In fact, the further back in time we
look, the more people are found to have been aware of the inherent
owers locked within the heart of all music and all sound.
It has been easy for modern man, born and raised within a
~ciety permeated with the philosophy of materialism and
tductionism, to fall into the trap of regarding music to be a non-
jsential and even peripheral aspect of human life. And yet such a
14 MUSIC AND ITS POWER 1>
THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC
viewpoint would have been regarded by the philosophers of anti- 111cancients believed that music could affect man and civilization.
quity to be not only irrational, but also, ultimately, suicidal. For from 'I'llc ancicnts were convinced that music could become internalized
ancient China to Egypt, from India t6 the golden age of Greece we I,y the individual; the music influencing, as it were. the rhythm of
find the same: the belief that there is something immensely funda- 111rn'sthoughts, rhe melody of man's emotions, and the harmony of
mental about music; something which, they believed, gave it the his bodily health and manner of movement. In all these ways, music
power to sublimely evolve or to utterly degrade the individual was thought t o determine the manner of our thoughts and actions.
psyche - and thereby t o make or break entire civilizations. '4s in music, so in life - this one timeless axiom contains the
Something immensely fundamental about music ... central concept upon which entire civilizations once founded almost
It was exactly this that Pythagoras was driving a t in his research (.very aspect of their society. And upon thls same seed concept
through which he discovered that all of music could be reduced to generations of kings, ~ r i e s t sand philosophers based the whole work
numbers and mathematical ratios - and that the entire universe and o f the long span of their lives.
all phenomena therein could also be explained in these same terms of As in music, so in life,
the same particular numbers and mathematical ratios which were An axiom which declares that consciousness and all of civilization
found in music. is shaped and moulded according to the existing style or styles of
Pythagoras' understanding of music was far more than a merely ~~lusic. A shattering concept indeed! When one ponders upon its
materialistic, academic one, and such an understanding is lamentably i l ~ ~ ~ l i c a d o that
n s : music magnetizes society into conformity with
rare today. Yet we discover something of this timeless flame of ilsclf ...
ageless wisdom preserved in that small minority of musicians who Could it actually be true that music tends to mould us, in our
still today have combined academic knowledge and the practical ~ h o u ~ handt s our behaviour patterns, into conformity with its own
experience of music with a genuine and earnest inner spiritual itlnate patterns of rhythm, melody, morality and mood?
development. Irllmediately, one's mind turns towards specific examples: styles of
Few would disagree that such a person is the much-beloved l~rusicof which we know, and the society or sub-culture which is to
musical personality, Yehudi Menuhin. And we find a deep and truly I)c found around them. What of the music of today? The society of
Pythagorean flash of insight in the opening sentences of his book, t ~ ) d a y Clearly
? the above axiom, should it prove to be valid, is one
'
Theme and Variations. Here, this great contemporary violinist has Ir;iught with significance for modern civilization.
expressed the inner meaning of the tonal arts in terms so pointedly
true, and yet so all-embracing in their truth, that they are food for a MUSIC AS A MOULD FOR SOCIETY
great deal of careful thought: Whenever, at any time during the course of his life, modern man has
lislcned to music, has he really known the meaning and the implica-
Music creates order out of chaos; for rhythm imposes unanimity lions of what he was doing? Certainly not according to the ancient
upon the divergent, melody imposes continuity upon the disjoin- T~l~ilosophers. W e may take ancient China for example:
ted, and harmony imposes compatibility upon the incongruous. Each year, in the second month, Emperor Shun could be found
Thus a confusion surrenders to order and noise t o music, and as journeying eastward in order t o check upon his kingdom, and to
we through music attain that greater universal order which rests cnsure that everything was in order throughout the vast land. Yet he
upon fundamental relationships of geometrical and mathematical did not d o so by auditing the account books of the different regions.
proportion, direction is supplied to mere repetitious time, power Neither by observing the state of life of the populace, or by receiv-
to the multiplication of elements, and purpose to random associa- ing petitions from them. Nor by interviewing the regional officials
tion. it1 authority. No, by none of these methods. For in ancient China
thcre was considered to be a much more revealing, accurate and
W e co~lldstop right there. W e almost need to go no further. These scientific method of checking on the state of the nation. According
words of Yehudi Menuhin render a core explanation of the entire I O the ancient Chinese text, .Shu King, the Emperor Shun went
ancient-world conception of the power of music; of why and how .
:~lloiitthrough the different territories and . .tested the exact pitches o f
//~i-hnotes of music.
16 T H E SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC AND ITS POWER 17
Back in his palace, if the Emperor wished to monitor the would alter, and probably not for the better. Unfortunately we
efficiency of his central government, what did he do? Get expert
I not know today entirely how the episode ended, and what effect
advice on policy making? Review the economy, or the state of
r foreign music did have on the kingdom. But what we d o know
popular opinion? I llat despite the protestations of the legendary moral philosopher.
The Emperor was not ignorant of any of the above methods, and
I- Huan did receive the females, and no court was held for three
at times may have taken recourse to all of them. But most important ~ y swhile the Emperor and his government availed themselves of
of all, he believed, was t o listen to, and check, the five notes of the
c sight and sound of the exotic foreign performers. S o much for
ancient Chinese musical scale. He had the eight kinds of Chinese
c government's sense of responsibility to the kingdom! But Con-
musical instruments brought before him and played by musicians.
c , i u s ? The famous philosopher was absolutely uncompromising on
Then he listened t o the local folk songs, and also to the tunes which
issue. The same level of importance which politicians today
were sung in the court itself, checking that all this music was in
o d d attach to militay or economic matters, Confucius attached to
perfect correspondence with the five tones.
1. issue of the kingdom's music. H e was certain and firm in his
Primitive superstition? Certainly Emperor Shun did ,not believe
oral convictions, and was prepared to back them up to the hilt.
so. According to the philosophy of the ancient Chinese, music was clusing to listen to the music, he stormed out of the court in protest.
the basis of evevthiwg. In particular they believed that all civiliza-
I lr had heard the alien music, and he had seen the writing on the
tions are shaped and moulded according to the kind of music perfor-
w;~ll.H e knew.
med within them. Was a civilization's music wistful, romantic? And just what was it that he knew? Along with all of the other
Then the people themselves would be romantic. Was it strong and
l.cit philosophers of his land, Confucius believed there t o be a
military? Then the nation's neighbours had better beware. Further-
iddm significance to music which made it one of the most impor-
more, a civilization remained stable and unchanged as long as its
1111 things in life, possessing potentially tremendous power for good
music remain unchanged. But to change the style of music which
01.cvil. And we discover the same basic beliefs regarding music in
people listened to would inevitably lead to a change in the very way
ril.l~lall~ every advanced civilization of antiquity It was the same in
of life itself.
Mesopotamia. The same again in cultures as far apart as India and
If Emperor, Shun, on his travels about the kingdom, had
t irrcce. These various peoples of the past were in agreement in their
discovered that the instruments of the different territories were all
uirwpoints upon music to a most striking degree. Music was not
differently tuned from each other, then he would have considered it
~rrnccivrdby any of them, as it is conceived today, as being merely
a foregone conclusion that the territories themselves would begin to
,111 intangible art form of little practical significance.
(if they did not already) differ from each other. They might even
Rather. they affirmed music t o be a tangible force which could be
lose their unity and begin to squabble among themselves unless the
tuning was at once corrected and made uniform from one place to
lied in order to create change, for better or worse, within the
I llrracter of individual man; and, what was more important, within
another. And if the music he heard performed in the villages had
rociety as a whole. In fan, though today we still can hear people
begun to become vulgar and immoral, then the Emperor would have
\,waking of the 'magic of music', the ancients used the phrase far
expected immorality itself to sweep the nation unless something was
Illore literally, for music was men believed by them to be capable of
done to correct the music.
c.ffeaing change upon matter itself.
A graphic account has come down to us from the time of Con-
fucius which shows the very real and practical importance the wise SOUND, MUSIC AND THE WISDOM OF THE
men of China placed upon music. A gift of femalc musicians was ANCIENTS
sent by the people of Ts'e to the kingdom of Loo. Confucius himself
A famous example of tonal magic is the story of Joshua's destruction
protested to Ke Huan, the ruler of Loo, that these foreign musicians
of'the walls of Jericho. According t o the biblical account,' Jericho. a
should not be received, lest their alien, and possibly sensual, music
city rampant with evil, had closed its gates and prcpared to with-
influenced the native musicians of the kingdom. Confucius believed
r~:mdthe seige of righteous Joshua and his force. But when Joshua
that if the music of the kingdom was altered, then the society itself
Il.~darrived near to the city he met a strange man, who called
18 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC AND ITS POWER

~',,'~!
i 11
himself the captain of the hosts of the Lord, and who told Joshua
how to destroy the mighty walls of Jericho through the use of sound
produced in sequences of seven. Following the instructions, Joshua's
I,:II~IT. Aristotle, for one, wrote that :

8
... emotions of any kind are produced by melody and rhythm;
legions marched around the city, headed by seven priests blowing by music a man becomes accustomed t o feeling the right
I l~rrefore
seven trumpets of rams' horns. The rest of his men Joshua cornman-
Il i ~ ~ , ~ ~ ! ded to remain absolutely silent, uttering not a word. Once. they
I-l~~otions; music has thus power t o form character, and the
v;~t.iouskinds of music based on the various modes, may be
Ill1 1 went around the city. And again on the next day. And the same for tlistinguished by their effects on character - one, for example,
a total of seven days. But on thc seventh day they circled the city
11 .seven times, and on this occasion Joshua told his people to shout
working in the direction of melancholy, another of effeminacy;
11nc encouraging abandonment, another self-control, another

'11 l along with the sound of the trumpets. This they did - and the walls
of Jericho, according to the account, fell down flat, the city then
being stormed and taken.
Of course, as our modern materially-minded friends can tell us,
enthusiasm, and so on through the s e r i e ~ . ~

Ill ,I 11 Plato and Aristotle discuss the moral effects of music in several
I 11 I heir major works.
the story must be only superstition; a mere legend. Music and morality. Is there a connection in reality? Certainly
illi - Except that the ruins of ancient Jericho have been unearthed, I I I idea ~ that music exerts an influence - and a ~ o w e r f uone l - over
'l and it has been found that the walls apparently did at some stage 1111.character of m m persisted on a widespread scale beyond the
I
1'
I collapse, falling outward, I 1r11ruf Christ, through the Middle Ages and the Renaissance, and
But still, the modern scholar tells us, there must obviously be I I ~ I O the last century. The concept that music affects character was
some perfectly natural explanation.

1
111c onr great inspiring force behind the creative lives of the great
- Yes, WC reply, a natural explanation. Certainly it must have a I.~\\icdl and romantic composers. I t is clear from what we know of
-
been natural. And yet in order to fully understand the account, 1 11r.ircharacters that each of them, motivated by an earnest desire to
perhaps we need to wait a little longer, for science to progress a little *.c .rrfr ;md spiritualize humanity, saw their music as one of the most
I
..
further in the field of acoustics . . I ~ t , w ~ . rmeans f ~ ~ l posrihle of influencing the consciousness and direc-
While the people of ancient times certainly did believe that sound I I I , I I of the human race. Wars and politicians come and go, but
,'I,'l/ was capable of such spectacular feats, they were nevertheless equally 11illsicabides indefinitely, never failing t o affect the minds and hearts
concerned with the more usual effects of sound and music - upon 1 1 1 ,111 who hear it.
, I ' l the human psyche and upon society. If a civilization's music was in As Andrew Fletcher, the writer and orator, stated in the Scottish

11 1,l the hands of the evil or ignorant, the ancients believcd, it could lead
the civilization only to an inevitable doom. But in the hands of the
illumined, music was a tool of beauty and power which could lead
I ' ~rliamentof 1704: 'I knew a very wise man who believed that if a
111.lewere permitted to make all the ballads, he need not care who

ll' i 1
. , l ~ r IIIICI make the laws of a nation'.
the way for an entire race into a golden age of peace, prosperity and It can easily be seen, then. that the subject of music and its
brotherhood. \ M !-a\il~le psychological and societary influences is anything but an
I #
T o the major civilizations of antiquity, intelligenth-organized ~lr\cr,ice,theoretical one. If music can be used t o exert
sound constituted the highest of all the arts. And more, for they also l~iil~~rnces of tither a negative or a beneficial n a m e over us, then we
believed music - the intelligent production of sound through musical I I . I ~ I better know about it! What damage might certain kinds of
I! ,
~ : ' 1 ~ 1
l, instruments and the vocal cords - t o be the most important of the ~llliaichave already imposed upon our without our
ill sciences, the most powerful path of religious enlightenment, and the I r.~liringit? What opportunities might there be for us to take the

1; very basis of stable, harmonious government. More than anything


else, however, the great thinkers of antiquity emphasized the
I I I T C C ~ kind of music an; use it from now onwards in order to
11 r clrratc our own mental and spiritual evolution? Clearly, these

1
l;
powerful effect of music upon the character of man. Since music c~~~c*\tions are of importance to cach and every one of us. Virtually
seemed to hold such sway in determining the morality of people, it 1 i ~ r ~ h listens o d ~ t o music in one form or another. When we speak
1I was a subject which none of the great moral philosophers could I #I 'r11,ln' or of 'the listener' in the pages ahead - that also means you
l .'l
,111 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC 21
MUSIC AND ITS POWER
.rrrtl I I I C ! Fcw could claim t o be free from any possible influence
,II.;I ;IS the sublime vision seemed about to wane, therc began the
wllic11 music may exert, directly or indirectly. c ~rncerto's unique harpsichord solo. Again I was whisked quite
... Perhaps none could, if we are to accept the ancients' Iwyond myself, and saw the music in a way never perceived before.
viewpoint. For in addition t o music's more direct effects upon man 'I'llc long, fugal arpeggios trilled through thc air like visiblc, emanat-
- the psychological effects of its audible melodies and rhythms - I I I waves
~ of divine essence, one behind the other, filling all the hall
therc was also t o be taken into account music's second, yet more .111clpassing beyond its walls into the city. I cannot say that I saw
extensive and more potent, power. A mystic power this, a force 1 1 1 music-wave's,
~ for the process did not involvc my cycs; yct ncvcr-
inaudible and invisible, and a force only understandable in terms of I l~i~less I somehow did see them. I saw the music!
the ancient philosophy and its distinctly non-materialist basis. As the other instruments came in once morc with indcscribablc
I~,veliness,this impression of emanating waves of a tangible goodness
THE HIDDEN SIDE OF MUSIC 1,ccarne reinforced still further. It felt as though the music possessed
One evening in London I attended a concert of Bach's Branden- ;I definite and very real energy, and that this was radiating out
burg Concertos. Seating myself, I exchanged some words with my Iwyond the hall in all directions. M y consciousness scemed to
companion, and took pleasure in glancing around at the marvellous cancompass the entire city. For a few moments I felt as though I
Royal Festival Hall as it began to fill up. I t was only as the players were looking down from a viewpoint which revealed t o me the
came out and took their bow, and as they tuned up, that I dimly cantire urban spread; and not only the visible, physical city, but also
began to feel it. Something uey dzflerent and unique was lurking llir underlying, causative forces which shaped and moulded it. The
about. It could not be seen or heard, but I could feel its presence, r~nderstanding came that this music, as it radiated forth, was
and it seemed to be approaching! somehow acting as a sustaining, invigorating force for the whole
And then, as the players prepared to begin and as the audience slirrounding area.
hushed, this unknown something saturated the air with a crackling, As the awareness of my body returned, sitting in its seat in the
pregnant potential of which none other seemed to be aware. lioyal Festival Hall, the impression was left with me that the
Then, literailyfrom the f i s t note, the timeless moment was upon concert was in some way a glowing light amid a great, chaotic sea
me. Yet I was already far beyond the ability to reflect consciously 11f darkness. The darkness threatened to encroach upon the flame
upon it, for the experience was totally engulfing and all- nd extinguish it forever. I shall never forget this sensation: one not
encompassing. It left no scope whatever for any other mental lf fear, but of the deepest, gravest concern; of the vast importance
activity other than to be the perceptions to which my mind now ~f the music which I was hearing, of the deepest gratitude for the
scemed to have been opened. lpportunity of experiencing it, and that it should at all costs be pre-
M y body seemed to come alive with light; my heart was a fire erved for the humanity of the future.
which flared forth to consume the dross of my soul. My perceptions Mystical experiences have been a subject of debate for centuries
were opened as though they had always before been firmly closed. among philosophers. Up to the present day no general consensus of
Never had I hcard music in that way! What previously I had often opinion has been arrived at as to the reality of such experiences. Are
listened to as abstract sounds were now Sound - a tangible, living they less real, equally real, or more real than our usual experience of
filigree lattice-work of mathematical precision which I could almost everyday life? Each must judge for himself. But it is interesting that
reach out and touch, and which I could virtually see as it flowed visionary and mystical experiences are known to have provided the
from the leading violin. Every note hung suspended in the air, initial inspiration behind many of the world's greatest inventions
timeless and immaculate beyond all powers of verbal description. and scientific breakthroughs; even those of such giants of the mind
M y body froze into a coma-like rigidity as I hung my consciousncss as Albert Einstein and Nikola Tesla.
upon each next chord. For several long minutes I lost all awareness It can be noticed from others' accounts of such experiences that
of myself. The sheer beauty of it all was quite indescribable. From unless we are of the stature of a Ramakrishna or a St John of thc
the first bar, silent tears ran from my staring, unblinking cyes. Zross, they can come upon one when one least expects it -and then
The Fifth Brandenburg Concerto had opened the evening, and hey are gone, seemingly impossible to recapture or call back. Ficklc
l Ill
22 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC AND ITS POWER 23
and fey, as though they have minds of their own; for our own IIIC substances and forms. According to the combination of Cosmic
imperfections d o not enable us to embody such experiences on a per- 'I'ones pres ent within any given area of space, so was the nature of
manent basis. O r as the mystic would word it: it is the vision of 1 1 1c substance within that space determined.
transcendent reality which is permanent and cternal, and we who And thu1s we find ourselves throwing light upon the widely-held
insist upon being fickle and fey in our relationship to the Supreme. I~rlirfthat all matter is composed of one basic substance or energy.
Christians may be correct in speaking of divine grace. Those who 11ccording to the great thinkers of old, this energy was Vibration. In
are searching for truth seem frequently to be granted a kind of nod ern times, the physical sciences are now arriving back at this
spiritual 'honeymoon' period. All kinds of experiences and revela- original point of departure. Once again, science is beginning to
tions come to them in the early days of their quest, and at the time it suspect that matter is all composed of one fundamental something,
is as though All Truth were already theirs. But then the honeymoon .ind that the frequencies o r rhythms of this something determine the
is over, and one comes to realize that one has been granted a vision .;pccific nature of each object and atom.
of the goal, as though as a goad to move towards it. For a few The universal vibratory energies were called by the ancient E g p -
months or a year the veil was drawn back for one, but only as a inns the Word or Words of their gods; to the Pythagoreans of
temporary act of grace, bestowed by destiny. And now it is one's ( ireecc they were the Music of the Spheres ; and the ancient Chinese
duty to reclaim that vision and that knowledge through one's own knew them to be the celestial energies of perfect harmony. The
unaided effort. Truth has temporarily been brought t o us, but only Cosmic Tones, as differentiations of the OM, were the most
in order that we might then be encouraged to find our own way I>owerfulforce in the universe according to the ancients, for these
along the long and difficult path t o its permanent abode. 'I'ones were the universe - the very source of the Creation itself.
In retrospect, I now see that my experience of that evening was And herein lay the vast significance of all audible, earthly sounds,
one of the key starting points which eventually led to the develop- such as are by the performing of music or the uttering of
ment of this book. Only later did I discover how closely the sl)eech. For audible sound was believed to b e a 'reflection', within
occurrence of that evening tied in t o the ancients' conception of' 11ic world of matter, of the Cosmic Tones. Audible sound itself,
music and its innate power. which is taken so much for g a n t e d today, was in those days
tllought to contain within itself something of the enormous
PRIMAL VIBRATION (:restive, Preservative and Destructive force of the Cosmic Tones
In ancient times sound itself, the very basis of all music, was thought ~l~emselves. The very phenomenon of sound was regarded with
to be intimately related in some way to non-physical and sacred great reverence. H e who knew how to could release sacred energies
dimensions or planes of existence. W h y was this? Because audible ~lirough the use of audible sound, and thereby wield a mighty
sound was considered to be but a n earthly reflection of a vibratory p)wer. And, in fact, spicific knowledge was not nrcessarily
activity taking place beyond the physical world. This vibration was ~.rquired,for something of the mighty energies of the Primal Vibra-
more fundamental, and nearer t o the heart of the meaning of things, lion was believed to be released whenever and whercvcr audible
than any audible sound. Inaudible to human ear. this Cosmic Vibra- sound was produced. According to the nature of the audible sound,
tion was the origin and basis of all the matter and energy in the so would its hidden effect be determined.
universe. Hence, the role of music within civilization could not have been
In its purest, least differentiated form, this Cosmic Sound was considered more vitally important. In the long run, the power of
known to the Hindus as OM. Yet just as pure white light diffe- sound as a force which could be used for good or evil was con-
rentiates into the colours of the rambow, so this Primal Vibration idered to be unsurpassed. And as a specific and concentrated form
was belicvcd to differentiate into a number of more greatly defined ,f sound production, music was of ultimate imporvancc, deriving
superphysical vibrations. These different frequcncies or Cosmic ts energy from Above for the working of change in the world
Toncs were thought to be present in differing combinations \>rlow.
throughout the universe. Not only were they present within all sub- As Julius Portnoy, the musicologist, puts it, the common belief
stances and forms, in differing vibratory combinations, but they w e y e ~l~rt,nghout the world in many past epochs of history was, 'rhat
1'1 I R SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC AND ITS POWER 27
1 I I ,1111 111l.l OS nausea or of headaches may be caused by such
;III~.(.s
.I ~ ~ o t i oquite
n alien (and which would possibly have seemed not a
I I I I I ~ I SIl('i~~g
crnitted from items of machinery at a distance. Similar I I I ~ l distasteful)
c to the audiences of thc nineteenth century.
t . t t c . , 1s 11pon human beings and animals appear to be caused by the
Yn - that amazing paradox! Never was music so easily avail-
..rtl~cotiicvibrations which precede earthquakes, coming even many
.~l)lr, so diverse, so continuously pumped through the city streets and
11o111.s before the 'quake itself. Rhythm too can be all too real a force.
.t~rossthe airwaves - yet never has theorization or real. practical
I\/l i1it;u-y experience has taught from centuries past that when troops
1~1,owled~e regarding music's nature and its effects been at a lower
n~archingin unison need to cross a bridge, the commanding officer
t.hl,. Acoustical researchers r ride themselves, it is true. in showing
should give the order for them to break step, for the effect of the
t ( T rheir graphs and sine-wave displays, but these tell us no more
marching " ri'. lef, ri', lef' " rhythm has more than once led to the
I~outthe real nature of music than a man's age and personal details
collapse of such constructions (and casualties even before the enemy
(.l1 us about his character and outlook on life. Is it not time t o at
are engaged !).
cast stop and collect our thoughts for a moment? But no, there is no
And does music emanate other, superphysical, powers? This is
one of the prime questions which we must attempt to answer.
-
ime! Let those who wish t o theorize d o so we are too busy: there
c so much music t o listen to! A few seconds spent tuning a radio
Though modern opinion would answer with an unhesitating 'no',
,rings to our ears the music of many different nations and cultures
we would be unwise to accept this answer before examining the
( h e radio itself being bought at a price which even a schoolchild can
validity of the modcrn viewpoint itself. In this respect, it is possible
afford). Then, incidental music plays almost continuously in the
to point to an enormous (and ~otentiallydangerous) ~ a r a d o x that :
background during a good proportion of cinematic and television
11 despite the general lack of conccrn about the real nature and effect
, productions. During television advertisements the sound-track is
of music, this latter half of the twentieth century has witnessed a
'i:l huge explosion and proliferation in the availability and variety of
utilized with microscopic care and intensity in order to extract every
last penny-worth of effect out of the few seconds of time paid to the
l tonal art. There are vastly more musical styles for the listener to television company by the advertiser.
choose from today than at any other time in history. Recordings,
"l l1 In fact, the average Western man often 'hears' (if the word can
and even live performances, are available of types of music as wide-

I : /j
be used) more music during the watching of television than he hcars
ranging as that of Mozart and of thegamelan of Bali; as that of the
on its own and for its own sake. W e seldom realize just
' ' electronic experimentalists and of Frank Sinatra; the Indian rdga
to what extent music has become a part of our lives. Surveys have
l, and punk rock.
l 1 shown that the average American teenager listens to no less than
Musically, then, the twentieth century is notable for its stagger-
,I
,'
[l ,'l ing variety of available sounds. But more: an equally unique
three or four hours of rock music each day. There are few in the
l modcrn world who do not hear a number of hours of music each
twentieth-century development is the ease with whicch thc sollnds of
' " l ~
,; 1; # ,
l music can now be acquired. L a us not forget: a ceritury ago it was
only possible t o experience a Beethoven symphony w11t.n dozens of
day. Most of it is not truly 'heard' at all; yet even background music
to which our conscious minds are oblivious affects our heart-rate and
emotions just the same. (A chilling thought: an entire two-hour
i l l ,' trained musicians werc gathered together to rehearsc and perform it
,, feature fiim, using incidental music extensively throughout, can pass
1 live. A constraint we can hardly conceive of today, when that same
m
without our consciously noting the presence of a single note. And as
concert can be heard from cassette or radio, even if we choose to
l llil,!, find ourselves on a trans-globe expedition across the poles.
it happens, thc screen's background music is almost always of a
basically jazz nature.)
,! !l, l,il Practically the same aural experience as a live conccrt is now avail- For sure, we can only conclude that music is a most important
I able at the flick of a switch. True, somehow nothing will ever quite
j j,' ' ( 1 sociological But again, w e must ask ourselves: prc-

,
i l
ill
replace the live performance, but hi-fi and Dolby video-cassettes can
come very close. And today, should we choose to listen to
cisely, and scientificdy, what b music? What is it, apart from ;L
collection of organized sounds! That is, what is its function in
I ,l1/ Beethoven's Ninth, we can pick between conductor X's 1978 society? What tr its effect upon the mind and characrcr of man?
performance or conductor Y's classic 1914 recording. W e can even
Does anybody know?
keep it repeating in the background as we g o about our daily work
In search of answers, we peruse the literature of our rnodcrn
.!X THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC AND ITS POWER 29

l world. And we discover that there have been twentieth-century IIIC~ 11.111icalbrain. Putting it this bluntly, the materialist philosophy
investigations into the nature and effect of music. The problem has 111 nlusic seems hardly sufficient. Yet the fact rcmains that the
been approached from several different viewpoints - philosophical, III I jority of contemporary musicians themselves do, ultimately,
sociological, psychological and acoustical/physical. Howcver, these 1 l ,l~(civeof music in this way - as 'sound' (whatever rhar is .) ..
studies have been surprisingly limited in number. And even more w l ~ i ch entertains and gives pleasure to the brain of Homo sapienr.
surprising is how narrow in scope they have been. Moreover, 'I'hc result of this materialist viewpoint upon the music of today?
whatever limited answers they have come up with can hardly be \t ~nultitudeof musical forms - but virtualy all of them the music
said to be known to the average performer of music or his audience, ,,I. ;it best, materialistic humanism. A century in which, to a large
but have been contained within a narrow circle of specialized tlr.!;rcc, music has lost its way (for what direction can there possibly
academics. Altogether, modern knowledge or theory about thc I)(. to take when nothing in the universe possesses any ultimate
nature of music is not very inspired or rllumining. In short, it would ~ ~ ~ c x nor i npurpose
g in any case?).
be nearer to the truth to say that any thought or significant . ..
And yet .
investigation into the nature and effect of music is, in modern times, Izor perhaps two decades now there has occurred the beginning
conspicuous by its absence. ;L newTawareness abroad in the world. Not only in music, but in
;my areas of life, among a certain minority of people there is t o be
MUSIC ANDMATERIALISM und a resurgence of committed interest in matters of the spirit.
If there be any modern conception of the nature of music, what can 1ung and not so young people are frequently t o be found rejecting
we say to dcscribe it? Only that the tonal arts are thought to be c. materialist world-view outright. They seek instead to embrace a
based upon the intelligent generation of air vibrations, thcse air ystical outlook, and tend to do so with unswerving dedication.
vibrations somehow serving to communicate various subjective )me speak of the new age of Aquarius, in which, it is said, religion
moods or experiences. But, ifwe look deeper, we realz~erhat a s o c i e ~ ' ~ W ill become more scientific in the best sense, and science more
vety conception qf the nature of mmic is itrev conditioned b~ the entire I I' ligious. Whatever its cause, that there is a new movement among

general philosophical viewpoint upon whzch that sociery is based. This is '31) me towards altruism, hope, brotherhood and an interest in self-

most important, for it calls into question from the outset the ( ' V olution is unmistakable.

l twentieth-century conception of what music IS and what it does. Yet what I believe will become dear in the pages ahead is that,
' I
8 1 1 1 11, The modern notion (or lack of a notion) of thc phenomenon of
music is, in short, the inevitable result of thc current materialist-
r alI our rejection of the philosophy of materialism, we have never-
cless failed to reject the ?nusic of materialism. Almost every form of
reductionist world-view. In this world-view, music is inevitably rcntieth-century music IS utterly devoid of genuine regenerative
described in terms of its most tangible, measurable aspect: that it iritual value. The ancients may well have been correct in the belief
consists of air vibrations. Also. according to this world-view, human at music patterns affect llfe patterns; and if so, then for a grass-
beings themselves - the very performers of, and listen ers to, mtlsic - ots movement back towards spirituality to allow itself to continue
are merely biological machines, evolved by luck. possessing no be subjected to the music of individuals who are of an entirely
ultimate purpose for existencr, and whose thoughts and emc)tions fferent frame of mind makes no logical sense. The minds of these
are nothing but biochemical processes automatically produced as rformers are gross and coarse. T o follow them, whilst aspiring
conditioncd reflexes to the world around them. To the materialist it )ward, makes no more sensc than to attempt t o climb a mountain
naturally follows, therefore, that people only perform or listcn to rolling downhill.
music in the first place because past experienccs have 'programmed' The non-materialist world-view demands a non-materialist
thcm to do so. At his most charitable the materialist might ~ilosophyof music. And from such a philosophy, in its own good
grudgingly concede that these past experiences consisted of ne, there will be born inevitably a new music of the spirit.
'pleasure-feelings'; that the first movement of Beethoven's Ninth The alternative is too horrible to contemplate. From down thc
Symphony. in hitting this and that vibrational frequency, somehow tcades there comes a warning to us on the dangers of wrong types
releases certain stimulative chemicals into the listmer's bio- music - from none other than Henry David Thoreau. who wrote
30 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC AND ITS POWER 31

from his log cabin: ( )M',analyses what evidence there is in support of the idea that
I I I ~ I ~ C exerts an influence, not only upon life, but even upon
Even music can be intoxicating. Such apparently slight causes ~o.lnin~ate matter. Can all things be destroyed, changed, created or
destroyed Greece and Rome, and will destroy England and I 1. created by the power of sound?

America. .['hc above, then, is a general orrtline of this book: and we begin
w i r h the teachings of the sages of old. It is not that it is necessary
The modern man's reaction to Thoreau's warning is likely to be one I ~ I I . u s to accept absolutely every single notion of the ancients on the
of, 'Oh, but that's taking it a bit too far, isn't it?' Yet it isprecisely, ~.~ll,jcctof music as'objective fact; to keep an open mind will sufficc.
absolutely at this point that twentieth-century man departs from the in approaching the subject of the tonal myaicism of ancient
vieupoint held by virtually every thinking person from ancient times right I lnlcs we must also d o so in humility. After all, can we possibly afford
up to the nineteenth century. . . 1 0 he haughty towards the great spiritual musicians of the past,

Possibly the greatest weakness of the modern materiahstic living as wc do in an age which has virtually no philosophy of music
outlook upon the world is its inability to perceive the causes behind #,I. its own; and an age which has allowed its own music to
effects. If anywhere, it is here that the philosophers of ancient tlrgenerate to the point of finding acceptable that whch it has,
China, India, Egypt and Greece deserve our fullest respect, since it 111t.ludinglyrics such as:
could be said that they specialid in seeing to the cause and core of
things. And they most certainly would have agreed with Thoreau, Right now !
that music can destroy civilization. They explained in some detail Ahhhhhh !
what kind of music should prevail in order to maintain the stability I am an anti-Christ
and welfare of the state, as well as the happiness, prosperity and I know what I want
spiritual advancement of each citizen. Further, they warned in And I know how to get it
similar detail what kind of music should be rigorously avoided I wanna destroy passers by
because of its destructive, degenerative effects upon man and nation. For I wanna be - anarchy
Because of the importance of what the ancients have to tell us,
two chapters of this book are devoted fully to the subject. These are
'Anarchy in the UK' - Sex Pistols
the two chapters which are classified, or sub-titled, as chapters upon
'I'llc ancients, then, may yet have a thing or two to teach us. And
'The Ancient Wisdom'. Of the two, Chapter 1 deals with the music
*.illcrwe have already dipped into the subject of the music of China,
and the philosophy of music of ancient China, and Chapter 4 with
Ict it be to China that we first return. . .
the music of India and its mystical basis. Following each of these
chapters there is placed, for contrast, a chapter on the music of our
own era. Chapter 2 investigates the serious music of the twentieth-
century - the 'new music' as it is often called; and Chapter 5 reveals
the origin and possible effects of jazz. In addition, the book also
includes two chapters which are classified or sub-titled as 'Assess-
ment' chapters. Each attempts to assess the validity or invalidity of
the notion of the power of music. Does music possess a power or
powers which can produce objective effects in the world around?
What evidence is there for this belief of the sages and philosophers
of old? The distinction between the two chapters is as follows:
Chapter 3, 'Music, Man and Society', assesses what evidence there
is in support of music's claimed influence upon animate matter, and
in particular upon man himself. Chapter 6 , 'The Physics of the
1.
The Ancient Wisdom :
Music in China
Almost three thousand years before the birth of Christ, at a time
when the music of European man may have amounted to no more
1lr;~nthe beating of bones upon hollow logs, the people of China
wrre already in possession of the most complex and fascinating
I~l~ilosophy of music of which we know today. Whence came this
i~~volved system of musical mysticism, or how it was developed, is a
Irlystery. W e can but say that the tradition of Chinese classical
l~li~sic is so ancient that its origins are described today only in
Irgend, being lost beyond the mists which govern the extent of the
r rod ern historian's gaze.

MUSIC AND MORALITY


In the case of China the rule holds true that the further we go back
in history, the more sacred and vital a significance we find t o have
Iwcn attached to the phenomenon of sound itself. In the viewpoint
of the ancient Chinese, the notes of all music contained an essence of
transcendent power. A piece of music was an energy-formula. Each
different piece of music qualified the sacred power of sound in diffe-
rent ways. Each composition exerted specific influences over man,
civilization and the world. The particular mystical influences of a
piece of music depended upon such factors as its rhythm, its melodic
patterns, and the combination of instruments used. Like other forces
of nature, music itself. as a phenomenon, was not biased towards
producing either beneficial or destructive effects. The Chinese
understood the power within music to be a free energy, which man
could use qr misuse according to his own free will.
Above all it was this fact which motivated the Chinese philoso-
phers to direct much of their attention upon the music of thcir
ration. For if all citizens were to be free from thc dangcrs of rlrc.
~nisuseof music and its power, and if all werc to henct'it from irk.
3 .l THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN CHINA 35
optimally beneficient use, then it had to be ensured that only the !\t cording to Confucius: 'If one should desirc to know whether a
correct music was played. The object of music, they believed, should I4.111~dom is well governed, if its morals are good or bad. the quality
never be merely to entertain; the dark side of man's nature could, #,Iits music will furnish the answer'.
after all, be as readily entertained by wrong and immoral music as I3ccause of the power for good or evil inherent within the tonal
by correct music. Consequently, all music should convey eternal .II.~%, the moral effect of music was considered so important by the Chinese
truths, and should influence man's character for the better. Indeed, , / I 10 rank as the most rmportant test of a music's worth. A thought for
the very word for music in China (Yiio) is represented by the same lllc day, this, for so many of our own contemporary musicians and
graphic symbol as that for serenity ( 1 0 ) . ~The writings of ancient ~llciraudiences. According to the Chinese, there was scarcely
China w h c h have survived through t o our own day leave us in no I,c.neficial effect which good music could not bestow upon a civiliza-
doubt that music was considered to be able to direct and influence lion. In the ancient Chinese work, Y o K i ('Memorial of Music'), we
the emotional nature of man. But the powers of music were thought cad: 'Under the effect of music, the five social duties are without
to extend even beyond the art's emotional influence. Music could .~dn~ixture, the eyes and the ears are clear, the blood and the vital
even directly affect the health of the physical body. (To sing well, cnergies are balanced, habits are reformed, customs are improved,
states one text, can not only spread moral influence, but also streng- ~ h empire
c is at complete peace.'6
then the spine.)
Yet one effect of music was considered above all others t o be the MUSIC AND SPIRITUALITY
most important, and this was its moral influence. Numerous Chinese legends attest to greater, and even magical,
The Chinese were certain that all coarse and sensual music lx)~sibilitiesof music. One, for example, tells how the music master
exerted an immoral effect upon the listener. Therefore all music was Wen of Cheng learned to control the elements. Master W e n was
closely watched so as to ascertain whether its tendency was towards following the great Master Hsiang on his travels. For three years
spirituality or degradation, and whether, in general, its effect was Master Wen touched the strings of his zither, but no melody came.
likely to be good or bad. Confucius condemned several styles which Then Master Hsiang said to him: 'By all means, go home.' Putting
he thought to be morally dangerous. Stated he: 'The music of down his instrument, Master Wen sighed, and said: 'It is not that I
Cheng is lewd and corrupting, the music of Sung is soft and makes ot bring a melody about. What I have in my mind does not
one effeminate, the music of Wei is repetitious and annoying, the :rn strings; what I aim at is not tones. Not until I have reached
music of Ch'i is harsh and makes one haughty'. my heart can I express it on the instrument; therefore I d o not
W e cannot fail to note the important difference bctween this uarc move my hand and touch the strings. But give me a short whilc
outlook of Confucius and the usual viewpoint of twentieth-century and then examine me.'
man. Whereas various styles of music today are also 'lewd', 'soft', Somc time later hc returned and again approached Master
'repetitious' or 'harsh' in their content, there is no longer any real Hsiang, who enquired: 'How about your playing?'
consideration given to the e f e c t of such styles upon the character of It was spring, but when Master W e n plucked thc Shang string
the listener. and accompanied it with the eighth sernitonc, a cool wind sprang
O n the positive side, Confucius believed that gnod music could up, and the shrubs and trees bore fruit. N o w it was autumn.
help to perfect man's character. H e said: Again Master W e n plucked a string, the Chiao string, and
accompanied it with the second semitone: a languid, warm breeze
The noble-minded man's music is mild ;ind delicate, keeps a appeared, and the shrubs and trees bloomed fully.
uniform mood, enlivens and moves. Such a man does not harbour It was now summer, but he plucked the Yii string and had the I
pain or mourn in his heart; violent and daring movements are eleventh semitone respond, upon which hoar frost and snow came
foreign to him. down, the rivers and lakes freezing up.
.. the winter had come, he plucked the Chih string and

I
l i

Further than this: since individuals are the basic building blocks of accompanied it with the fifth semitone: the sun blazcd forth and thc
society, music could also affect entire nations for better or for worse. ice imlnediately melted away.
/t , 'I'fIE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN CHINA 37
~ of Cheng sounded the Kung string and did
I ' I I I . I I I ~ , M ; I S I CWen I ,Inpcror Shun's chief musician, said :
111 11lbibo11 with the other four strings: beautiful winds murmured,
l l , ~ l t I \ of good fortune came up, there fell sweet dew, and the
8
whcn they tapped and beat the sounding stone, and struck and
6.l~l.ingsof water welled up powerfully. \wept the ch'in and sh2, in order to accord with the chant, then
'T'his particular legend is not, of course, to be taken absolutely at 11lc ancestors and progenitors came down and visited. The guests
lace value. The Chinese did believe that music could influence the of them filled the principle seat. And the host of nobles virtuously
phenomena of nature. But they did not believe that the tones of [place t o one another]. At the bottom of the hall were the
mortal man could be expected to literally call forth one season after pipes and the tambours, which were brought into unison or
another as in this legend of Master W e n of Cheng. If we look a suddenly checked by the beaten trough and the scraped tigcr,
little more closely at the story, bearing in mind the great tendency of while the mouth organ and the bell indicated the interludes.'
the ancient Chinese mind to gravitate towards matters spiritual, and
to express itself in symbolic terms, then a deeper meaning stands Yct even in legend the use of the power of music is not always
revealed t o us: 1)cnevolent. For instance, one account tells of a music invented by
The four outer strings of the zither, and the four seasons, are clcmons and spirits. This music raised a tempest, destroyed the
symbolic of the ancient conception of the four aspects of man: his Irrrace of Prince Ping Kung's palace, and then caused the Prince's
abstract mind, his concrete mind, his emotions and his physical own illness and death.638
body. (These four were later to be called by the alchemists of
Europe, 'Fire, A r , Water and Earth'.) Master Wen cannot satisfy THE OM IN CHINA
his guru, Master Hsiang, because Wen has not yet mastered his own Why the importance, the vital importance, of music within the
four aspects of being. Hence, as one result, he cannot perform lrl~ilosophicalsystem of ancient China? Because music was believed
sublime music. But he goes off, and does not return until he has t o embody within its tones elements of the celestial order which
attained the full flowering of the spirituality of his heart. Now governed the entire universe. As did the people of other ancient
Master Wen can play the four outrr strings to great effect. civilizations, the Chinese believed that all audible sound, including
Likewise, and much more meaningfully, he has mastered, gained music, was but one form of manifestation of a much more
total control over, and can 'play' his abstract and concrete thought fundamental form of superphysical Sound. This fundamental Primal
processes, his emotional nature, and the physical naturc Sound was synonymous to that which the Hindus call OM. The
The result of this mastery of mind and body? Thc vital outcome Chinese believed that this Primal Sound was, though inaudible,
is that in playing these four outer 'strings' (his four-fold nature) in present everywhere as a divine Vibration. Furthermore, it was also
unison, he has learned also to play the central Kung string differentiated into twelve lesser Sounds or Tones. These twelve
(corrcsponding to his Higher Self or spiritual nitturc). From thc Cosmic Tones were each emanations of, and an aspect of, the
four-sided base of the pyramid of life, hc has raised hin~selfup to the Primal Sound, but were closer in vibration to the tangible, physical
very apex of perfection. H e has attained full mastery of' himself, and world. Each of the twelve Tones was associated with one of the
hence his inner genius now manifests from the heart. Hcnce, too, his twelve zodiacal regions of the heavens.
music has attained the necessary levels of grandeur rrquired by his
guru. ASTROLOGY AND THE TWELVE COSMIC TONES
The moral here is two-fold: firstly, we must master our four-fold The twelve Tones were at the root of man's earliest recorded con-
nature before we can attain self-realization. And, secondly, only by ception of astrology. That is, astrology was originally conceived as
doing so can we then g o on to perform music which is truly worth- being based on these twelve Tones and the influences whlch their
while. vibratory frequencies exerted over the earth. I n nll lands, astrology
Another legendary account, from the Shu Kin3 ('Book of Odes') began in ~ncienttimes as the study of Cosmic Tone.
describes a music so sublime that it invoked the presence of the Almost everywhere in the civilized ancient world this concept
great, spiritual men of the past who had ascended to heaven. Kwei, prevailed. The perfect order of the heavens was thought to be
38 THE SECRET POWER OF M'JSIC MUSIC IN CHINA 39
governed by thc twelve Tones. Therefore the ancients set out to t1101111 I IIC quality and nature of the composition and its ~erformance.
reflect this cclcstial order within the earthly world. They did so in ('.#Iw l l . ~
of~ the musician who did not understand these cosmic roots
many ways, somc of which h tve bcen passed down cven until our ..I I,),I\~(.?Quite simply, he would not realize the neccssity for his art
own day, though their original significance is now forgotten. Two 11,. ,lctuned t o the celestial regions, nor would hc bc able t o make
surviving examples of the mysticism attached to the number twelve ,l l, )
are. for example. the dividing up of the year into twelve months, I'ltis is explained in the Chinese text, The Spring and Autrrmn of
and of the day into twenty-four hours. But in times past these time I Ir 1\11 Ve:
divisions wcre not arbitrary. Nor wcre they merc superstitious
homage to the heavens. Rather, to the ancients they werc instances 'I'lie origins of music lie far back in time. It arises out of
of man's wise recognition of objective, scientific facts. It was ,~.oportionand is rooted in the Great One. The Great One gives
bclieved that the twelve Toncs really did express themselves risr to the two poles: the two poles give rise t o the powers of
individually to a greater degrce according to the month of the ycar, tl.~rknessand light. The powers of darkness and light undergo
the time of day, and so forth. A particular Tonc 'sounded' more (Ilange; the one ascends into the heights, the other sinks into the
promincntly in a particular month. and during a particular hour of (lcpths; heaving and surging they combine to form bodies. If they
the day. :trc divided they unite themselves again; if they are united they
Chincse philosophy is saturated with the idea of opposites - of divide themselves again. That is the eternal way of heaven.
two opposite (though not necessarily opposing) forces which arc I-leaven and earth are engaged in a cycle. Every ending is
found throughout nature. Thcse wrrc called jcrtzg (the masculine, followed by a new beginning; every extreme is followed by a
positive force) and yitz (the feminine, negative force). Twentieth- rcturn. Everything is co-ordinated with every-thing else. Sun,
century science can only agrcc with this concept: two opposi~e moon and stars move in part quickly, in part slowly. Sun and
forces are found in everything from magnctic charge and the moon do not agree in the time which they need t o complete their
stntcture of subatomic partic!es to all cycles of waxing and waning, path. The four seasons succeed each other. They bring heat and
of night and day, of the scxes, of lifc and death. In view of this cold, shortness and length, softness and hardness. That from
prig-?in basis of Chinese philosophy, it should comc as no surprise which all beings arise and in which they have their origin is the
then that of the twelve Cosmic Tones, the Cliincse belicvcd six to be Great One; that whereby they form and themselves is the
yang in nature, and sixyir:. Between them, the sixyatly and the six duality of darkness and light. As soon as the seed-germs start to
yirz Tones wcre responsible for the crcation and sustainmcnt of stir, they coagulate into a form. The bodily shape belongs to the
everything in the universe. world of space, and ,errer)rthing spacial has a sound. The sound
arises out of harmony. Harmony arises out of relatedness.
SOUND ABOVE AND SOUND BELOW Harmony and relatedncss are the roots from which music,
Audible sound was conceiz~edas being a physical-leuel manfirtation of established by the ancient kings, arose.
the twelve Tones. In other words, sound on earth was a kind uf When the world is at peace, when all things are at r a t , when
'undertone', as it werc, of the celestial vibrations. This fact was at all obey their superiors through all life's changes, then music can
the very heart of why the ancients attributed such tremendous be brought to perfection. Perfected music has its effects. When
importance to worldly sound. For not only were audible sounds desires and emotions do not follow false paths, then music can be
'undertones' of the ccl~stial Tones, but rhpy lotere nlso belreued t o perfected. Perfected music has its cause. It arises out of balancc.
contain somerhzng of'rhe celestial Tones' supmatural power. Even as thc Balance arises from justice. Justice arises from the true purpnsc of
Cosmic Tones rnaintaincd harmony and order in the heavens, so the world. Therefore one cait speak of music only with one ~ l h oIJJS
then should music maincrin harmony and order upon e a ~ t h And. so recognked the truepttrpose o f the world. [my italics].
it would, provided that its composition and performance provided
an adcquate rcflrction of the order, harmony and melody of the The performing of music often came in conjunction with tnystic:il
Cosmic Tones. And whcthrr or not earthly music did so depended ceremony. Each of the two - music and ceremony - were v:~lurclh r
40 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN CHINA 41

their harmonizing elements, which attuned man to the heavens. w 1111 an astrological month of the year, during which the Tone was
Each helped man's being - his thoughts, feelings and physical I lc.licved t o be more prominently sounded throughout the earth. The
actions - to become aligned with the rhythms and harmonies of the I , l \ r six months of the year expressed the sixyang Tones; the second
universe. Confucius wrote that ceremony established the correct ..In rnonths from mid-summer to winter solstice expressed the yin
manner of physical movement in man, while music perfected man's 'I'oncs. The musician performed his music in a key which was
mind and emotions. In the ancient text, Li chi, the harmony and I I . )ciated
~ with the current zodiacal month. The twelve notes, or lui,
sacrtld proportion of heaven is viewed as entering the earth through 111 the Chinese musical system each corresponded to one of the
thc mediation of, respectively, music and ritual: t~lonths.The note of each month was, in audible sound, the earthly
r r.llcction or 'undertone' of the month's celestial Tone. Therefore
Music is the harmony of hcaven and earth while rites are the t..tcll month of the year possessed its own tonic and dominant lui,
measurement of heaven and earth. Through harmony all things w i~h which all ceremonial music should be performed at that time.
are made known; through measure all things are properly T o the Chinese mind it was self-evident and indisputable that the
classified. Music comes from heaven; rites are shaped by earthly I>rrfectState could only be maintained by its remaining in alignment
designs. with celestial order. Therefore the functions of State were also
.~s\ociatedwith a tone. T o do so - to keep in harmonious attune-
The goal of the musician was to manifest within the medium of Incnt with the principles which governed the universe - brought the
audible sound a music which expressed accordance with celestial I~lrssin~s of indefinite preservation upon the State. T o lose this
ordcr. And to do so demanded not only an artistic proficiency. but .~tlunementto celestial order, however, inevitably reduced any
also a very definite scientific knowledge and discipline. This was 11;ttionto a condition of imperfection and impermanence. Celestial
because the relationship between earthly music and the Ch'~nesecon- ~ " i n c i ~ l cwere
s eternal, and all attuned with them would endure.
ception of universal order was such an extremely intimate one. N:~tional upheaval and decline always came about because that
Nothing in classical Chinese music was left to chance or performed tt,~tionwas not in harmony with the universal principles of divine
arbitrarily. ( H o w the Chinese sages wnuld havc shuddered at the OI-dcr.In particular, the leading officials of the nation should be
sound of much that passes for music today!) According to the ~ . i ~ i i i l aattuned
rl~ in their personalities and spiritual understanding.
Chinese conception that life patterns follow musical patterns, it 'I'licy should literally be the embodiment of the cosmic Tones. The
followcd logically that random or arbitrary notcs would tend to pre- t)ffices of Emperor, Empress, Minister, and so forth, therefore each
cipitatc cl~aosand anarchy within society at largc. 1~)ssessedtheir own special tone which was attuned to a particular
Ultimately, every note was ideally intended to invokc certain t osmic Tone. The key in which the music of a rite was performed
specific cosmic forces. In this, classical Chinese music cannot begin wits consequently also influenced by the tone of the officiating
to be understood whcn approached by the normal Western method Harmonious music became the fulfilment upon earth of the
of musical analysis. Will of the Above. By its alignment with the principles of heaven,
Well might the prospective Ph.D. researcher attrnipt to assess the c;irthly music could force by the law of sympathetic resonance the
rhythms of ancient Chinesc music, its forms and structures. But, in c-nergies of heaven t o embody themselves into the leaders of the
fact, W C can no more grasp the heart and ultimntc purpose of the State.''
music in such a way than we can assimilate War nnd Peace by analy-
sing thc frequcncy with which each later of tht* alphabet appears. THE MYSTICISM OF MUSIC
As one has put it: Yct for all this attention paid to the details of their earthly music,
tIic Chinese did not forget the One Origin of all Cosmic Tones and
What significance the structure of the waves which bear a useful c )f all earthly sound. The Primal, undifferentiated Cosmic Vibration
object? What matters is that the object be not lost!9 was a central concept of Chinese philosophy. It was this One Vibra-
lion which, emanating from the Grcat One, became the two -yang
As we have said, each of the twelvc cclcstial Toncs corresponded . I I I ~yin - upon which all Creation was based. This One Vibration,
42 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN CHINA 43
the origin of all matter, energy and being, was considered t o be the mathematician's blackboard, but were large, radiant dots, swollen
enunciated W o r d of the Supreme. Since each of the twelve Cosmic with feeling and esoteric significance. I n the modern mind and in
Tones was but an aspect - a twelfth - of this O n e Vibration, the the ancient, mystical frame of consciousness w e find, then, ten-
Chinese felt that literally every note of their music, being a rcflection dencies towards t w o very different ways of concentrating upon and
of one of the twelve Tones, was also an earthly manifestation of the assimilating music.
O n e Great Tone. Each note of music, indeed, was performed as a I t is well worth dwelling on this matter a little firther. T w o
conscious celebration of, an homage unto, and an invocation unto different approaches to the experience of tonal art: the concrete and
the Fathcr-Tone. the mystical; the objective and thc subjective. In one, the listener
And since all ~ o u n dwhatsoever derived from this Vibration, the stands back, assesses the structure of the piecc (is it A-B-A-B-A or A-
sounds of music the-tnselves, on their own, irrespective of their com- B-A,-B-AI?), and remarks upon the originality of the harmonies
bination with other tones in this or that melodic pattern, were held during the fugal finale. I n the other, the tonal pilgrim plunges into
in great rcvercnce by the sage-musicians. T o understand this, it is the notes, attempts t o reach t o their Source, to become them. I t is not
necessary for the modcrn Wcstcrn musician o r music-lover to instil that one approach is correct and the other wrong; each is valid in its
into himself a vcry different outlook. We tend t o havc a somewhat own way. W h a t we might call the concretc approach has obviously
ingrained Occidental attitude toward musical appreciation, but to been dominant in the W e s t for a numbcr of ccnturies. I ~ l t e r e s t i n g l ~ ,
really get to grips with the meaning which music hcld for the in its rise to prominence throughout the European baroque and
Chinese mind, w e need to go back to the beginning. W e nccd to classical eras, it paralleled the simultaneous rise of objectivc science
adjust and refocus thc faculties with which we listen to and and of man's increasing mastery over the concrete world. As
appreciate music in the first place. Today, we do nor ns rrrle lirten to Western man began to classify and experiment with the phenomena
the notes of music at all. of Nature, so too did there arise a music which was also a science.
Strangc statement! And yet true. We d o not tend to listen to the each component of the music being carefully analysed, each
notes rhe7nselt~es.All that we hear and assimilate arc thc combir~;ttions composed note carefully considered. Eventually, like the scientific
of a numbcr of notcs in the form af a melady. Evcn o u r cycs, in
;IS formula or experimental procedure, pieces of music became totally
gestalt fashion, look at the entire form and meaning ;L dr;iwing,
of composed beforehand, the not permitted to alter a single
and rarely focus themselves exclusively upon individ11;Il li11c.s or notc else the entire work be subverted.
marks t o the exclusion of all others, so have our ears hrco~nc.~lsccito And in the East? The Eastcrn mind has always tended t o direct
organizing musical notes into overall patterns and forms. 1,ittlc- l ~ c e d its attention, not inro the world, but above it. Similarly, Oriental
is paid to the qualities of each individual sound. music. Each rhythm is a prayer, each melody a contemplation. In his
Profcssional musicians sometimes refer t o this fact I)y s;iy ing that quest for the One, Oriental man discovered divinity a n d reality
it is not the notes which we listen to in music tnrI:~y,I U I I o r 1 1 the within the one fundamental component of all tonal art - the
intcrvals - the pitch differences between the nlltr+%.' I ' l l ( . strong individual note.
tendency is to hear only the melodic stream, as a riqiti!: .111tl (:~lli~lg of Because of this importancc which the ancients placed upon each
pitch diffcrcnces. I n this, the notes themselves C ( I I I I I I 11 11. 11,,t llillg note as an entity in itself, rwer the centurics the music of China,
cxccpt as dots on the score-sheet which govern wl~ichw . 1 ~i 1 1 ( * 11nc India, Egypt and other lands evolved a vast array of different ways
of thc melody goes, up o r down The notes arc tllrrt-lll~ r. c r.1.y I I I L I C h in which even the same note could be played. Indeed, is this not still
11ke the abstract points of mathcmatln o r geomrtlv 'I'l~c.vin(l~c.~tc a the one must irnmediatcly striking difference between the music of
position, but fill up n o area there: even as a Iinc in 111.11II('ITI,II I ( j0111s the W e s t and that of the Orient? In our o w n music, a note is x notc
up points ~n a n abstract way, yct in theory thi.; linr 11.15 no w ~ d t h (C, C minor, etc.), and it's as simple as that. Yet in the East tlic
and takes up n o area. musician has that unmistakable, but at first undefinable, Oricntitl
But not so, the muslcal note as appreciated ITV tllr .ini-irn[\ of way of striking each note, this giving to Oriental music its distinc,~
Chma! For to the Chinese t h e individual norpc tl1f~v1\vli~r\ ICJPYF r(~nl, flavour.
llvzng and vibrant They were not abstr,~ci 131,ints o n thc The tones of Western music, like the abstract points of geometry,
44 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN CHINA 45
can usually each be written as a straightforward-enough note on the ~lt.\igncdto be able to perform the flowing streams of melodic
score-sheet. Even on paper we can usually see exactly how the note 1u1tc:rns inherent in virtually all music. Frequently the same instru-
is intended to sound: as a certain pitch performed by a particular III(.IIIS are able to entire melodies through from start to
instrument and sustained for a stated period. In thc Orient, I ~ ~ ~ i sso l i ,broad are the instruments' capabilities. But we find in
however, the individual note is heir to a far more extensive variety ( :l~inaa fundamentally different approach. What mattered was to
of possibilities. The same note, even upon the same instrument, can I I W earthly tone as an aid in reaching spiritually inward and upward
be played in a dazzling multitude of different ways. to the Source of all tone and of all Creation. Therefore, in their
In his book on the Chinese lute, R. H. van Gulik explains: I I I I I S ~ C , the tendency was to express single rones as clear, undiffe-
~x-ntiatedmanifestations of the imminent, living Cosmic Tone which
In order to understand and appreciate this music, the ear must Iwrvaded the entire universe.
learn to distinguish subtle nuances: the same note, produced on a So what do we find? That in the Chincsc orchestra a large
different string, has a different colour; the samc string. when ~n-"portion of the instruments were those such as bells. single stones
pulled by the forefinger or the middle finger of thc right hand, ;tnd metal slabs to be struck. String instruments followcd a similar
has a different timbre. The technique by which thesc v;iri;~tionsin I>rinciplcWestern string instruments such as the violin or the guitar
timbre are effected is extremely complicated: of tllc viI,r;~toalone 11;ivcfrets upon which an entire melody can be played - even upon a
there cxist no less than twenty-six varieties. T h c inlprcs*,iolimade hingle stru~g.But in China the unfrctted string held prominence, as
by one note is followed by another, still anothrr. ' l ' l 1 c ~ 1 . c . is thus a in the harp, each pluck sounding a single, pure emanation of the
compelling, inevitable suggestion of a mood, .l11 ;~trl~osphere, One. Nor in the case of wind instruments did the Chinesc depart
which impresses upon the hearer the s c n t i n ~ ~ nrl1.11
i illsl>irc.dthe from this emphasis upon single tones. Chinese wind instruments,
composer.' instead of consisting of one tube with holes or some other
rnechanisrn to vary the pitch, consisted of rows of pipes joined
It is often pointed out that whereas Wcstern ton;~l;I[ t ,111 11csaid t o
t
together, each pipe emanating its own, singular differentiation of
possess four dimensions - rhythm, melody, h;~r.rlltI .r 11J tone )I
Cosmic Vibration. Usually there were twelve such pipes: one for
colour - Oriental music is largely lacking in thc rl~irtlI ) I I llt.sc. the csch of the twelve celestial Tones and their audible counterparts.
dimension of harmony. Yet a casc could be mactc. to I 11,. c.I'(;-ct that (The mouth organ was also used, which is obviously based on the
the Orientals nevertheless enjoy a four-dimensic~~i;~l . I I , I . 111c mul- same principle, but in miniature.)
titudinous choice of options in which way each .;ilr!!ll Irolr c;tn be It may seem from the abovc that the resultant music was stiff,
sounded has no parallel in the West, and deserve?,1 1 , l ~ ~-c-!:;irdcdr as stultified and unmelodious. Yet nothing could be further from the
a rnusical dimension in its own right. truth. As we have seen, single notes upon a string could nevertheless
The dimension of tone colour, or timbre (i.e. ~ l i Ir-I
f 1.111 Illrt rornmts be rendered in all manner of ways, extended and enriched with
and their distinctive sound) is also very developrtl ; I I ~ l l Ir ~ ; I s L . This subtle nuances. Moreover, orchestral performances displayed the
further adds to the variety of sounds which C;III 111.~~~.c)tll~c,c.cl even wonderful skill of the performers t o blend the succession of notes
from the same note. A note played oh a flutr i\ .I V . I ~ ~ I tlit'icrent I~ from different instruments into a tightly coherent and flowing
aural experience to us than that same note playctl l r r l . I II.II.~I. ~ y or. melody. That is, melodies were less frequently performed by the
a drum! The glittering array of variegated - ancl ( I I I r.11 v1.1 v ?.tr;mge- same instruments all the way through than they were built up from
sounding - timbres is another immediately no111r..ll)l(. 1r.1111l.c of the notes of different instruments. (The practice is not entircly
Chinese and other Asiatic music. unknown in Western music, and is called open or pierced music. O f
In the case of the Chinese, however, how I.IVi l ~ . ~ t i ~ l; !I : is to it Beethoven spoke in relation to his supernal Op. 1 3 1 String
discover that their deep and complex philosophit . ~ .,v<~cnl.
l ;IIICI the Quartet in C Sharp Minor, when he wrote that it contained 'a ncw
mystic 'significance which they saw in music. Irtl I l ~ c * c.volrlr i t ) l l of manner of voice writing'. Striking instances are also to thc fore in
many of their musical instruments along a most ~ ~ I I \ I I . I Ip;itli.. . Holst's The Planets Suite.) Such 'open' melodies were the nllr ri1thr.r
In almost all other cultures on earth music;~l i~lsrrurncnts;Ire than the exception in ancient China, however, and still rc.ni:tin to
4(1 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN CHINA 47
sollic cxtent in the Chinese folk music of the modern cra. The effect f'i~nctionof music t o that with which the Wcsterner is familiar. In
ilpon thc listener is most certainly one of mind-cxpansion. Only by thc case of many modern music halls, ten thousand performers
broadening and sharpening the consciousness can thc full melody would fill thc seating capacity for the audiefzce threc or four times
and its beauty be assimilated. In fact, since no one instrument is able over. Compared t o our own day, we can say that thc cmphasis in
t o lay claim to the possession of the melody as it flies from one China was much more partzczpatzon than upon passive listening. And
instrument to another with glittering speed, it is as though the music this because, like farmers harvesting their crops or soldiers defending
itself becomes emancipated from the earthly instrumcnts. An their homcland, musicians and their music wcre without reservation
independent spirit, it hovers above and speaks through whichever believed to be functional in a very practical and extra-musical way.
instrumental medium it will. Sound was apoww; music an energy.

MUSIC AND PRACTICAL MAGIC MUSIC AND THE T'AI CH1


The Chinese emperors employed surprisingly numcrous tnl~siciar 1s. All music is based upon numbers and proportions. For example,
The T'ang Dynasty, for example, (AD 61 8-907) kept S10 Icss th,an there are twelve notes to the modern chromatic scale, of which
fourteen court orchestras, each consisting offromfra bt(ttr;irtd 10 sev'en seven are major and five minor. The harmonic relationships bctween
hundred pe?fomers. What would the voting public say of such gran- the notes is determined by mathematical principles. Strange as it
diose, 'unnecessary' use of public funds today? And y c ~ :lccording . may seem when we focus our attention upon the fact, we cannot
to the ancients, to keep so many musicians was far from llnncccssary avoid commenting, however, that to the avcrage Western musician
or superfluous, but was the height of wisdom. I;I)I.thc rnergy the numbers and ratios of music rcmain just that, and nothing more.
invoked by the divinely-attuned tone-patterns 01' tllc..;r court H e perceives no particular significance in them. Even more surpris-
orchcstras was believed to exert a far-reaching influrr1c.c. into all the ing: he does not even search for any. His consciousness being
affairs of the nation - affairs as crucial and widc-r:i~~!:i~i!: ;IS those of entirely caught up in the world of appearances, he truly cannot see
the economy, the social patterns of behaviour. ; ~ j i t . i c I I ~ I I I and I T , so the woods for trees. H e learns at school the rudiments of the
on. numbers and ratios inherent in music, and from that moment on
During the aforementioned T'ang Dynasty, onr rr!:~rl,lr 11rchestra never thinks to enquire: W h y ?
alonc was formed of no less than 1346 m u s i c i ; ~ ~I.irllr i ~ . wonder Yet the ancient Chinese mind was always more interested in the
that it was an outdoor orchcstra. T o fit them into I .ol~tlon'sRoyal causes behind the world of outer effects than with the world itself.
Albert Hall, one would have to place the orcbrst~,.~ i t 1 I IN. rows of In China, the mathematics of music was considered to embody the
seats and position the rather limited audience o n 111r. *.I ,I!:(.! l311tit is sacred, cosmic proportions and principles which governed all of
surely apparent here, too, in this huge numbcr 01 1n.1 It~l.r~~c.rs, that Creation. And of all numbers. one and two wcrc the most funda-
the real function of the orchestra was known 10 h r .I I I I ~ \ I ~ C ; I one: I mental of all. The number nne was the number of unity and the
such numbers are quite unnecessary for any pi11 Iu.~.l'orrning number of the Great One. Individual notes and individual pcrfor-
picccs of music for entcr-tainmrnt. The actual, i 11111c.tion of mers were always representations of the O n e God. The number two
thc orchestra? That the larger the orchestra r !!~.I..IIcr the stood for the first differentiation of the One into thc opposite
volume of sound produced. And the greater thr \ I I I I I I ~ I , . I , . wc-ll ;is the polarities of yang and yin, or of the T'ai chi. This concept of two
more minds actively involved, the greater thc 131-1111111 I 11 $11 I 11 cosmic balanced, interacting forces is the backbone of the entire system of
energy invoked and radiated forth. Thus a v.la.r I I I I I ~ ~ ~ ~ I I I ~ I went I!: ancient Chinese philosophy. Everything in the universe, including
forth with which the entire land could be invi!!ru .,I 1.11 . l 1 1 1 1 ~ 3 1 ~ ~ ~ . i t ~ ~ ; ~ l l y all music, consisted of different combinations of these two funda-
enlightened. mental forces. An orchestra, for example, might be considcrcd t o
The Chinese historians recorded that for r l ~ c d t . 1 1 1 . I I I ~ I 01her hold an equal balance between yang and yin if half the
important festivals the T'ang Dynasty also I ) t t )III:III IO!:~'I l l ( - r an were male and half female. Then again, certain months of thc yr..lr
orchestra reputedly numbering no less than trrt / l f t ~ ~ l \ . / w , l(. )l~viouslY, wereyang, and someyin; and among theyang months, for rx;~n~plt..
then, we are dealing here with an acutely difI'c.rl.~~t t ~ ~ ~ r l o Illiono l c the some were more yang than others. Therefore music shoulc1 I>c l~rrlr)I.-,
IX THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN CHINA 49
mcd during each month in a key which shared that month'syang-yin ' I ;~blcI : The Eight Traditional Classes of Chinese Musical Instruments
oalance. Individual pieces of music were themselves sometimes
classed according to howyang oryin they were. The opening bars of Elrmcnt or
Beethoven's Fifth Symphony would undoubtedly havc been classed N ~ Ku:~=(s~rnbol)
I Substance of Example of Compass Scason Phcnorncnon
as very yang (masculine, active and positive), and the BachIGounod Nnrne Sign Instrumcnt Instrument Point of Naturc
'Ave Maria' as veryyin. ,
Beethoven's Fifth must surely be R . O r even = . For this - I Ch'im =
- stonc sonorous stone
(chime)
NW Autumn- Hcavrn
Winter
was how the different balances between yang and yin wcre written.
The principle ofyang was symbolized as an unbroken line -and
.' T~ti =
-
II
metal bell (chime) W Autumn dampness

yin by a broken line - -. According to the cosmo-conccption of the 4 Li " silk zithcr S Summer fire
Chinese, these two opposite forces, by combining, wcrc the origin of .I Chin L= bamboo panpipes E Spring thunder
the Trinity. And the concept of the Trinity was far from being a
vague, abstract one: rather, all three-fold phenomena and manifesta- ) Sun = wood tiger box SE Spring-
Summer
w~nd

tions in the universe were considered to be an aspect of the Three-in-


drum N Winter water
One. In music, the Trinity manifested itself whcrcvcr or whenever
there occurred triplets of notes, a rhythm in three, or :my number of 7 Kin l
,gourd reed mourh- NE Winter- mountain
performers which was a multiple of three. II
organ Spring
By writing the broken and unbroken lines fo~--yirt;tlrclyrrng in sets
of three, the Chinese were able to rcprcscllt i l l wl.iting the inner
8 K'un =
I I
earth globular
a...,,
SW Summer- Earth
Autumn
balance betweenjin a n d y a q which prcv;~ilcdwitllil~t hc three-fold
nature of all phenomena. Altogcthcr t11c1-v ;IT(.;I tot;11 of eight From Grove's Dictionary of Music and Musicians ( 1 9 J 4 edition)
possible signs such as K and = . Thcsc. c.i;:l~r ~,i!:lls(known as
&a) were belicvcd to symbolize the tight I,;i\ic. I)rl l ~ ~ ~ l t ; ~ cand ions THE C O N C E P T OF T H E LOGOS I N C H I N E S E M U S I C
combinations of existence. Hence, thc numhrr c.i!:ll~ .II(,O ;~ssumeda One all-important purpose lay behind all the strenuous efforts of the
mystical significance within music. Chinese to align their music to the principles and proportions of
This led to another way in which the Chinc..;c. \IIII!:III 1 0 mirror cosmic order. This purpose was that, through the God-alignment of
celcstial order within their musical system. In k r . c - l r l ~ ~ ! : with there music, all consciousness and life could become similarly aligned to
bcing eight basic manifestations of the ynr~q-YIVIIII.CY.S in the that same celestial order.
universe, musical instruments were grouped into c.i!:l~t c I,r~sc*s. In the N o matter how far back in thc history of Chinese music we go,
Wcst we classify our instruments according to t11v 1 1 1 ~ ~ 1 1 1 0o~fl sound we find the same: that the Chinese associated Cosmic Sound with
production (e.g, percussion instruments, string i t i \ ~I . I I I I I , . \).
~ I Not so illumined, exalted consciou.wm. Cosmic Sound - the vibratory
in ancient China, where instruments were gro~lllt,tl. I ( . , ( 1 1 tIi11g to the essence of all matter and rncrgy - was in everything and
material from which they wcre made. This mean1 t l l . l r r - : ~ ( , I l r.:lrcgory .
everyone.. and it was possiblr for man to raise his consciousness, to
of instrument became automatically associated wit l I .t W iclc variety take himself closer to the Sourcc, to attune himself more perfectly
of extra-musical phenomena, since, like the i n s t r ~ ~ ~ ~ rc*vc.rythingr.rr~~, with the One. Spirituality was literally a question of vibration. H c
else in the universe was also associated with onr ( I ( I I I ( . c-i!:l~r basic who succeeded in harmor~izing the discords within his niintl,
kua. W e see that, through its common kuu, wltc~nc.vc.r.I niusical emotions and body could hccome a more perfect embodiment 01-
instrument was sounded, it automatically invokccl, hy associ;~tion, Cosmic Sound, an incarnation of the Word. H e who emhodicil 1111.
the spirit of a particular season, element, compass direction, a n d so Logos was inevitably exceedingly wise, moral and just; hcncc IIC w.15
on (see Table 1). the most fitting to rule.
There are unmistakable parallels here between this (:llinc.w
concept of man embodying Cosmic Sound and rlic. C:llrihti.~~i
SO THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN CHINA 5l
acceptance of the Christ as being the W o r d of G o d . Indeed, \V1111 the passing of the centuries this at tinlcs became more
Chinese emperors were traditionally associated with the Logos from I l than actual: as in the case of thc succcssio nan
the earliest times. This we can see by examining just one or t w o Popes, Chinese emperors were not always, i11 :cnt
terms of the language. For example, the name given t o the I npletely fitted for their office. Originally, t the
foundation tone of Chinese music was huung chutzg; literally rrliperor was indeed both Lawgiver a n d Guru to nls aevotcd
translated, this means 'yellow bell'. Yet this same phrase was also ..~~l)jccts, and the earthly spokesman for the W o r d of G o d .
used symbolically in reference to the ruler, and to divine will. ' l ' o embody thc Logos was not believcd t o bc the calling of only

Outwardly, the tone known as 'yellow bell' set the standard pitch ollr pcrson, though. All beings were its manifestation; all cotlld
upon which the music of the entirc nation was based: esoterically, hat purity and illumination of consciousness whereby they
this foundation tone was considered to be the purcst and most I ie pwfect, undistorted Presence of thc Word." A n d t l ~ u s
perfect audible manifestation of Cosmic Sound possible. If we 1 1 1 , - v c r y purpose of Chinesc music was towards this end: for chrir

reflect upon the relationship between t w o tones set an octave apart, I i111;11 and classical music was penultimately directed towards t.l~r

the lowcr tone being an undertone which can be produced by the ~,.~ising and purifying of all performers and members of the audience.
sounding out of thc higher, then t h s gives us some idea of h o w the The Chincse music of those times was quite remarkable in thc
huu~zgchung was considered to be related t o the Logos. T h e Logos, , 1 1 1 ~ m pitt made t o free the listener from the chains of the physical
sounding in thc rcalms of Spirit, produced the prccise pitch of the world. I t direct.ed the inner ear back to thc Supreme Source of a11
huang chu~zgin thc physical world as irs matter-planc undertone. The \ o i ~ n d ,beyond the outer, material world altogcthcr. And h o w was
'ycllow bell' tone was an Octave of octaves of octaves, and more, Illis done? W e can gain some idea from the accounts of early
below its Sourcc-Tone; but nevertheless, it was its perfect lower- Western musicologists w h o journeyed to China before the classical
plant counterpart: as Hermes said, 'As .Above, so below.' The I lxdition had been entirely lost. O n e reported that:
'yellow bell' tone was therefore regarded most reverently in ancient
China as a genuine, audible expression of the W o r d itself. T h e The muslc of the seven-stringed z ~ t h c rtends constantly towards
cosmological purpose of the W o r d was to act as mediator between i~nagincdsounds: a vibrato a prolonged long after all audible
heaven and earth. Cosmic Sound provided a vehicle for thr sound has ceased; the unplucked string, set in motion by a sudden
transference of the Supreme Will into the world. Those arrested glissando, produces a sound scarccly audible even to the
enlightened, selfless men who so perfected themselves ns to becomc p r f o r m e r In the hands of performers of an older generation the
the living embodiment of the W o r d were likewisc mediators: as the instrument tcnds t o be used to suggest, rather than to producc,
living, manifest offspring of the Great One, thcy were able to sounds. '
convey the teachings of the Great O n e t o thc h z ~ r n n n i twho
~ were
not sufficiently developed to be able to receivc thc tc;~cliingsdirectly OF TIMES AND CYCLES: OF MUSTC AND MODES
for themselves. 'The extent to which music was aligned t o cosmic principles simply
As w e sec, then, the term huung chrtng (yellow hcll) referred both cannot be overstated. The twelve notes of the Chincse musicnl
t o the foundation tone of Chinesr music and, in thc symbolic sensc, system were thcrnselves each rclatcd to one of the twelve signs of
t o divine rulership. The colour yellow was itsclf the Chincse the zodiac, one of the twclvc moons of the year, and t o one of the
imperial colour, the colour of sacred wisdom. Thc emperor was a twelve hours of the day (onr Chinese hour being exactly t w o of our
kind of priest-king: even as the yellow bell established the pitch of own). I t was regarded as imperative that earthly music be attuned trb
all the Chincsc notes, and therefore the divine attunement of a!l of the celestial harmonics a€chese time cycles. As w e have said, tllt PI-is-
their music, so too did the Emperor set the spiritual and material dominant Cosmic Tone was believed to change with t h t piwing
laws for all his subjects, and preside over the affairs of State. He did from one zodiacal month to the other; and so. too, t h c h;it.rnclnic.
so bccauw just as the yellow bell perfectly reflected thc Tone of the relationship between the twelve Tones was believed to cli;~ngc;II\o
Logos, so was the &eror the most peifected individual through with the changing of the phases of the moon and rhc hour ot' r l ~ c .
whom thr Consciousness of the Logos could best manifest itself. Ll;tp.%e problem this presented is obvious; how coulri [IIL, C : l l i ~ l c . . i t .
1 .) THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN CHINA j 3
l<c.r,l' ~ h c i rmusic in harmonious correspondence with the harmonics 1*'1111 111c111new tendencies in thought. ncw r n o i d s , different
01 [he heavens if the heavenly Tones themselves kept changing in Irr.l~,ivio~~r-patterns and different activities in thc N ; I L L Ikingdom.
~T
their relation to the earth? Most interestingly, there has survivcd intact sincc ~ h o \ cdays
The solution was simple in theory; certainly not so simple in . . l l l t i r . indications of which actual musical notcs were associ;ctccl with

practice: for each of the regular changes in Cosmic Tone, the I I I ( . I wclve moons of the year and the twelvc hours o l tltc d ; ~ y(.\ V C
Chinese changed the keynote, and sometimes even the mode, of . . l ~ o ~ t rcmember
ld that the chief significance of thrse audihlc tones
their music. I t is startling for us today t o hear of such a practice. \ \ , . I \ 111at they were each worldly counterparts of one o f thr. v c t j ~
Imagine the modern conductor, merrily taking the London '1'onc.s of Heaven.) Rendering the musical tones according t o 111c
Symphony Orchestra through Beethoven's Ninth, looking at his ~l~oclcrn Western scale ( C , C #, etc.) the correspondenccs wcrc:
watch, and suddenly signalling for the music to be entirely tran-
sposed! O r a rector dashing d o w n the aislc on Sunday morning, Note Moon Hour
gesticulating t o the sombre church choir that they have just passed C 6 1
into Taurus! Yet the Chinese were entirely serious: they had the C# 7 3
utter faith that they knew what they were doing and why. I t is D 8 T
doubtful that they cver engaged in such absurdity as described D# 9 7
above. I n order t o compose, conduct, perform or appreciate as a E 10 9
listener the ancient music, a good deal of esoteric, astrological and F 11 11
astronomical knowledge had often t o be absorbed beforehand. F # 12 1
Musicians knew exactly what t o play and how to play it according G 1 3
t o the date and time of day. G# 2 T
I t should be realized that nor only music. but even Chinese A 3 7
astrology itself was also, at its source. firmly hased upon the concept A# 4 9
of Cosmic Sound. Astrology was the science of cclestial Sound. T h e B T 11
twclve Tones which emanated from the O n e W o r d wcre, in their I t would be pleasing to think that, from this data, we could now
various harmonic combinations, a n s i d e r e d to bc the real cause of carry on the tradition of transposing and otherwise altering our
astrological influences over earthly events. AstroloSic.~leffects wcre music according t o the month and hour! However, a note of caution
not the inexplicable, unexplained results, vagzlrly attributed t o the for would-be revivers of the lost art: the Westcrn notes indicated
stars, that they are t o the astrologers of today. Rathcr, there was a above are only the approximate pitch of the Chinese notes. Thc
scientific and very plausible theory in explanation o f astrological chung foundation tone was roughly F, and corresponded with
influences: it was the twelvc Tones of the z o d i ; ~ ~~.;iJi;~ting
. their the clevcnth moon and the eleventh hour. But, as we shall shortly
~ u ~ e r - ~ h ~ sVibrations
ical onto the earth, which wcw believed t o see, the huang chung (and thercforc all the notes of the scale) varied
affcct psychological statc-s, thc phenomena of Nnrurc, . ~ n dso forth. in pitch throughout the centuries.
After all, does not a piecc of worldly music oftcn p r o l ~ ~ u n d laffcct
y Taking still further the alignment of their music, below, to celes-
and movc us? H o w much morc then might the Fl:~rn~onics of the tial principles, Above, the nii~sical instrumcnts themselves were
Beyond likewise change our state of consciousnrss? Indeed, is not designed with often deep csotcric symbology in mind. One o f thc
all mattcr composed of energy oscillating at various frequencies? oldcst and most sacred of Chinesc instrumcnts, the sheng, is a wincl
Then that high-frequency energy-waves from beyond the earth instrument the use of which was almost cntirely reserved fr)r holy
could affect matter and consciousness does not seem at all an seasonal convocations. It had 24 pipes - that is, oneplnnx ancl one
implausible or superstitious idea. According to the Chincse, the yifz tnna! expression for each of the twelve signs of the xc>~li;~c.' '
monthly changes from one sign of the zodiac to another indicated Moreover, we can be sure that this was considered t o hc. n o 1 o n l y
cosmic .modulations in the pattern of cclestinl harmonics. W i t h each for symbolic purposes, hut for eminently practical p u r p o . ~ ~-~1.1 1 ~ .
new stellar configuration, new Tones inundated the earth, bringing invocation of cosmic forces.
i4 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSTC IN CHINA

Another instrument, the cbuen, possessed twelve open strings.. . IIIOI-(. cffcctively than at any other time. ( W e have already noted
plus a very different thirteenth string which, unlikc the others, was I I I . L I lLr such festivals, the T'ang Dynasty is said to havc brought
stretched along a calibrated scalc. Here, the twelve strings represent 11 ,!:ctl~cr an 'orchestra' of ten thousand performers.) Invigorated by
the twelve zodiacal and Tonal diffcrentiations of the Logos, while ~l~c.sc four outpourings of Cosmic Sound each year, thc carth
the thirteenth string corresponds t o the Logo5 itself. (The same I-c-ccived what we might call an annual four-movement 'sytmphony
cosmological relationship is evident in the instance of the twelve # , I tllc stars'. By sci~ntificallyinvoking as much as poasiblc of this
tribes of ancient Israel dnd thc th~rtecnthtribe - the pricsthood. wcrcd energy down into the earth-plane, the holding of four annual
Later, this samc mandala appeared in the form of the twelve I)t.riods of holy ritual ensured the greatest brnefit f o r the n,ltion in
disciples and Jesus Christ.) ,111 its affairs during the ensuing threc months.
At times yct another variable waq employed tn order t o infuse
& 2
An awareness of these four vital periods is : lcnt
music with cosmic principles: the number of musici:tns. For instance, rl~roughoutthe spiritual and occult history of thc W c s r c l . ~world.
~
the gigantic outdoor band of the T'ang Dy11;tsty included 4 8 Iior example, pagan and witchcraft celebrations sought 10 rlt;~nncl-
singcrs, or one t o correspond with each nf t h c four clement:i in , ~ n doften to pervert - the energies of the solstice or cqt~itlnxinto
relation t o each of the twelve Tones ( 4 1~ 2). C l n c i n J o. ..o..~v~cilcstra
-L .. lcvcls of the mortal libido. In reply, the rarly Christians. hcilip ;~lso
includcd 1 2 0 (1 OX 12) harpists. No doubt thcrt. would bc numerous .ware of the esotcric significance of the four mid-season;tl points,
other examples, but our knowledge md;ty oi t l ~ cprrcisc numbers ,stablished a number of celebrations and holy rituals in ordcr o n c c
and makc-up of most of the ancient orchcstr;~.;ic inuomplcte. nore t o see the sacred energies channelled purely and altruistically.
Every conceivable aspect of music wits, l l ~ r . r l , ;lligtlcd with thc Chief among these periods were Easter and Christmas (spring
Above, that nothing remained mund;~nc.'1'1)~.~.c..;ulr w.15 a scierztifj:~ equinox and winter solstice). W e might also remark, in passing, tli;~t
art; art for the sake ofpracticd p.f.; l p c ~ v . I$y I.~.(.;II~~I,I:
;I 1o11;tI art which these occasions are today, for the most part, once more celcbratcd in
- - . . .
)agan and hedonistic manner.. . (Would t h e spiritual atrnosphcre of
was an accurate countcrpar Ic.stial. orci c r ,
the ancients were convincrc mcdium for he carth be turned around and accelerated once more if the four
the entry of heavenly prc ,ics into the acred convocations came again t o be observed in the correct way.
matter-world. hrough the more general and widespread use of 11oIy song and
The carth had become imperfect duc t o l l ~ r * i11h;lrmonious ~eautifulmusic?)
thoughts, words and deeds of a n imrcrfect I i u n ~ ; ~v ~ . ~l Zi~rt tall could
be restored t o pcrfccrion and maintained hy I I ~ I . !:ivi~~gforth of THE W N G CHUNG AS THE FOUNDATION OF
perfect music. Thus a line of stability could III. I I I - I c I , ~llroughthc CIVILIZATION
science of sacred sound, against the furthcr cnc ~ - r j ; t t I)rncnt of discor- T o the sages and emperors of ancient China, the alignment of carth
dant forces which, if a balance was not held, c o ~ ~ lIir l* ; ~ c lto disaster. with heavcn, and of man with thc Supreme, was literally thc
Sacred sound was such a balance against impcrfe.t [ion ; I I I ~evil. And purpose of life. An important part of this process was to consciously
more: correctly applied music was belicvrtl 1 0 I-)L. capable of align the civilization with celestial principles and proportions. For
eventually re-aligning the world t o its originill ;111cl I)(.~.I'(*ct Source. example, we have seen that great attention was paid t o ensure that
Does not the music of the world have its hi!:l~li,i:l~rs,its louder o r he music of civilization was aligned with the Logos by means o f
more important passages? S o it was with t h r ~ \ ~ ' ~ i i ~of~ the l i o stars.
~ ~ y tandardizing all musical pitchcs according t o the haang chung. But -
Vitally important emanations of T o n e wcrc l~r-lir.c'rtlto inundate the vhat of the dimensions of thc length and the width of objects? S<)
. .
earth at ccrtain special times of the year. TI,1 1 , lllltl-pclints of each much for the music of civilization, but what of its systcm o f
season, the t w o solstices and t w o equinoxes, wrhrr' pe riods during weights? Should not all bc standardized according t o thc Ahovc.
which vast radiations of sacred energy werc 1.1 - I t , ~ \ r at t l the spiritual and nor only musical pitches! W a s it not a fact that Cnsrnic Souncl
Ievel. Music could act as the medium to aiuI .rll~nt. I 1'
ufe-enhancing was the basis of ewerything,and that it determined thc w~kight.c i ~ r .
forces t o enter more fully into the material world; I Ilc-rcfore it was at ~ n dtone of all things? Yet here there was a prr,l~lt*ln : it w . ~ s
thesc four times of the gear that music and rir11:kl c.ottld be used still rlatively simple t o harmonize worldly sound wit11 C o s n ~ i cS O L I I--I ~ ~
p---

F-l,
I
/ I j6 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN CHINA 17
l ,l

I 'i by discovering the earthly scale of tones which corresponded with 'I'H E ETERNAL QUEST
twelve notes of the Chinese musical scale each had their
I,
l the Cosmic Tones; but how could the non-tonal systems of measure-
ment also become accurate reflections of the principles of the
'11~-
~clividualnames, this being also true of the foundation tonerthe
heavens? rrmg chung, itself, the musical note of which was called tung. As we
i As in the case of their universal adherence to one foundation II.IVC seen, this foundation note was considered to be the earthly

I 1 ' ~ pitch for their music, it was a vital matter t o the Chinese that all of ~~~;~nifestation of divine will, and a sacred, eternal principle, upon
l' their systems of standardization be sacred, not profane. It was a which was based the proportional systems of the entire State. This
vital matter to them since, according to the ageless philosophy, that r;lises, then, an ultimate question: what would happen if the nnts
~ which mirrored the heavens was, like thc heavens, eternal. A taken to be the pitch of kung was out of tune, no longer being thc
~, civiltxation which mirrored the Above would never pass away, for every
institution and object within it provided a medium for the containment of
perfect receptacle for divine energies?
The entire State would become out of alignment to the Above! The

' I .
4, 'l
life-enhancing, invlgorarzng cosmic forces. O n the other hand, the
civilization which was founded upon arbitrary, mortal principles
could never long endure, but was inevitably doomed to transience
:curacy of the kung was therefore absolutely paramount. As the
:hinese text, Memorial of Music, warns: 'If the Kung is disturbed,
len there is disorganization, the prince is arrogant.16 So that if the
I and decay. tang was inaccurate, all manner of things would be likely to go
And so, thousands of years ago, at a time so distant that mankind wrong. Even the ruling prince might become iaharmonious and a
today posssesses no accurate records of it, some individual must poor receptacle for divine will, imposing his own human will upon
l1 have set about finding the solution to this problem. Perhaps after ' ~ epeople. The perfect kung was then, in short, the great key to a
much preparatory fasting, prayer, thought and meditation, the ~rfect,golden-age civilization.
I l,, revelation was at last received of how, from the possession of only Yet how, indeed, could they ever be sure that the note which
the divine pitch of sound, all divine proportions could be derived. ley took to be tung was perfectly accurate? H o w could there be
1,
In the case of music, thc key to accurate alignment with Cosmic ly certainty that the pitch pipe they used was absolutely true in its

~
8 1

Sound was the huan'q chung foundation tone. And to produce this me .? ..
~
" tone, a pipe of specific dimensions had to be blown, did it not? And so it was that the search for the pure, immaculate tonal
Then right here were the required proportions ! The pitch, length reflection of the One Tone assumed supremely idealistic, mystical
l,
; ~i
and volume of the pipe were completely interrelated: change the proportions. The instrument which could give to man the founda-
l1 length, for instance, and the volume automatically changed with it, tion tone for a musical scale which was in perfect harmony with the
as did the pitch the pipe would produce. Only thepipe ofperfect lerzgth universe was the key to earthly paradise, and essential for the
l
l
andpevfect volitme couldproduc~the peffect yellow bell' tone. Hence, its security and evolution of the racc. It became a Chinese Holy Grail,
length became the standard Chinese length of mcasurement, its the goal of the ultimate quest. One legend tells of the wonderful

' 1 1'1
capacity the standard of volumc, and the number of grains of rice or
of millet whch the pipe could contain rendered a standard weight
measurement. So closely affiliated did music and thc standardization
of all other dimensions in China become that the Imperial Office of
journey of Ling Lun, a minister of the second legendary Chinese
Emperor, Huang Ti. Ling Lun was sent like an ancient Knight of
King Arthur t o search for a spccial and unique set of bamboo pipes.
These pipm were so perfect that they could render the precise.

~
l
Music was associated with the Office of Weights and Mcasure- standard pitches t o which all other instruments throughout the land
ment. And the sacred pipe which gave this standardization was could then be tuned. Looking closely at this and other such legendc,
often owned, not, by the former office, but by the latter.67'4f- As it is discovered that they are deeply symbolic: even as the perfectly
;' 1 though to demonstrate for all time the ultimate degree of their
idealism and scientific devotion to the Above, the Chinese
tuned pitch pipes could be the standard for the tuning of all othrr
instruments. therefore bringing earthly music into conformity w i ~ 11
I l theoretically succeeded in aligning their entire culture and civiliza- universal harmony, so too could the perfectly 'tuned' or self-rrnli7r.tl
tion to the huang chung, and therefore to the Logos. man become the standard for all other men to follow.
l
What was the precise pitch which was actually used :IS~ l l cnorc.,
'!
l

l
18 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN CHINA 19
kung? Modern researchers have not been able to determine it p'ssesses the ability to transform - improve or degrade - civiliza-
exactly, but estimates place it at between middle C minor and the F
a b o v e . V h e final Chinese dynasty seems to havc placed kung at ..
tion. Virtually every major civilization of antiquity held this vicw.
l he wise among them were thercfore very much awarc of the
around D, at a pitch of 601 . ) c.p.s. according to a report by the pitfalls of either extreme in music - over-rigidity or over-innovation
musicologist van Aalst in 1 8 8 4 . ' ' However, this does not mean - and sought to achieve a balance between the two. h unwise
that all the previous dynasties took the same pitch, D. as their foun- degree of innovation or a condition of outright musical anarchy
dation note. The Chincsc did not conceive of the universe or of the c o a d prove deadly to the State. But, o n the other hand, complete
heavens as being static. Even as works of earthly music progress inflexibility could cause music to stagnate.
through various different melodies, rhythms, contrasts, keys and H o w t o avoid stagnation in music, and yet steer well clear of the
movemcnts, so too, according to thc ancients, did thc crlestial music treacherous rocks of absolute anarchy? I n their own way, each of
which was thc Source of all earthly tones. As astrological configura- +he great ancient civilizations formulated its own unique variation
tions changed, so too did the universal harmonics. WC1r;ive already )n the same basic solution: stagnation could be avoided, and
seen that the progression from one zodiacal n i o r ~ ~tol ~another ,reativity encouraged in safety, by the adoption of a musical system
indicated quit< literally a modulation in the Music of the twelve .vhich allowed the composers or performers free expression - within
Tones. At times this could mean that Cosmic Sr,ilncl 11;icichanged so certain well-defined rules and regulations. The Chinese variation on
significantly that, though the kung had hrcn ;tc.cllr;it tuned to it, it
(sly
this solution was twofold. Firstly, new compositions of music were
was so no longer. The kung would thcrcforc rciluirc nlociifying. allowed provided that they were not obviously immoral or anarchic.
''
Just think what this meant: with the i t io11OS tl le &~g, tlhe All new compositions were required t o conform to the standard
State's entire system of weights ;incl I nit ;ill ~bjectsar~d system of musical notes, modes, etc. and thus were aligned with the
things based upon them also 11;1J 10 I l ! Only i n this W;'Y Above. But the fact that new works of music could come forth
co~lldthe State be realigned with cclrsrl;~~ n ~ Whrnevcr ~l n e
p l - ~ iplr.s. -

levertheless provided scope for the introduction of new melodies


first emperor of a new, incoming Jyn;isty took t l ~ ( ~Ilrorlc,
' one thing .nd beneficial moods. This helped to guarantee that the musical arts
only was on his mind as the first and forerrlost thin!; ro d o : to seek
to correct thc note. kung. (Aftcr all, if' the krtrix I 1 1 I l ~ cprevious
etained sufficient fluidity so as to be able to keep- pace
- with new
astrological conditions.
dynasty had been in pcrfcct harmony with tlir ~ * I C I . I ) . I I pri~ici~les
of Yet even then there remained, the Chinese believed, scope for a
the universe, how coul~lt h e dynasty ever havr cntlr~l... ?) dangerous over-rigidity. For what if the celestial harmonics them-
selves changed in a major and prrmancnt way, and yet the system of
RIGIDITY VS. JNNOVATION: THE CRUCI AI. musical rules did not? Would not this. too, place the music of the
DILEMMA nation into a state of perilnus inharmony in relation to Cosmic
This willingncss of thc Chinese to alter their 'yellow I)cII' foundation Sound? W e see, therefore, thc cxtrcmc value of being allowed to
note constituted an ingcnius theoretical solur ic I I I r c the timeless modify thc kung. According to the Chinese, a kung which remained
problem in music of rigidity vs. innovation. Tl~i\v i r ; ~ lissuc is onc absolutely inflexible over ninny ccnturies could ultimately prove
we shall he returning to in relation to the n111~ir. 01' India. The suicidal t o a civilization. This was bccause a static kung - and a
question is: to what extent should music hc rr?:l~l;~tc*ciand con- static music - c o d d only rct;iin its value if the universe itself w;a
trolIed, and to what extent allowed freedom of rxlwcssion? T o what static, which it was not. Over-rigidity in music could thereforc
extent should the prevailing music be rigidly ~ l ~ . ~ i ~ l t a i and
n e d ,to prove just as dangerous as too much innovation. That which did not
what extent permitted to alter? adjust to the new day was fated to fade away.
Changes in the music of the nation might ulrilll:~rcl~ prove to be However much one may agrcc or disagree with the specifics of'
genuinely beneficial; the innovations might truly I)(. for the purpose the ancient Chinese musical science, its belief that it is csscnti;il to
of evolving and improving the tonal arts. Or /Irrr rurght not. O n e steer a middle-way between the twin pitfalls in music oi ovcSl.-
realizes the immense significance which this rigitlit p vs. innovation rigidity and anarchy is surely a valid and timely reminder 10 rhc
dilemma held for any culture which accepted tllc vicw that music peoples of any age.
60 THE SECRET P O W E R O F MUSIC MUSIC IN CHINA 61

THE M Y S T I C I S M OF MUSIC AND N U M B E R In the philosophical system of China the number fivc was par-
'Music expresses the harmony of heaven and earth,' states the ~icularlyimportant, so it is of little surprise that their musical scale
Memorial of Music. And in the Record of Rites wc are told that, should also have been pentatonic. Phenomena of a widely diverse
'since 3 is the symbolic numeral of heaven and 2 that of the earth, nature were categorized into divisions of five, each of the fivc divi-
sounds in the ratio 3 :2 will harmonize heaven and earth'. To apply sions being associated with one of the five musical notes. Thc notcs
this concept in practice, the Chinese took the foundation tone, the of the rulers, seasons, elements, colours, directions and planets wcrc
huang chung, and from it produced a second notc in the 3:2 ratio. as shown in Table 2.
For example, having constructed a musical string which, when
Table 2: The Fiz,e Notes and Their Symbolic Correspondences
plucked, sounded the huang chung (or ' b n ~ ' )notc, a sccond note in
the 3 :2 ratio could be produced b y pressing the strinl; ngainst a fret
one third of the distance from its end, and I,y ~hcllplucking the Note
remaining length of t w o thirds. (Alternativrly, ;I srcond string of Category
Kung Shang Chiao Chi Yii
t w o thirds the length of the first could hc t~sctl.)This 3:2 ratio
between the two pitches is called by m u s i c i : ~ ~I O~C\ I ; I ~ the perfect Political Emperor Ministers Loyal Subjects Affairs of State Produce or
fifth. By taking this sccond note, and then c o l ~ ~ i ~ ~ along ~ ~ i r t similar
!; or Prince or Public Material
lines, through, a ccrtain system a total o j I wt,lvc. I I O I C S altogether Works Things
could be produced, all being related I,y ;I ~ . ~ t . Il )r !. I)c.rScctfifths or Scason - Autumn Spring Summer Winter
3 :2 ratios. The result: twelve notcs ; t I I tlc.~.ivt,(l11.0111 the sacred
lement Earth Metal Wood Fire Water
hzldng chung; twelvc earthly cout1terl);trlc I 1 1 ' 1 lit. I wt.lvc. 'T'oncs.
Of the twelve notes, or I$ as thr C l ~ i ~ ~ rc., ;sl ltl r., r l lllc.n~,only s e w n olour Yellow White Blue Red Black
urerc incorporated into the music;rl s r , ; ~ l rwltic 1 1 w;r6: . ~ ( . t ~ ~ aused. lly lirection Centre Wcst East South North
The twelve 1; can be said tn hxvr ;11y7r.osirn.11c~l~ 1 111.1.c.sponded to Ylanct Saturn Venus Jupiter Mars blcrcury
the twelve notes of the modern chrom;{tic sc.:~Ic;~ 1 i r 111~. I seven more
important Chinese notes with the scvcn major I l c I l r . , ~ oi roct;ty's scale: From Grove's Dictionay of Music and Mlcsicians ( 1 9 14 edition)
Do-Re-Mi-Fa-Sol-La-.<;. Rut of thcsr srvc.11. I I I I ~ C:l~incsevery
rarely made use of the t w o sen~itoncs,so th;tt in ~ l ~ - ~ ~ c , l only i c - c . a five- It is impossible not t o notice the prime importance here assigned
note, or pentatonic, scale was utilized. The sitnlc. w . ~ \,tIso thr case in t o kung. Symbolically, it was related t o the head of State, the earth
Egypt, Greece and other ancient civilizations. ' I * l ~ i \l ~ c ~ ~ i t ; ~scale ~onic element, and the centre ( r ~ t h r rthan to any direction of the
therefore consisted roughly of the notes wc now.~tl.~v\ ~*c.lcr to as F, compass).$
G, A, C and D.
Hence, the mysticism attached t o the nun~l>c.l-,I . 2 . 3 . j. 7 and MODE = MOOD
1 2 is discovered within music as follows: T h e five notes were also each rtl;ttcd to one of five important virtues
- benevolence, righteousness, pt.oprict)r, knowledge and faith.' In
1 -The O n e Tone, or Cosmic Sound. of tl~t.\ I I ~ Y IT I ~ C . this we have one of the first, f:iscinating recorded instances of man'?
2 -The T'ai chi: the first differentiation 01 I Iw ( )11c. association of different psycliolc~~ical qualities to specific pitchcs.
3 - T h e Trinity: offspring of the T'ai chi. The belief that specific m ~ n i c ; ~expressions
l each exert their owl1
12 -The twelve Tones of the zodiac, thcir ( - , I I - I lily counterparts objective effect upon man is at rhc very heart of the suhjccr ot' ~ l i r
being produced from a series of 3 :2 rat i t 1, inner power of music. The Chincse, in addition t o linking not(..; wir 1 1
5 -The five minor tones of the twelvc. virtues, were also convinced that the various styles o i c o n ~ l i ~ i . ~ t i l ~ ~ ~ ~ .
7 -The seven major tones of the twclvr ( 0 1 which five arc of notes - that is, the different modes - also had thcir O W I I ~lr.l~r~irl.
whole tones and two semitones). influences over man's crnotions. According t o the tr111il, L 1 , 1 1 1 11 11.11 1 1
.
and other important notes within a given piece o l rn~~sit. I I I I I .I$4 ( 1 1
62 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN CHINA 63
ding to their order in the melodic note-sequences, so would the hand' that continued to sustain a certain mould or matrix over
emotional and moral effect upon the listener be determined. W e Chinese civilization. Yet the mould may well have consisted of
might express this concept in the short formula: MODE = something more potent and vigorous in its practical effect than the
MOOD. natural philosophy alone. And the Chinese themselves bclicvcd that
There is good reason to suppose that the practical application of this was so: they were convinced that life pattcrns follow music
this formula by the Chinese musicians played a central role in deter- pattcrns; as in music, so in life; and that a stable music crisurcd a
mining the entire course of Chinese history. During the several stable State.
thousand years of the history of China there were at least some The effect of music upon a nation was conceived as being like
pcriods of internal conflict and of invasion from foreign lands, and that of a magnet held bencath a picce of paper upon whicl~iron
yet through it all the essential 'flavour' of the civilization - its filings are placed: shake the filings about, drop morc upon rl~cm,do
philosophy, its lifestyle, and even the physical appearance of its what you will, but the magnet and its magnetic ficld will c o ~ ~ t i n utoc
architecture and styles of clothing - remaincd much the same. sustain the same pattern and order. The pattern of iron filings can be
Compare this to the people of Europe during the sanic period (3000 changed only by the moving of the magnet itsclf, o r its rcpl;tccnient
BC to the opening of the twentieth-century) with all the comings by a differently shaped one. In exactly the same way that a magnet
and goings of races, the risings and failings. mass exterminations cornpells the pattern of filings into conformity with its o w n f'icli, so
through war and plague, and the extreme cultural differences during Confucius and the other Chinese were certain that
those five millennia, and we begin to g;tin s o m c idea of the modes ruled moods, music thus influencing life.
magnitude of the Chinese accomplishment ! And now, in these
trying, final decades of the twentieth century - whcn calamitous THE LEGENDARY ORIGINS OF CHINESE CLASSICAL
extremes of chaos reign, when many c:ln sc;trcely believe that MUSIC
Western civilization can survive another f'ifiy yc.;~r-S.rllc world being But where did this mysterious music and its cntire cosmological
threatened by an overwhelming multitude ol' rl;tngrrs including the basis c m e from? A legitimate question, especially if we are begin-
threats of potential nuclear war, tu~nultuoussor-i;rl upheavals and ning to suspect that the esoteric power claimed for this music may,
natural cataclysms - is it not now or never tll:lt wc should step in at least some respects, have been a real one. M'ho, then, first
down from our frail, insubstantial platforms of' ct~ltur:tlpride, and brought forth this music and its power, and h o w i
take a long, cool look - with huniility - at the poldcn itgc of China? According to the Chincsc thcmselves, the origin of their music
H o w did they maintain the same basic culti~rcxncl socic!ty, largely lies in the mysterious legendary pcriod of the third millennium RC -
unaffected by all the cvents which threatened thrni, ovcr tbousatzds legendary because little or no hard archaeological evidence has been
of years? What was the secret? Was it one which wchcould apply discovered to attest to this era. However, it would seem likely that
today? And - perhaps equally important - wh:tt, ~IIC'II, was it that the civilization did indeed cxisr ;it 1c;ist as early as this, even though
eventually did lead to the downfall of the ancicr~tChinese civiliza- until quite recently, modern scho1;trs scoffed at the mention within
tion? Is there a warning lesson for us to be gleaned 6.0111 the event? old Chinese texts of d~nasticswhich the texts claimed t o have
Grove's Dictionary of Music and Musicians pcrcrl~tivclycomments existed at around 1 5 0 0 RC. (Probably much of the scholars'
on the fact that, 'Despite the vicissitudes of timr, clcstruction, wars, disbelief stemmed from thcir vcry inability to accept that the
foreign influences and independent experimrnr, a11 has been civilization could have extendrd. relatively unchanged, over such a
assimilated or rejected and guided back by ... IChina's] persistent vast period.) Then, to their embarrassment, diggings began to
natural philosophy as by a hidden hand.'6 unearth the relics of those very dynasties. That which had been
N o doubt there is considerable truth in this, th:t~the philosophical legendary became a matter of known history. It seems wisc thcn.
and religious world-view of the Chinese aacd throughout the not to adopt a sceptical stance towards the legendary era of thc
millennia as a guiding, ordering agent. Yet how, indeed, was the third millennium BC.
philosophy itself able to abide for so long, rclativcly unchanged? The ancient texts of China itself associate the establishment of
Grove's Dicliotzaty is obviously correct in speaking of a 'hidden thcir music with five enigmatic, legendary personasvs who. it is said,
64 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN CHINA 65
were China's first monarchs. N o ordinary monarchs, these, iichieve equal temperament. (That is, to develop a system of exactly
however. Divine in nature, these five rulers are accredited with the q u a l intervals between the twelve liii, rather than to i~scthe ancient
entire genesis of the civilization, and with the setting forth of the system of twelve notes related by slightly unequal but gcomctrically
philosophy which would maintain the State oncc thcy themselves perfect 3 :2 intervals.) As late as the sixteenth-century AD. Prince
had departed. The first of them, Emperor Fu Hsi, is said to have Tsai-Yu is said t o have embarked upon the quest for equal tempcra-
been the founder of the monarchy and the 'inventor' of music. Fu mcnt. First studying all the works he could find on the thcory of
Hsi is also reputed to have been the author of the I Ching. H e is said music, he then would probably have fasted, in the traditional
to have reigned from around 2 8 j 2 BC. Reflecting the ancients' Chinese manner, in order to purge from his form all physical and
belief in the power of music to create an invisiblc nlalrix for the pre- psychological dross which might hinder his reception of spiritual
cipitation of physical events and conditions, Fu Hsi's music was illumination. Then he sat down and meditated deeply upon the
called fu-hi (to 'help to occur'), or sometimes fi-)en (to 'establish the problem. Days and nights passed. But at last, we are told, 'the light
foundation'). Every culture has its own unique music, and by first of truth was revealed to him', and he realized the precise formula for
bringing forth the style of Chinese tonal art, T:u tlsi established the equal temperament.
foundation for the civilization. Prince Tsai-Yu's contemporaries appear not to have been taken
The following four divine rulers also placrcl g r c . ; ~c ~ n ~ h a supon is by the idea of equal temperament, however, for no Chinese instru-
music; they seem to have realized that it w;is i l l 111is;ire that the keys ments have ever been discovered which were tuned in such a way.
could be placed for the indefinite stahilil y :11it1 111.1intrnanceof the Their reason for objecting probably concerned the different
civilization they were manifesting. T' ' ' ' , Huang Ti cosmological significances associated with the two systems of
(from c. 2697 BC) is said to have est: rhung foun- tuning: the ancients' use of unequal but geometrically perfcct
dation tone and the musical systc.111 Ie also for- intervals between the notes implied infinite transcendence and
mulated a particular style of nl~rsir;~~ I l r - r l r r l r ~ r . ~ r ~ [ wlrich exerted contact with the heavens, while the use of tempered, equal intervals
magical influences and was known as hsirn-rl~ih,or ';(]l-pervading meant that a slight geometrical imperfection - and hence, a slight
infl~ence'.~ But precisely who the five enigmatic t l i v i ~ l c ,rulers were, cosmological inharmony - resultcd.
and whence came their wisdom, is unknown. 'I'l~c. ~ I I I I story of the Apart from brief experiments, then, China retained the original
establishment of the Chinese cosmo-conccptitrn ;111tl IS music is system of twelve fiii based on a cycle of perfect fifths. And as
therefore still shrouded in quitc a heavy vciling o i mys1c.r.y. recently as AD 17 12 the Ch'ing Dynasty finally rejected the
The work of further developing the tonal arts was v:il-liedout by principle of equal temperament once and for all. (This at the very
later legendary emperors. These expanded thr I ~ l ~ i l o ~ obehind l~l~y time that equal temperament was about to become acceptcd in the
music, expressed specific teachings on the psycl~olo~:it~,il ;ind moral West, through the work of J . S. Bach and others, as the firm basis
effects of the different individual sounds. ;111tl ;itltlcd t o the of virtually all Western music from then until now.) The dynasty
sophistication of the musical arts in their praaic;il prrlt wniance. This fully reverted t o the ancient system accredited to the first divine
was the golden age of Chinese music and civiliz;ltion. ruler, Fu Hsi, of no less than four and a half thousand years earlier.
It is important to realize that every such decision during the
THE HISTORICAL ERA history of China, whenever possible alterations in the musical systenl
Not that the musical system remained nhroln~rly unchanged were under consideration, was treated with extreme caution :incl
throughout those many centuries. From the b e g i ~ ~ of ~ the
~ i ~better-
~g conservatism. If even the slightest of changes was agreed upon. it
documented, historical dynasties we find that tlbc-rr wcre a number was done in the full belief that it would result in a definitr, p;~r;~llc*l
of alternative systems of liii developed at lc;i..t in theory. One effect upon the f ~ of thc
~ nation
e itself. For we must remvml1c.r:
involved not twelve liii as in the traditional syqtvm, hut a total of the Chinese philosophy stated that innovations in the ton;il : t r l h
360, no less! Such innovative ideas seem to havct 11;id little lasting would ultimately becomepreciscb mirrored in society ; ~ I;irl:c.
t I r l t III.
practical effect upon the music of the people, howc.vc.r. case of equal temperament, for example, the sagcs wotiltl 11;ivc
Several Chinese texts speak of attempts t 1 ~ 1wcre made to expected that its adoption, to increase the melcxlic pc~ssil)ilitic~~ of'
011 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN CHINA 67

c.irthly music, but at the expense of geometrical alignment with the I ~ . l v c *lain
in resisting an official acceptancc of Western music. The
heavens, would also be mirrored in an adjustment in society - rlrlisic.could have been officially rejected. But the Ch'ing monarchs
possibly towards a greater development of technology and material ton~mitted what was, from the viewpoint of their ancestors, an
progress, but at the expensc of spiritual attunement and the mystical in(-t.cdibly grievous crror: with the emperor's blessing, Western
frame of mind. (Exactly the course of events in the West, inci- rr/\/riir)zents were introduced! And: Westerners were acccpted - as
dentally, from around the time of the adoption of cqual tempera- pro/i.r.rors of music a t the imperial court!
ment in the eighteenth century, make of it what we will. However, In our search for the culprit responsible for the decline of China's
one would certainly hesitate to denounce equal temperament, since it ~ ~ w n the music of the West may be something of a rcd
music,
so increases music's harmonic possibilities.) I~cving,however. Despite the official acceptance of the foreign
~ ~ ~ u sthose
i c , European musicians who travelled t o China during the
THE LOSS OF THE LOGOS :l~'ingDynasty reported that the music of the West was still not
For four and a half millennia the music and its civilization was main- .~~)~'reciated there. And after all, it was far from being thc first time
tained. And then . . . the musicfell into decline. 111;ita foreign music had 'invaded' the land. One Chinesc source
It happened during the Ch'ing Dynasty - the final dynasty - of I-cbvcalsthat in AD 8 1 no fewcr than seven foreign orchestras were
AD 1644-1 9 1 2 . To the ancient philosophers the decline of their Iwing permanently maintained at the imperial court. N o lack of
people's music would have been a tendency of vast and perilous Iro~cntialtonal subversion here! Of the so-called Seven Orchestras:
significance. Yet with the decline in the music during the Ch'ing
Dynasty, the civilization also deteriorated, just as the ancients . . . one had come from Kaoli, a Tungus country; another from
would have predicted it must; and therefore the ancicnt wisdom India; a third from Buchara; a fourth from Kutcha in East
itself was gradually forgotten. In other words, once a people have Turkistan, with twenty performers of mostly Western instru-
lost such wisdom, they arc no longer wise enough to know that they ments, which had been established as early as AD 384 and was so
have lost it - a variation on the myopic man who cannot find his much in favour that the emperor tried t o bar it. Individual
glasscs (because he has not got them on). This is a dangerous closed musicians from Cambodia, Japan. Silla, Samarkand, Paikchei,
circle from which, once fallen prey to, thcrc is little likelihood of Kachgar and Turkey mingled in them. Thc 'scholars', puristic
return, as numerous historical examples testify. As the classical music defenders of the ancient music, protested; but in vain.I6
of China progressively withered, so also faded the ability of the
people to understand what this really meant according to the wise of So robust had the traditional music and its associated philosophy
formcr times. I)roved to be over the millennia, that even such an onslaught as this
But how did the compromise and dissolution of the traditional (;lrne to nothing. Ultimately, the ancicnt music had always absorbed
music begin in the first place? (Not merely a surface question, this. what it could of foreign sounds, and, like a grgantic amoeba, spitting
H o w does any civilization and its arts begin to fall below the level c I l l t thc: indigestible remains of its prey, ejected the rest. There was

of their highest achievementsi) 110 par ticular reason to have expected any more glorious a fate for

Could it have been causcd by thc introduction into China of a 11ic mLlsic of the West. That it did gain a foothold, and that thc
music more totally foreign than anything its people had ever known .tl,tulllonal
.... music did decline, may wcll be due less to the alien
beforc - that of the West? Even prior to the final Ch'ing Dynasty, 111tluenceof the Western music than t o a weakening of the hold of
Roman church music had entered with the arrival of the first 111eancient philosophy over the people.
Western missionaries. In time, Western secular music followed. N o Then again. at least one contemporary writer (John Michrll, in
matter how legitimate and good the Mrestern music may have becn (.'IQ of Revelation published by Garnstone Press), looking .I[ r l ~ c .
in itself, it obviously had precious little in common with the Oriental prhblcrn of the decline from a more exalted level, has p o ~ ~ c I r ~ - ( ~ l
style. Being unable t o add to the traditional art, Western music whethcr, ~ e r h a ~ sthe , celestial harmonics which su.;~:tinrtl I I I C
co~ddtherefore only pervert or supplant it. From the point of view vihrati,nnal mat,rix of the Chinese civilization had nor rl~crn\rlvr\
of maintaining the purity of China's own native music, safety might .,I I ivedl at the conclusion of their part in the syrnpl~olivo! rllr

1111ivc~r5 ;e ...
0X THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN CHINA 69
Whatever its cause, that a decline was occurring became I IIN-I.,I. And, believe it or not, the basic story-lines of tod;ty's operas
progressively unmistakable. At around the middle of the 1800s the .I!? Il.rrluently derived from the productions of fornlcr times.
classical drama, its music and its subject matter firmly rooted in the I I lwcvcr, slight changes have been made since the civil war and
l
time-honoured traditions, began to be replaced by the modern style ( : ~ ~ r ~ ~ l l ivictoryt ~ n i s t of the late 1940s: in unquestioned wisclonl, the
of Chinese drama, which met with greater popularity. In the field of I,l~l~crs of the revolution have seen fit to replace the tradition:tl
pure music meanwhile, the great classical modes were supplanted by 1 1 1 I ,I.~gonists in the operas. The original legendary, spirit u;tIly
styles which were more popular, noisier, cheaper and i m i t a t i ~ e . ~ f.lr.v,~tcdindividuals have been supplanted by uniform-clad 'workers'
The fact remains that this decline in music was definitely . 1 1 i i 1 rcvolutionaries. The titles and story-lines have also I-)c-cn
paralleled by a general decline in the civilization itself. The emperors .t~lj~ls~ed, now being concerned with one of four basic themcs: (;I)
of the final dynasty, perceiving immense danger in the progressive I r.volution, (b) political reform, (c) anti-Capitalism, and (d) praise of
cheapening of the tonal arts, attempted t o direct music back to its 1111~.or more prominent political figures, the particular names and
former state of idealistic conformity with the immutable principles I.,c.rs changing with the changes in the political climate. The moilcrn
of the cosmos. ( :Ilincse concert-goer must choose between works such as the S<rc.red
But without result. Ill(rr Symphony, The Ming Tombs Reservoir Cantata and ballets stlc.11
In 1912 the imperial house which had governed China for the .I\ The Red Detachment of Women. Strange t o say, faced with such
incredible period of almost five thousand years at last came to an ,111 inspiring and bewildering variety of permitted subject mattcr.
end, being replaced by a republic. Yet from its beginning, the :lrinese musicians are not so noted these days for their degrcc of
republic was rocked by tumult and instability. 1 ~.c.;~tivity and inspiration.
Western music had by now begun to be appreciated. Western 'There is also one other medium through which sound radiatcs
orchestras performed in China. and increasing numbers of European I I , I . L ~ from the nestled villages and seething cities of latter-day
music teachers settled there. Thc Chinese themselves learned t o ( :I~ina. make of it what we will ....
pcrform Western, rather than their own traditional, music. White According, again, to the current political climate, almost the
crooners crooned in clubs; jazz bands blew the blues in the H o n g c.ntire populace - from the youngest of schoolchildren to the eldest
Kong and Shanghai bars. I 11' workers. from Peking to the smallest of villages - is 'requested' to
But, alas, where was the hidden haad? Where the mysterious, ol,scrve a daily routine of anti-Capitalist songs and death-chants. In
unseen influence to maintain stability throughout all 'the vicissitudes this second half of the twentieth century, while our own
of time, destruction, wars, foreign influences and independent * . L hoolchildren were beginning the day with morning prayers and
experiment'? (The ancient philosophy and its music was by now llylnns to God, Chinese children and their eldcrs were ending theirs
almost non-existent.) The republic survived - not another five with repeated, rhythmic, full-throated shouts for our death and
thousand years, but less than fifty. Soon the remnants of thc tlcstruction.
Nationalist forces were fleeing to the island now known as Taiwan, What was going on in their minds as they did (and still do) S O ?
and Mao Tse-tung was striding into Peking, emanating the stream What were the real and derpest motives of their rulers in orchestrat-
of red 'thinks' bubbles of his Thoughts the whle. i ~ these ~ g death-chants? Was it only that they wished to indoctrinatc
Of music and civilization we havc not yet attempted to establish t l ~ cChinesc millions into an anti-Capitalist stance? Personally, 1
definitely which of the two leads thc way for the other. But, as in I,c.lievc that more was involved. W e may be witnessing here the sur-
the case of many other past civilizations, the saga of thc land of I;~cing on a gigantic scale of the deep-rooted, subconscious belicf,
China demonstrates clearly that the link between the two is an present in perhaps all of us, that by vocalizing our desires WC cm
intimate one. Ilc.lp make them occur.
But - dcath-chants? Black magic on an international sc;tlr? Of
THE USE OF SOUND IN MODERN CHINA c trursc. ns respectable citizens of the twentieth ccnrltry w r c.:innot
If we go in search of the tonal arts of mainland China as they exist .~cllnitthe possibility of such things. Granted, thr ;~nc,ic<nrs would
today, we find that they are largely based on the medium of the I I . I \ ~ ( * keen in no doubt. They would have seen tlic C : l ~ i r ~ c , \ c a c.ll;cntst o
70 T H E SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN CHINA 71

be an objective, if partly unconscious, attempt on a vast scale to .111cla fifth t o the torso from whence emanated thc heart-beat of thc
weaken and disintegrate the fabric of Western society through the Word, even as the fifth string of the Chinese zither emanated the
misuse of Cosmic Sound. The ancients would have believed in the krrrrcq. Similar symbolism relating to the number fivc is found in the

l reality of the phenomenon, and that such magic could work: that
the chants might materialize their effects in innumerable ways - in
tliversc legends and religions of many regions of the globe.

/ , I#/ I
I anything from the West's military defeat to its cconomic decline,
from its moral decay to the dividing of its unity between nations
and generations.

~~ But of course, such notions must remain entirely unacceptable t o


us. living as we d o in this modern era of scientific enlightenment.

li
W e know that the practice of chanting can only be propaganda, or
mere superstition.
Even as we know that it was mere coincidence that, with the
disappearancc of China's ancient philosophy ;lnd music, the nation
I r
dcgenerated from the c1assical opera tn thc 'dcatli-chant' within but
I llii a few decades.
Praise be t o the glories of twcr~ticth-ccnturyscience and art! W e
know today that sound is nothins rnore than air vibrations, for n o w
w e live in a much wiser age than did thc ancient Chincse.
'
'
~~~l

~~1
l
-Or dowe ...
?

Notes
+The legend of Ling I d ~ 1 ~ iin
, describing thc original pitch of the
h ~ n gchun<q convcys nlost poetically thc I,ogoic link betwecn
perfected consciou.;nc:s~ ; ~ n dthe perfcct foundation tonc: the original
tonc, it is attcstrcl, rn;~~ched thc precise pitch of Ling Lun's voice
when he .sppote eli~lro~t
p'~sszon."
t Less down-to-c;~rtliand more esoteric aspects of Chincse life werc
also related t o m ~ ~ s i cprinciples.
;~l For instance, the I Ching (Book of
Changes) scems to have been associ~~ted at a fundamental level with
the mysticism of' rnnsic. Both the J Ching and the ;ulcicnt Chincse
philosophy o f music stinrc thc same system of numerology, geometry
and cosmology. And as those who have used the J Chirzg will know
for themseIvcs, the or line c o n f i ~ r a t i o n s which symbolize
cosmic energies, and which configurations werc L I S C ~as symbols t o
indicate the eight classifications of Chinese instruments, are also
basic to the I Ching systcm of divination.
$ A similar cenrral relationship of the one to the other four was
recognized by the Christian Gnostics in respect of the fivc wounds
of the crucified Christ: four wounds t o the t w o hands and two fcct,
THE 'NEW MUSIC' 73
' 111;ctmorality, and the personal desire t o improve the quality of
c.haracter, is not illogical o r pointless, but the surest way t o
81~~t.'s

11r.1:.on;ilfulfilment and t o the greater benefit of all

1 1 i\ worth affirming, as in these the importancc of


- . l ~ ~ ~ ' andi ~ u amoral
l idcals, for it is precisely in the abandoning of
, , I I ( 11 ideals that theemusic of the twentieth century has, for thc most

2. 11.1r.1, departed from the inner direction of the music of the p;tst.

(lurs is an age in which nothing is accepted unquestioningly -


The Twentieth Century: r - i ~1.1c.rin the realms of science, or of social traditions, or of music. All
. .
The 'New Music' 11.tsr practices and beliefs arc open t o question. Granted too, ~t IS
~nclccdacceptable, and even wise, t o reassess the established tradi-
T h e philosophical outlook of most composers today is simply 1i011s of life, and those of music also. But what could [)c more
stated: the ideal is that there should be no ideals, and the rule must Ioolhardy than t o answer our o w n questions - with the wrong
be that there should be no rules. .tnswers! Precisely this occurred at around the turn of the century
In ancient China music was based upon the loftiest of philoso- when science, society and the arts each supplanted their nineteenth-
phical concepts. T o d a y serious music is more devoid of idealistic ( chncurypredecessors with a new outlook which leaned far towarcls
foundations than at any period during the history of man. I n ancient I l ~ position
c of complete materialism.
China only certain rhythms, mclodics and modes were deemed to be Let us unravel the story of how, in the world of music, this came
correct and beneficial. Today, as the listener t o modern music is only 1 0 pass.
too painfully aware, anything gocs.
From across the a w n s , thcsc t w o diametrically-opposed view- THE IDEmISM OF PRE-TWENTIETH-CENTURY
points confront each othcr head-on. And the question is: which is MUSIC
corrcct? O r at least, which of the t w o approaches more closely to I'rior t o the opening of our present century, serious music had been
the truth? Are the 'anything goes' twentieth-century composers truly ;tlmost invariably anchored upon spiritual ideals. Throughout the
corrcct, and werc the Chinese hopelessly superstitious and irrational Middle Ages serious music in the W e s t h a d been sustained as a
t o have cautiously held their music within certain margins? O r wr-re tradition only b y the Church. The Church used plainsong, organum
the Chinese corrcct in fact? Does music inevitably affect morality ; ~ n dother forms of religious music; and it was from this purely
and civilization, which would place many of our current composers, rcligious background that Western classical music emerged.
in the extent of their danger t o society, firmly among the ranks of Irrespective of their particular religious leanings, the grcat com-
thc terrorists and political agitators of our d a y ? posers of the classical and romantic eras werc all motivated in their
T h e dilemma of what is right and what is wrong in music is art by the highest of altruistic ; ~ n dsanctified ideals.
basically a moral question. W e choose which direction music should Liszt, for one, in his early cssay ' O n the Church Music of the
takc according t o our moral and spiritual outlook (or lack of it). It is Future' (1834), revealed thc basic motivation which was to drive
not the task of the present volume t o attempt t o prove the existence him throughout the rernaindcr of his creative life. Music, he statcd.
of G o d ; neither t o dive into the complexities of moral philosophy. contains a great power to move and inspire. Its beneficial influence
Nevertheless, it would be helpfill t o outline t w o fundamental can affcct all of life, both within and without the church. Therefore
postulates : it could be imbued with a renewed purpose and conttnt, being
composed with the objective of returning mankind tn .in .lw;tr.cbncss
1 . that religious belief stems not from superstition, but from some of the Spirit, and t o the true worship of God. 'COIII(',11oc1r 01'
form of Higher Truth which lies at the core of all things, and in deliverance, when poets and artists will forget thc pi~l~liiI with t.lirir
which is found the origin of all the world's great religions; clcrnand for profane entertainment - D.T.] ;,11rl will I<II(,w one
\logan only: man and God.'
R
2 2'2.
3 3
5 ~ ' 5
3 :
.? 2 2 KE.S.2*
3
2 3 3 n 5.-
%E 9 2 ".,,,
2 %
2
2 C 5 3
2 2 -- 5n K: 2 2 z,
0
0
W
6Q a + G
E 5n-a3 22. q
.; 3 ;'
0-5 8 .
g-g 2 5 5
0 R "3 n < G o, C
..-
Er" -p 2 2 6.0-
-"-: 2 5
g. R -
s C t c C., 0 * E&.
q?- 3 g 0 --. 3
% c r 3 "" 25
"2 z$ n
3. Er - 5. -. n
J. Q< $ 3 0,
312 .-,
-2- - 0" z$;:
2 2 F; 22 2P3F T
0 ~ o y - r ? - ' P*.
7 M.
g m2 32 Y R -!
6.
g. a-: 3
n e z
5
$5 ET: B a
g g?" 2 2
+f n- ? G h Ct. 4 g.
- v y
-y2 0 ,
"..: ?.S 2 " $ 5
v
c c c c
3.'Cf 5.P. -2 E 0 z, a
V ' W
3 3 CC,
"""c;;: KJ.
0 0 gags g
L E O -t
3 . n 2 * 3.g: 0 3 ;R

LL.2. 2 rc *B
5 7-3 Fi. n W 9 T 2 E

6 ~~2
$4 K O < 3
L" fi 2 s "
1
,L+
-E p u R - Q n, 0 (n.

Q W 5s-3
T O.F&g
-. 2 F2
z c : , w P 3
,.- f-5
F'g
-.
2 kg;
2- sso
S'^=: - 2 . 't
* o n 3 '
r wnap^
-
n z
stgc%
z~"
W V ' W
5 c*
2 c.0 2 9
CD rc
S.*$? "* 2
g5 3
eeg'
&:,@
60 - S i;
3 0
3 , - 3 p g - X
5,2g,
5:GG 2%
Z' -. h
d R.
5*
? - rs 9
7
z'
$ rz.28
a C 1
P. %
cm
-. r r ,
>-=
-- L
- =- - .S -
i Y c 7 %
THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 77
Despite initially unfavourable reactions, however, technical universally acknowledged to have been a major, beneficial and con-
S

innovations continued. Throughout the latter half of the nineteenth ;tructlve :itep forward for the world of tonal art. W a gncrs mot ives
century there occurred changes in all the dimensions of tonal art. Ir l composing his magnificent music-dramas were mo rally imp ecc-

Rhythm became more complex; composers took an interest in a tble : to forge an art form which combined spiritualI and.~deleply -

number of new instruments and strange tone colours; new musical , i_c_ - c- - Io: - r ~ i ~ l i ~ hpoetry
ed with a music beautiful and sublime. all for the
forms and structures appeared, such as the tone poem; new subject purposes of spiritually elevating the individual listener and bringing
matter was considered. Yet the most significant series of innovations about enlightened social change. H e introduced innovations into his
throughout the music of the eighteenth and nineteenth centuries was music because he felt them to be justificd in thc idcal pursuance of
the gradual but continual evolution of harmony. And associated these aims; his new, more complicated use of tonality tnnbled him
with the harmonic innovations were changes in the use of key. to manifest the particular and specific musical effccts ;{nd dramatic
The key of a piece of music is that strangely compelling 'homing impacts which he deemed necessary for his works.
instinct' by which the melody seems to revolve naturally around one Wagner's reasons for composing in the first placc, thcn, were
particular tone. For example, observe how the tune of 'God Save the entirely altruistic. Hence they were in conformity with thosc of
Queen' begins and ends on the same note. Often the key of a piece of Bach, Handel, Haydn, Mozart, Beethoven and Liszt (as wcll as
classical music is stated in its actual title, such as in 'String Quartet in A with those of the musical philosophers of ancient China). Had
major'. And in the same way that melodies seem to hang naturally Wagner's motives been adhered to and emulated by thc succeeding
upon one central note, so too does the use of harmony. The practice of generation of composers, Wagner's technical innovations would
. .
basing musical harmonics upon one key n~ote is kno wn as tomzlity . have represented the climactic entrance into a new world of music -
In the early Baroque music of thc s iitccnth ~ cc:ntury wc:find that music of perhaps equal or even greater beauty than the music of the
harmonies were usually based upon th r same 1.lome key from the classical and romantic eras.
LL
beginning to thc end of a movement. B111 -..J..l.
.& *:
rlluuuniur,lr, LIIC transposi- T o a large extent, however, the philosophy implicitly contained
tion of the music from one key to another, gradually increased. Thc within thc music of the turn of the century and thereafter was to be
early classical composers of the seventeenth ccntury practised of a different order - eventually of a very different order. And hence
modulation within movements as a matter of coursc, but still only a t the need for this chapter, that we may study just what twentieth-
certain well-defined dramatic moments. Beethoven modulated still century music has really comc to be about.
more freely, yet nevertheless with a continued respcct for the basic
'rules' of tonality. The tendency towards incrcascci modulation THE REVOLUTION INTO MATERIALISM
reached its critical stage, however, with the arrival upon tt.le scene oIf Exactly what is the manner of consciousness or the motive behind
Richard Wagner. In Wagner's later works, mod11l;ction o,ccurred sc3 the 'new music' of our century? Perhaps it is not altogether possible
frequently that no real sense of key survived. Th'IS w;1c; a fatefu11 t o describe in one simple definition what it is. It remains possible,
challenge to all thinking musicians; one of a mi~gnitudewhich however, to define in complctc certainty what it is not ...
cannot be overestimated. Serious Western music hacl always been As we have observed, it is usual for modern commentators t o
firmly grounded upon the concept of tonality, no matter how describe retrospectively the revolution which led to the 'new music'
increasingly sophisticated the actual practice of tonality had become. as having been primarily a technical one. That is, the revolution is
Yet Wagner, in Tristan and Isolde and other works, had questioned thought to have revolved around all of the new ideas in harmony.
the infringibility and inveteracy of the entire tradition. It was an rhythm, form and timbre which emerged at that time. One point,
overt questioning which could not be merely forgotten or ignored though : as trees combine to makc up a wood, and as individual ccllc
by the rcst of the musical world, any more than Einstcin's Theory of together form a complete human organism, so d o technical details,
Relativity could have been bypassed by the scientific community. on paper, go to make up a complete work of music. However, to sec
Again we find, this time in the case of Wagncr, that not all the wood we must broaden the scope of our vision beyond thc \i,qh~
questioning or transcending of past practices is necessarily wrong. of a single tree. Likewise. individual cells, alone, tell vcry littlc ;~INILIL
Wagner's use of continuous modulation and novel harmonics is the entire human being; what his personality and appc;tr:lnct. ;Ire
7X THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 79

like. And in music, technical details rarely reveal a great deal about 'Tlie new movements in the world of inusic ;ilso dircctcd con-
t11c essential meaning or conveyed impression of the whole work. +c,io~~sness to the physical level. Thcre arose a ncw fascination with
Therefore let us ask: &!asthe revolution into the 'new music' merely I I I sheer~ sensuousness of certain sounds, as for instance in much of
a revolution of technique? Does it not strike closer t o the actual I I I ~work of Debussy. I t was almost as though sounds wc-rc no
heart of the matter to realize that the most fundamental difference Iongcr utilized for the sake of the music, but vice-vcrsa: n ~ ~ r ~ i c : t l
between the music of the previous centuries and the 'new music' of works were sometimes the glass cabinets, presented for thc s;tkr of
the twentieth century lay in the difference of their moral directionsi sllowing off the new collection of sonorities contained within.
The strcam of scrious Wcstern music had formerly followed the The essential difference in the spiritual directions o i ci;~ssio;tl
contours of a philosophical landscapc which was at thc very lcast I I I L I S ~ Cancl most serious twentieth-century music becomes strikingly
genuinely altruistic, and often deeply spiritual. I t was as though the I Ilustrated by comparing works fmm the t w o different eras which
l - .. - - -,
musical stream itself had bcen unerringly impelled towards an ~ I ~ C ~J. Lcertain
C common purpose Take, for example, the diffcrencc
eventual ocean of transcendent, mystical fulfilment. But after 1 9 0 0 , Iwtween Bcethoven's 'Pastoral' Symphony and the work of Edgar
rebellious waves burst the river banks, taking off in a number of Vart.se. Each composer attempted to render, through music, imprcs-
independent philosophical directions. A ncw hreed of musicians sions of the objective world. Beethoven, however, chose that which
appeared; these did not necessarily share thc samc artistic motives as is beautiful: the countryside; whilst V a r k e , a ccntury later, chosc as
their prcdecessors. T h e great composers of the past had composed his subject matter the hustle and bustle of modern urban life.
for the sakc of the spiritual upliftment of their fellow men. But the Moreover, Beethoven idealized his subject matter, while V a i k e
. -
music of the ncw century raisc:d- ~ t dnc s hor from such firm moorings. emphasized thc ugly and inhuman aspects of city life. But above all,
The tonal arts were now art for art's sake. Tlle listener found his the approach of Vari-sc towards his subject was merely 'horizontal':
..
attention to be focused by t hc 'new muslc U pon levels of being his music portrays only the physical side of the city. Beethoven, on
1
which were not spiritual, bur merely mental, 1
emotional, and yes, the other hand, explicitly stated that his 'Pastoral' Symphony
even physical. described, not a two-point, horizontal relationship betwcen man and
The intellectual o r mcnt;tl content of music had once consistcd of his environment, but a three-point triaizgle composed of M a n , Nature
the sacred mathematics of Bach or the divine symbology of Mozart. and G o d (as, indeed, is so beautifully apparent to all who hear the
N o w this was replaccd by mere human intellectualism. Even by a work). T h e 'Pastoral' is intended not to portray Naturc alone, but
very early stage of thc twentieth ccntury, music appeared which rather the Presence of G o d t~ithinNature. Thus Beethoven tran-
seemed t o have been composed primarily as an exposition of this or scended materialism: with the addition of G o d to the man-environ-
that new harmonic or rhythmic technique. In the past, composers ment relationship, an extra and vital vertical dimension imbucd thc
had often cxpcrin~cntedfor the sake of improving their music; nowr entire work with a hiphcr meaning. Again, it is this vertical, spiritual
many composed music for the sake of experimenting. The divinc dimension which is lacking in Ddxnsy's portrays? of the sea in his
intellect became supplanted by mortal mentalism. La Mer. La Mer is nothing like as radically avant-garde as thc
Formerly, the emotional direction of music had hccn vertically output of VarPse, and yet still, c w n in Debussy's portrayal, we find
upward. The very purpose of the music had usually been t o direct thc merely horizontal relatinnshiF. N o matter how artfully t h r h
the feelings t o G o d , o r t o regions of lofty. altruistic contemplation. musical components of L n M rr may have been wclded topethcr, r l l c
The 'new music' dirccted the feclings along a horizontal fact remains that the w n-k ~ is dis tinctly materialistic. L n Mvr.
plane: music evoked the rractions of one mortal t o ,r. or t o the describes the impressions convcyed by thc sra to man - o n rhr
material environment. Works such as many of t h c ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ p o sofi ~ i o n s physical, emotional and ~ I C.-,..l I-..,
I I L ~ I U, u L not thc spiritual, levrls. / \ I I ~ I

elcctronic music might at first be thought, in fact, to have no real hcrc we have the most hlndamental difference of ;ill I ~ r ~ w r r ~ i
'emotional content' at all. Rut to believe s o would be a mistake: all twentieth-century music and the music of classicism ;~ncl rc)rrl;lll-
music affects thc emotions. It is just that the kind of emotions which ticism; here W C have the real nature of thc 'revolution' in nll~sit.
are stirred by cold, heartless clectronic works are 1ikewi.c cold and which took place aroimd the beginning of the prcscnt c c n ~ l ~ r -~yi l:r i t
heartless. it b'as d 'revolution' into materrdlistic humanism.
H0 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC T H E 'NEW MUSIC' 81
In the study of history, when we come to examine the musical 111r imperfect, mortal nature of '1'0 t11t.111,it wits preferable to
histories of Greece, India and other ancient cultures, we encounter u r e divine spark within all 1111.11. wllic.11 t11cy hoped and
~ ~ o ~ p i c t the
this same revolution again and again as the same basic fall into I)rlieved that their music would itself I1cIl1 L .. I t is within
musical materialism has taken place within numerous historical Mussorgsky1s works that serious Wester11 111 * I I I ~ Sfrom the

periods." W e shall discover that whenever and wherever such a I'l;~neof idealism and divinity to the 1evc.l of I I I I I T ~ ~ IIR~ ~ . ~ . ~ o ~for i;~Iity
revolution has taken place, there has inevitably followed, within the virtually the first time.
civilization as a whole, the same descent of spirituality and morality Mussorgsky was largely self-taught, and g:lvchpm-io11sli~tlrhccd
into an unstable and brittle state devoid of permanent values. I O the established rules of harmony, etc. as pr;tct iscxl ;t11(1 ;ttlllc~r~cd to
One thing above all else characterized thc great music of ancient elsewhere during his day. A ninetcrnth- I I I I I ~ I C . ~ I I ,litc*k
China, India, Egypt and Greece, and later the music of Wcstcrn Kerouac, he composed freely according to 111~ nd cliitarcc of
classicism: that the fundamcntal purpose of music was conceived as his mental and emotional being. If a tonal p ~rlclc.d riglir in
being the transcendence of former states of consciousness. Such his head, accurately expressing his own ferlings, then ht- wrote it
music always pointed the heart of man in the .f direction. And one down, irrespective of any rules of key or h;tr~iiouy. (liirnsky-
thing above all else characterized the styles of music which spiritual Korsakov, much shocked by this, very often 'correctcJ' Ivlussorg-
idealists throughout the ages had viewed as being morally perilous: sky's compositions before they were performed.) Much in LIK J;cc:k
irrcspeaive of whether such music was technically anarchistic, or Kerouac, beat-poet style, since Mussorgsky's art reflcctcd ;t con-
whether it completely conformed to the technical 'rules' of the age, sciousness undisciplined by such notions as artistic correctnrss or
its moral direction was not upward. Such music began to make its spiritual motive. the result was often the naked portrayal o f tliosc
mark in Europe during the late 1800s. when idealism ( .f ) began to less desirable levels of the human mind. Frequently, Mussorgsky's
be pushed aside by 'realism' (-=P), and evcn pessimism ( J. ). Let us tone-sequences convey emotions which are very much of a
now trace the seeds of this revolution, turning our attention to the downward direction - desolation, anguish and psychological pain.
work of specific corr Mussorgsky was also one of the earliest composers to place so much
Mussorgsky ( l 8 [,is onc of thc first 'realists' to havc a emphasis on speech patterns in music - melodic sequences similar to
significant impact. ' I W d l l L LI) speak to man in a language of truth,' the sounds when human beings ask a question, cxpras a
he declared. But by 'truth', it must be noted, Mussorgsky did not doubt, shout in anger or yelp with fear.
mean elevated, spiritual truth. Rather. as a 'realist', he desired to Such techniques were cmploycd within one of Mussorgsky's
express in tone form the 'real' world around himself - as he saw it. relatively well-known orchrstral works, Night on Bald Mountaitz.
'Life wherever it may be found, the truth however bitter it may be [my The impressions conveyed by this piece can best be described by
italics- D.T.],' he said, adding: '- that is what I aspire to, that is referring to its role within the Wait Disney cinematic production of
what I want, and I am afraid of failing.' And again : 'It is the people I 1940, Fantasia. In Fantasia, Disncly granted his animators complete
want to depict, sleeping, waking, eating, drinking . . . Again and freedom to represent in animatccl scenes whatever the various pieces
again they rise before me, huge, unvarnished, and with no tinsel of music chosen for the film cvokcd in their minds. J. S. Bach's
trappings. ' Toccata and Fugue in D minor, Ii)r instance, evoked for the Disney
The point is, though, that one man's 'truth' is another man's artists, as it surely does for us all, ;ibstract patterns of mathematical
illusion - what the Hindus refer to as maya. Ultimately, truth is precision and cosmological rhythm. All of this became faithfully -
singular; yet whenever any artist has set out to portray 'the true and spectacularly - outpicturcd upon the screen. Beethoven's
world' his audience has inevitably finished up being served that 'Pastoral' Symphony, of course, was accompanied in the film by rhc
artist's own subjective view of the world. For an artist to 'portray magical, pastoral scenes which this music suggests. T o a large cxtcrlt,
truth', when that truth is secular, means no more than to express his works of evcn instrumental music d o tend to suggest thc s;tmc
own personality. Whereas Mussorgsky spoke deridingly about thoughts and images to different Fantasin, then, nl;iclc
'varnish' and 'tinsel trappings' in his portrayal of men, the idealists specific and raised fully to the conscious level the kind of' concc.pts
such as Handel and Beethoven had consciously avoided depicting which the chosen pieces of music usually evoked in the 1istcnc.r.
;2 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 83
And Mussorgsky's Night on Bald Mountain, then? What manner title, Born Musician. So naturally did music of tlcc.1, hc;~utycome to
af visual display did this give rise to within the film? llilli that there was, on the face of it, no net-,l 1 0 1 . liilii to have ever
Accompanying Mussorgsky's piece, and fitting the music !;one astray from the idealistic artistic prrcrpts of his classical
perfectly, Chernabog, lord of evil and death, appears on the night of l~rcdecessors.
the witches' Sabbath. Spirits, witches and vampires dance Throughout the entire span of his .1(1111t lilc. I~owrver,
frenziedly about. The skeletons of all those not buried in consecrated 'I'chaikovsky was a man tormented. For I I ~ was Iromoscxual.
ground are raised up. Finally, tiring of them all, Chernabog l ~iwardlyhorrified with himself and his t e n d r ~ics.~ t :{rid tnlh;~rrasscd
condemns them all to a fiery pit. Each visual sequence faithfully i l l the eyes of those who shared his secret, TI 11,likovskyncvc~srllclcss
~arallelsthe eerie, sinister and monstrous soundtrack. Which brings I';~iled to overcome his scxual inclinatio~~.,llis l ~ o ~ t ~ o ~ c - x ~ ~ ; ~ l i ~ y
us to the question: why should anybody need to have such music 1,ccame the obsessive defect of his life, thc 1o1.111c~nti11g III;IL
~lcsr~on
imposed upon them in the first place? Certainly Night on Bald would allow him no peace of mind, 110 Irc.cdol~l 1'1.0111 sclf-
Mountain could be listened t o by individuals analysing how the condemnation. Lacking a family of his own, ; I I I ~pcrh;~psc1rivc.n by
composer had applied this or that technique in creating the work; it the forces inherent in his moral weakness, tl~e.colnposcr rr;~vcllcd
might always be studied by musicologists in the same way that we relentlessly, year after year. A marriage enterctl into for the sakr o f
study prehistoric remains or the strange customs of savages. But for normalizing his image in the eyes of himsrlf and others clidcd
higher purposes this music has always been less than worthless. disastrously: Tchaikovsky himself came to the vcrgc of ;I tots1
Interestingly, Mussorgsky himself did become involved early in llervous breakdown, and the spouse of the unfulfilled match finislicd
life with spiritualism and psychic phenomena. His interest in these her life in a lunatic asylum. Always nervous and highly strung, tllc
subjects was, however, always in their more morbid aspects. Later, composer found his life to be a ceaseless struggle against rlioral
at college, he disavowed them and declared himself an atheist. After weakness and over-emotionalism. And it was a struggle - - from which,
having been ruined financially he was forced t o keep himself by ultimately, he failed to emerge as victor.
taking a job as a minor clerk in the ministry of forestry and Tchaikovsky's failure to overcome his imperfect traits stamped its
waterways. This, and thc fact that his music met with little success mark inexorably upon the last three of his six symphonies. Whilst at
during his lifetime, crnbittcred him. Other composers, too, had work upon his famous ballet suites, the subject matter of the ballets
encountered difficulties during their careers, yet had persevered in had dictated the emotional tone of the music for him; but the
faith until thcir succcss finally arrived. Mussorgsky, however, symphonies were a different matter. In the symphonies he had, as he
having become an alcoholic, died poverty-stricken and alone. It is said himself, the total freedom to compose whatever came naturally
difficult not to pcrceive the reflection of his life and circumstances to him. Thus, the symphonies became the most personalized and
within his music of 'truth'. introspective of all of his most important works. The first three of
A still morr significant composer whose life and personal the six, while accomplished technically, are nevertheless lacking in
weaknesses also dictated the final stages of his music was Mussorg- that distinct quality of uniqumcss which goes t o make a piece of
sky's compatriot, Tchaikovsky ( 1 840-93). Though often lacking in music eternally memorable. With the compostion of his Fourth
subtlery, Tchaikovsky was a master of melody. Beautiful tunes came Symphony (1877-8) at thc age of 37, however, Tchaikovsky
to him almost at will. These he would then skilfully weave together, learnec4 to fully impose hi S own In dividuality upon the symphonic
employing his almost unerring penchant for applying the perfect mediu~ T. The work was pr.ogramm: tic and intensely personal. This,
instrumentation to cach tonal phrase. (Shostakovich was later to and th e two symphonies 11$,U follovved, were to be his most popul;ir
declare that t o listen to a work by Tchaikovsky was equivalent to a - - - ..l.. .-l ----
WOTKS within the genre; fur~llc~rrlure, they were genuinely unic!,lc in
lesson in instrumentation.) His most successful and popular works content as well as being masterfully executed technically They
are the last three symphonies, the first piano concerto, and the three exerted a real impact and influence upon the Russian iiricl o111c.r
great ballet suites, Swan Lake (1877), Sleepl~g3e~uty(1890) and European composers of his time, and are still frequently prrfornlcd
Nutcracker ( l 89 1). in our own day.
In short, Tchaikovsky was as deserving as a man could be of the Unfortunately, however, these last three symphonic.; ;we 1;11iJ;t-
H4 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 85

mentally based upon overwhelming sentiments of ... pessimism and Al~cr the manner of Beethoven's cl;tssic. Fifth Symphony,
failure. l', Il;likovsky uses the word 'Fate' in rcfcrct~ccto rh;tt which over-
If music patterns d o hold a powerful sway over life patterns, then ~ u ~ w t the~ r s human individual. But w r must I)c c.;trcf~~l lirrc of the
Tchaikovsky's last three symphonies were a most inopportune ~.lll,~lr trap, which Tchaikovsky fell prcy to, o f mist;tking the two
manifestation for the composer to have left to posterity. There can 't;.~tcs'for one and the same thing. Berthovcn ;tnrl 'fcli;iikovsky
be no doubt at all of the judgement which Confucius and his con- . I ~ I I I ; Luse
~ ~ the
~ same word in reference t o t w o vcry diffrrcnt - cvcn
temporaries would have passed upon these works. The basic philoso- . ~ l ~ ~ ; o l i topposing
tel~ - things. 'Fate'. which n1;lnifcsts ;is ;L thcntc in
phical theme of each of them is that which Tchaikovsky, in his I\vrthoven's Fifth Symphony, as well as in a numbrr of hi5 otlirr
letters and diarics, called 'Fate'. Each in their own way, the three works, stands for that which is greater than thc mort;~lindividi~;tl.I n
symphonies tcll the story of 'Fate' and its relationship to the I\c.rthoven's marvellous Fifth Symphony the proccss i.; dcscl.il)cd of
individual. Yct the individual is not so much abstract 'man' as 1I1c confrontation between mortal and irnmort:tl. m;un ; L I I ~tllc
Tchaikovsky himself. And Tchaikovsky's 'Fate' is not so much of a S~~lxeme. The individual soul, in this work of Beethoven, finds itself
Universal Purpose or prc-ordained destiny as it is his personal sub- . I ( the point where a choice must be made: to obey the Will o1'C;od.

jection to the homosexuality which so tormented his conscience. . I I I ~thus evolve, or t o stubbornly hold on to its own inipcrfcct r-ritits
(Throughout his diaries the issue of his sexuality is always referred . I I I indulgences.
~ At length, the individual learns that i r ) surrcndcr to
to in a half-vriled manner as 'my Fate' or 'XXX'.) I IIC Will of the Supreme is actually no loss of selfhood at all, 1711~the
Of the Fourth Symphony, Tchaikovsky wrote to Nadezhda von tloorway to a far more glorious and meaningful existrncc." l'hc
Meck. his bencfactress : symphony concludes on a magnificent note of triumphant victory.
Tchaikovsky's 'Fate', on the other hand, relates to that vcry
The introduction is the seed of thc whole symphony, beyond Illanner of mortal imperfection which remains forever outsidc of' thc
question the main I ~ C ; L . This is F'llr, tlic fatal force which Will of the Supreme. In compensation for his personal failure to
prevents OLU hopes of h;~ppiness from bcing realized, which overcome his imperfections, Tchaikovsky erroneously called then1
watches jealously t o sec that our bliss and pcacc arc not complete 'Fate', as though t o infer that their existence was divinely decreed
and imclouded, which, like the Sword of Damoclcs, is suspended and immutable. Yet his 'Fate' is ultimately a self-imposed one; had
over the head and pcrpctually poisons the soul. It is inescapable hc been of stronger will he might have overcome his condition,
and it can never be overcome. One must submit to it and to futile cither suppressing or sublimating it. Tchaikovsky's final symphonies
yearning. The gloomy, despairing feeling grows stronger and I~eingbuilt organically around his concept of an inexorable, inescap-
more burning.. . able doom, the Russian composer thereby gained the unfortunate
distinction of becoming tlic first major musician to conclude a
In the nest scction of the symphony, Tchaikovsky rcldtes, the soul symphony with the overwhelming scnse, not of victory, but of
turns from this grim reality into a world of subjective dreams of defeat. The occurrence boded nluch ill for the future of the art.
happiness - but 'Fate' awakens one harshly. 'There is no haven,' he The programme of his next symphony, the fifth, Tchaikovsky
mourned in his letter. 'Drift upon that sea until it engulfs and sub- would not reveal. But in onc of his notebooks a rough sketch was
merges you in its depths. That, approximately, is the programme of discovered for the first movcnlcnt, which gives us some idea of thc
the first movement.' meaning of the whole. His notc's read:
This was the grim picture of life which Tchaikovsky painted in
the Fourth Symphony. H e himself thought the picture to be objec- Introduction. Complete rcsignation before Fate, or. which is the
tive, a true depiction of the nature of reality; but many people, of his same, before the inscr11t;tble predestination of Providcltc.~.
day and our own, would surely argue that life can be far more fulfill- Allegro. (I) Murmurs, doubts, plaints, reproaches :tg;iinrl
ing and joyful. And yet, by attuning ourselves to the tones of such XXX ...
music, even without consciously knowing the programme, we auto-
matically absorb its philosophy of submission and despair. 'l'he programme of the final Sixth Symphony was again unrrvc;~lrcl.
86 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC
but the music itself leaves the general meaning of the work in no I,r sxid of them is that thcy 111Tcr ;I IIIOSI insrrlrrl-ivc lcsson: that
doubt. 'Fate' is now compeltely submitted to: a few tonal attempts r;~rcly,if ever, can the work of' ;in ; ~ I - Iis1 risc .tl~ovt.t llr ~ n ; ~direction
in
to rise above or forget that which clouded the composer's entire life 01' his own consciousness. It is tlcn~l>rl~~l
I ~ ~ : I .II ~ l ~ ; ~ s ~ c nus
. r l sic
i ~ lcan
are soon brushed aside by the return of passages of utter and rvrr result where the heart and lnin~l01 111c~lli~sic.i;~n ; ~ r 11ot
c tllrm-
desolate melancholy. Though not revealing the programme, srlvcs, for the main part, so rn;tstcrctl. '1'1-ll;~ikovskv111c n1;ln was
Tchaikovsky did write that the symphony 'is permeated with subjec- I c )m apart by the contradictions W it hi11 h i~rlsr lisil sot~ghtto
tive feeling ... composing it in my mind, I wept copiously.' The so;~r;the flesh was fallow for the tall. ' lilt. in miwic
final movement concludes the work with the unmistakable feeling of 'I'chaikovsky often brought forth hc:ii~ry, I I ~r l r v r r . ;c1 r:iinc.ct thc
death. Considered his greatest symphony, it also sounds, as it were, Ilcights of true spirituality, and eventi~;~lly, in I;~st.~ y t ~ ~ l ~ l l o lie
nics,
the precise keynote of Tchaikovsky's life. hccame the instrument of the music ol' dchp;tir silc.li ,IS 11;15 l ~ ~to ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ i I

The symphony was first performed on 2 8 October, 1893, con- I>cthe deadliest of plagues to numerous civiliz;rtio~~s I)clorcs 0111. own.
ducted by the composer himself. Tchaikovsky decided soon aft er All of which brings us to what happened lirxr. .. .
that he would call the Sixth the 'Pathetic' Symphon:y - a tit:le
which, in the original Russian, refers t o emotional suffering. Eight DEBUSSY POINTS THE - OR A - WAY
days following its first performance Tchaikovsky was dead. Less than seven years after the death of Tchaikovsk y. .ill(. W I brltl
The cause of the death has long been thought to have been found itself at 3 1 December, 1899. Already, a substaintl:il nrlrl1 1 1 ) ~
cholera. Recent evidence, however, indicates that his death had to of radical composers were preparing themselves to nlark thc I I C W
do with the confluence of three factors : his expanding fame, his con- century with the onset of a new music.
tinuing homosexuality, and the high csteem in which the Czar was The modern composer: no more shackles of tradition to hold hinl
increasingly, and publically, regarding him. T o understand what back! N o Confucius to whisper annoying words of warning in his
these three f a c t ~ r sled to, it is necessary to realize the intense ear or to storm out of the court in One minute to midnight,
patriotism and loy;~ltytc-)wards their Head of State which many 3 1 December, 1 8 9 9 : the old era, with its superstitious spiritual
people felt in thosr days. A number of Tchaikovsky's colleagues and standards, was about to become a memory of the past. So many
associates. perceiving that the secret life of the composer might soon rules now cried out to be broken! S o many sounds there were which
become exposed to the world, feared that this could prove had not yet been sounded ! So many moods which the composers of
disastrously embarrassing to the Czar. Forming a kangaroo court, the past had refrained from cxprrssing! And now it could be done.
they decided th;lt thr composer should prevent this from happening N o w it could all be donc! N a w ~ t ! ~ t h i ncould g be done!
in the sures,t way possible: by taking his life. Tchaikovsky, totally One minute past midnight, I January. 1900: and the new
di!$graced a nd crr~shc.dby self-condemnation, did so. Following this, musicians charged forth into t l ~ rnew century like rioting students
hi:j friends rnclin ;irnateurishly engaged in a cover-up to protect the into the streets. With crics for xrtistic 'freedom', they overturned
. .
composer's own rrputation, giving the death the appearance of those 'naive' beliefs which ;isted from ancient times even
having been n;itt~riil. into the nineteenth century - sic affect:; morality, that certain
As he had writtcn of the theme of the Fourth Sy~llpl~ony fifteen chords should never be st rhe notic3n was derided that,
_^l _.
years earlier, Tc11;rikovsky had drifted upon the sen OS llis 'incscap- according to its form and C O I I T t . 1 1 ~ . Lurlal
^..L

arL could be responsible for


able Fate' until it had engulfed and submerged him t o its drpths. the disintegration of a civili~;ilion.Wherever the idea surfaced it
Many earlier composers had displayed imperfca traits of one was set afire; 'absolutely tat king in any scientific basis!' camc rllc
kind or another, yct they had nevertheless striven ceaselesslv to shouts of outrage. Virtually ;l11 discussion of the effects of musit.
perfect themselves. In their music they had portr:iyed only 'th at upon the being of man disnFLPcared fr om the textbooks.
which is divine an(.lbeautif ul in life; only that which the COn- The creative years of Cl;,.ude Debussy (1862-1 9 1 8) wcrc sprc;~cl
I l 1 1- 2-
precisely over this period ol C , L, , ,, of the revolution, ;is tllc. oIc1
sciousness of man snoulu always endeavour to move towarus. '
In Llll

Tchaikovskyls last three symphonies, however, we are calied to century gave way to the ne W. O n th e alternatives of tratlition 01.01
move in another, and less enlightened, direction. What can, at least, unlimited artistic licencc Debussy ma d e his opinions pl;iin. ' I ;tlw;ry\
XX THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC'
try to free music from the barren traditions which stifle it. I am for .I,I ,lr;llc.lycategorized in occult terms.
liberty,' he declared. And, added the Frenchman: 'Music by its very I'xl?cricnced occultists often speak of an 'astral' plane of
nature is free. Every sound you hear around you can be reproduced. ~.ui.i(c.ncc, which corresponds closely to the purgatory of
Everything that the keen ear perceives in the rhythms of the surround- :,ltl~r,licism.The lower reaches of the astral plane are dcscribed as
ing world can be represented musically.' Debussy's interest was never 1win.c , , realms of illusion, of ill-defined shadows, of lost souls and of
in the f direction, but in the + direction: his music always told ' * l l..lllgc )erils. Ultimately, the astral plane results from a correspon-
of the physical, emotional and mental conditions of the world around t1111g stat e of consciousness - an 'astral' consciousness, as it were. A
. ' - 1
and within himself, no matter how talented and unique his portrayal l y \ ~ l c ; u cxample of an 'astral' state of mind is that induced by

of these realms may have been. Il.~ll~~cinogenic drugs. And this gives a good idea of the kind of art
The central characteristic of Debussy's music, even as he which can be expected to result from the astral consciousness. Astral
progressed through sevcral different stages of his art, remained an -11.ris illusory rather than objective, sensuously seductive rather than
almost tangible sensuousness. And, interestingly, it was a trait far ,i:cnuinely spiritual. And it is in such a way, through the use of the
from lacking in the man himself. All biographies tell of his profoun- ,cdjective 'astral', that Debussy's art can most accurately be defined.
dly feline nature. Debussy walked and moved - about like a cat; Generally considered to be Debussy's most accomplished work is
during the course of his life he kept scc3res of cats as pets ; he bought 111c opera Pellias and Milisande, upon which the composer was
feline ornaments (and this, even whcn he was F~ennilessand hungry, engaged from the age of thirty-one until he was forty. T o call in and
and the ornaments cost whatever lirtlc money he had just earned); ensure an unbiased viewpoint, let us quote from the brief description
he made a point of frequenting the n - '
rarlslan rendezvous, Le Chat of this opera in the Larousse Encyclopedia of M u s ~ c 'where ~, we find
Nozr; and the composer even conspired to be born a Leo. That the reference to, 'its dream-like quality, its enigmatic characters and
cat is also tgditionally an animal of eerie mystery, being, for ..
settings in a never-never land . the other-worldliness of the text
example, the usual famili~rof witches, may also have had some ... a mysterious cjrchestral score'. T o which is added the comment
relevance within Debussy's cnigrnatic psyche. that, 'it is devoid of any definite action and the characters them-
Such points as the exceptionally sensuous nature of Dcbussy are selves are unreal'(!).
not without thcir significance. As WC trace, in this book, the In his personal life, Debussy also maintained actual occult
relationships bctwccn music and human life, it becomes contacts. It is not so widely known that he was for years the head of
progressively clear that the style of a piccc of music depends to a the secret society, the Priory of Sion. This bizarre and professedly
large degree upon thc character of the composer himself. All forms ancient group (still in existence today) believe themselves to be the
of artistic creation are a portrayal of some level of the inner self of geneaological offspring of Jesus Christ, who is supposed to have
the creator. And so, if music patterns should indeed be found to married. They are dcdicatcd t o thc overthrow of all European
affect life patterns, biographical details of those composers whose governments, that the line;cgr of Christ might step into power.
-' '
music is still playedI today can become extremely important to us. Moreover, in his later year y became an intense admirer of
They may well hint t o us wh at the outer effects upon society of that the works of Edgar Allcl be's a n is thrice as astral as
composer's music may be. AIld the importance of Debussy in deter- anything of Debussyls. H is antasy yarns are still among the
.r
mining the nature or ~wcnrieth-century music is inestimable: not most potently effective storirs of evil and of diabolical terrors in
only is his own music still played, but, even more importantly, his existence. Such was Debussy's fascination with Poe's tales that hc
works effectively directed the coursc of much subsequent music by set about composing a scrics of operas based upon them. W h ; ~ r
other composers. manner of music might be expcct from a composer who had allowrtl
This feline Frenchman was also a poet. His literary works are his consciousness to beconic seduced by such writings? A.; i t
characterized, as Corinnc Heline has dcscribed them, as being 'of happens. we shall never know: Debussy was still at work rlpoli 1 1 1 ~
night and of dawn, of moonlight and of velvet shadows, of mists operas when he was finally overtaken by the cancer whic.l~ I l : t t l
and of perfumes'.1s Further, Debussy also took an interest in threatened him with death since his thirties. His dc:~th l<c.r-
occultism. And as it so happcns, his output of music can only be able one, and he greeted it with intense bitterness. Thc (11. ;I
00 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 91
chilling wedding between the shadowy literature of Poe and the 11111'.11 . 1 1 1 ncw
~ musical culture fell prone to over-technicality ,ind an
already powerfully influential music of Debussy seemed to have 11 1.1 ~~icillating
Il r - l l t ,hunger for sensationalism. For a f ~ wyedrs
evoked Fate itself in resistance. 11111 ~lli.rc,is~ngl~nervous, decadent and materialistic art rt~l(-dthe
I 111 01 the new output of music, until the outbreak of 111( t71sst
$-.I

IMPRESSIONISM VS. EXPRESSIONISM \\'I I I lil War put an end to an entire era of human history. Alltl yct,
As a quasi-reaction against the impressionistic music of Debussy and I~lllowl~lg these earllest stages of the non-idealist music, what w,ts to
other composers there arose a music of equally uncertain spiritual t I ~ I I I Vnext? As Paul Henry Ling puts it:
value which was by nature expressionistic. The impressionists had at
least been content to takc the music of the eighteenth and nineteenth Ncw life could be infused into thc music of this rapidly i l i \ i ~ ~ -
centuries, with its tonality, as a starting point, even though from ~c-!:ratingworld only by an even more nervous, sophisticalc.J ,111d
there they allowed a good deal of innovation and extrapolation to \ l ~ r c h a r ~ eemphasis
d on the already overtaxed elements ol cif(-cl
dictate new musical directions. N o matter how radical, im- .tnJ technique. Experiment then became the final aim .20 ..
pressionistic music was still, at its root, tonal. But the new breed, the
expressionists, felt moved to call the entire preceding tradition into '1'1 I E SERIALISTS
question. New systems of tonality and harmony were tried out, I1.d they possessed the seismological equipment t o d o so, thc hcirn.
while whatever forms and rules music had previously conformed to I1e.t.; of 1874 would no doubt have registered a seismic dist~lr.l).tnc-c*
were irrelevant to the expressionists. O r more - something t o be o l high degree on the Richter scale emanating from the region o!'
particularly avoided. ( :I~inaduring that year: the bodies of thousands of ancient (:l~i~~c.sr
In his authoritative book, Music in Western Civilixation, Paul I,l~ilosophers energetically turning over in their tombs at the birrl~in
Henry Ling comments : Vicnna of Arnold Schoenberg. For during the course of his carccr.
Sc,lloenberg was to renounce the entire concept of tonality for the
The impressionist abandons himsclf; the cxpressionist seeks the III.SI. time in human history.
utmost concentration .. . Against thc worldly, hcdonistic nature Tonality, :the practice of basing music upon one particular kcy,
of impressionism, cxprcssionism oppostd the unnatural, the t l ~ rmelodies and harmonies all gravitating around that key, had
dashing, the torturing . .. In its most uncompromising utterances I,i.cn an inherent aspect of music since the beginning of recorded
expressionism carried the anti-romantic zeal to the point where it Ilistory. The ancients believed that the key which was used for a
refused to recognize sentiments, thus basing its new aesthetic piece of music had tremendous cosmological significance. W e have
doctrine on the mental stage of emotional suspension ... scen how the Chinese used whatever key they believed to be the
c;lrthly reflection of the particular Cosmic Tone which was
-T o which LAng perspicaciously adds that this was 'really. . . the sounding upon the earth at thc time of the musical performance. In
emotion of avoiding er notion^'.^^ this way, the tonality of all Chincsc music became associated with
In a century which has so often granted Wcstcrn nations, at ;~strologicalTonality and the harmonic relationships between the
election time, the 'freedom' of choosing between two equally unin- signs of the zodiac. Yet even in modern times most music remains
spiring and insincere political party-leaders, ni~isiclovers found tonal in nature, for there arc also very practical artistic reasons for
themselves confrontcd with a choicc between two schools of music the use of tonality. There arc special relationships betwcen thc
which were of equal abhorrence t o the spiritiinl idealist. Though 'tonic' or keynote of a piecc of music and the other notes such 2s
some good and spiritual music appeared under the impressionist those removed from it by an interval of a fifth or of a fourth. Thc.
banner, for the most part the 'choice' between the two schools repre- note-relationships which arc the basis of tonality are grounded upon
sented thc equivalent in the world of art of an election campaign fundamental mathematical and aesthetic principles. This rcs~~lts ir~
fought betwecn Marx and Mussolini. the fact that tonal music automatically 'sounds right' t c ~the I r u t ~ l i t r l
Yct it was still only the beginning. Having been cast adrift from c.;lr, whcrcas music which is not tonal, at least Llptrn c-btlr f'irsr hc;irillg
the spiritual elements and upward striving cssential for all great i t . sounds incorrect and unmusical.
j2 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 93

Children all over the world, when they first begin t o speak or Io!:ic;el organization being placed upon thcm. Thus, the result;~nt
sing, d o so in mclodics bascd firmly upon tonal intervals. T h e ii~~ta~ic. was in n o key, and its melody and harmony paid 1 1 0
harmonic and melodic principles of tonality, then, seem t o be by n o .~ll(-~!i;ince t o the traditional emphasis upon thc intervals of thc fif~ll.
I ll(.'loilrth. and so on.
means arbitrary o r theoretical, but arc naturally meaningful t o the
human psyche. In fact, scicntific research has discovercd that the Next, in the important third pcriod of his carecr, Schixnbc.~,~:
I rpl;~ccdhis previous 'unlimited anarchy' with a ncw system of nc ) I c,
traditional harmonic intervals and chords really arc sprcial: the
physical study of sound vibrations has confirmed that traditional tlr.!:;cnization of his o w n invention, which came to be call(xl
tonality conforms t o certain unique and objective vibrational '~.c.ri;tlism'.Under the scrialist system, thc twclve notcs of the oct;ivc.
relationships between sound-pitches. Moreover, these same ~vc.1.carranged into a ccrtain sequential order, and this order thrm
mathematical relationships have been found t o be present I)c,c.;~n~e the series or 'tonc-row' upon which an entire piece of mubmlc
throughout many and diverse phenomena of nature, in everything w ; ~ sbased. T h e series of notes could be played forwards 0 1
from the laws of physics to the geomctry and the ratios present in ds, in its entirety o r only partially, and in inverted for111
the forms of living organisms. I t is only one small step from all of :e the series contained the entire twelve notes in a pl,~.
this t o the postulate that the ancients were correct: that there truly is led order, it was thereforc not possible t o play a notr . I
something about tonal music which puts it in tune with the entire ~~c.c.ond time within the sequence before all the other notes had ber.11
universe, thus making it a real source of hcaling and regencration. %.oclnded.Webern, Berg and others also adopted the serialist t c c h ~ ~ i
W e can see, therefore, what might underlie the agc-old concept that cl11c from Schoenberg, and the school of 'twelvc-note composer-\'
W;IS born.
some music is objectively 'right' o r 'correci.' while other forms of
music are wrong and evcn d;~ngcrous.11' tonal music hcals and Though with the introduction of serialism Schoenberg h . ~ t l
regenerates the body, the mind, ;111el soc.ic.ty ;is ;i whole, then atonal reverted from absolute anarchy to some form of logical order, till
music might be expected t o dc) t l ~ ci)pposi~c.. rcchnique neverthelcss poscs a number of important philosophic.;~l
I t was due t o the f;lct t h ; ~ tton;~lrni~\iccomcs so n;~turallyt o man clucstions. For example, what if there truly are some manner 01
that, even whcn the ancient wisdoni itself hitrl i ; ~ d c dfrom the (:osmic Tones, and that works of music attune thcmsclvcs t o o ~ ~ c .
memory of the r;tcc. thc grcat classical Wcstrrn c.oniposcrs con- l>;~ticular Tone through thc :uc of tonality? W h a t would this mean
tinucd to create music within the principles o f to~l;tlityand the for atonality, as practisecl i n scrialism, which does not make use rd'
diatonic scale. In moving fully outside of this traclitional system, kcynotcs? Could it hc that. in abandoning the system OF
Schoenberg had made a momentous move indccd. M a n y fellow tonal music which comcs sn nntrlr;illy t o man, Schoenberg had,
composers of thc twentieth century hailcd i r :is a great unwittingly or otherwisr. :~ttcmptccl t o usurp divine Will with
breakthrough. It is dubious, however, whechcr RcctIio\,en or Bach human will? Could systcms such ;IS sc-ri~ilismrepresent the rebellion,
at some lcvel of the humnri p.;yc.lic, against the Harmony of the
would everhavc d o ~ so. e And had they still heen ,,rc,scnt t o witness -. .
the evcnt, the reaction of thc sages of antiquity is c.t:rt;tin: their con- Spheres r7
clusion would have been that, provided that Scl~oniberg'smusic In his latcr years, Schocnl>crg's rl~irciphase of strict serialism gavc
caught on and became sufficiently popular, the keys of IVcstcrn urn t o a less rigid 51yl(. in which, while serialism was main-
civilization were numbered. iiclncu, clements of tonality wrrc increasingly introduced. Upon first
Schoenberg's music encompassed several diffcl-rnt periods. I n the founding the method. tlic originator of scrialism had at thc r i m t
first of them tonality, whilc present, became incrc;~singlyuncertain. been criticized by the craclitio~~;~lists. But serialism had sincc thr.rl
Then, from around 1908, he entcrcd a seconrl pied in which bccome well established in t h c musical world. Now. for abandonill!:
atonality reigned. This has been callcd 'thc phase of unlimited it in its pure form, Schoenhrrg was criticized almost as much ag:iitl!
anarchy and liberty' (the very concept bcing in direct contradiction
t o the principles of spiritual idealism). In this thc seven major ENTER: THE COMMANDOS
and fivz minor notes of the scale bccame simply twelvr notcs a Music normally evolve4 as an almost 'natural' drvrlrrpn~c.nl.(Inc.
semitone apart. Thc twclvc notes were all treated equally, n o form composer after another extrapolating and building irpon I II(* i t l ~ . . 11~ ~ ~
(
94 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC TI-IE 'NEW MUSIC' 9j
his predecessors. T o the esoterically-minded thinker, however, the a Cadcnz~it c ~play or n o t to pl:iy ! II' I,l:~yc~J,
. . ;IS to be played
coming of the 'new music' in the early years of this century is par- .I\ not a nice one - b ~ cvcnly,
~ t prcc.isc-ly I I I I I I I I I S ~ ~ ,;is
;~~
ticularly intriguing in that, in many respects, it did not so much
evolve as appear as though from nowhere. For centuries at a time I : ullvrirncnt was thc nanic of thc g;tnle; ; i l l cl I vc's tried out any
during earlier periods of world history the face of music had I,.,llnical innovation in onc composition rllr i n ~ ~ o v ; ~w;is ~ i oscldonl
~l
changed comparatively little. A composer had once felt it his prime 1c.111r11c.d to in his music in anything likc rllc: s;iInc W ; Yet to
responsibility to create new compositions of music. But in the case of I I W c;~rsof his contemporaries, Ives' music vV;LSnot m ;onant,
. .l. .
the 'new music' the emphasis radically shifted: the major purpose 1,111 m;~d.Ives was trying to reflect in muslr 1 1 1 ~ul>>c,n;tllrcs; ~ n d

became to create ncw k2nd.r of music altogether. Now it was as *.t.trk realities of the world around him. Yes - in ;I w;cy this w;~s
though a veritable wave of individuals were born in the late h.111ssc~rgsk~'s 'realism' all over again, and ng;~inin con~r;~cliction ro
nineteenth century who all shared the inherent trait of being I 111. greatest musicians of all earlicr cpochs o f 11rtltl;in I~iscorywho
seemingly incapable of conforming to the traditional standards - 11.1tl sought, through music, to impose ordcr ;uld nlc.;ilring lipon
and purposes - of the tonal arts. (..lrrl~ly chaos.
Nobody illustratcs this factor of the 'wave phenomenon' more It may tell us something about the psychological el'fi.c>rsof Ivcs'
than does Charles Ives .(l 874-19 54), America's first composer of ltll~sicthat, while decades of life still remaincd t o him, his ; ~ l , i l i tI ~
O
real significance. Born and raised in Danbury, Connecticut, Ives t ~ ~ c n t i vcompose
el~ did not. His wife was later t o rec;ill tllc pain allcl
was almost totally cut off from the radical musical developments ~ r : ~ g e dofy those months and years during which Ivrs li;~tl~ricclI O
-
which were taking place in Europc. Ivcs studied music at Yale se, only to discover that the fount had dried up. H e livttl out
University at around the turn of t h c ccritur) I, but in later years had ny remaining years as an invalid in almost complctc iso1:ttion
little way of knowing what was t;&kingpla ce musically across the ther musicians.
- ~ .
Atlantic. During these years o f his own crea~ive
~

work he heard none rucuertheless, their parachutes well buried, others among thc
of the music of Schoenberg or Hindemith, and of Stravinsky only t ommando team were ready to strike elsewhere in the world. . . .

The Firehid and The Ni'qhtingale. And yet it was as though the 'I'o what extent are we justified in speaking of a 'wave
composers of thc ' * l * . t ~ r n~usic'had been some sort of commando
..L "V C., I~llcnomcnon'in the way in which the radical musicians burst upon
squad trained icI cithcr heaven or hell (depending upon one's 1I1cscene? It might be said that it was difficult for a young musician
viewpoint) t o p;trachute into Europe and rc-channel the entire I I O ~ to be radical in that period - it was in the nature of the times,
. . - , l *Ln*
course of music, drru L l l d L Ives' parachute had been caught in an W;IS it not? And yet, let us attempt to adopt an Oriental manner of
almighty gust o f wind which had blown him off course t o the other vicwing events: what, ultimately, was the cause behind the
side of the Atl;tntic. For there. alone and in virtual seclusion from ~.;tdicalismand cultural revolution of the ncw century? MJere the
any other nii~sician or any outside influence, Ives quite indepen- 'new m~~sicians' a sign of the times . . . or have the limes, or at least
dently devclopcd bi-tonality, polytonality, atonality, multiple to~tilrudegree of the nature of lifi irr the twentieth century, been a sign of the
rhythms or poly rhythms, the use of chance factors within music, and ,or~iin~q
athe 'new music'?
all the other tr;cppinps of the 'new music'. In his output, Ives not I%utback to the cultural commandos who fell upon European
' '
only paralleled. hut even preceded such devclopmcnts as they took During the time of Ivcs, half a dozen composers in Paris sct
place upon European soil. ton their own particular revolutionary mission. Known as thc
As Ives oncc wrotc to his copyist upon sending him a new work: tvir aim was delibcr;ltcly to write music which was dcvoid of
llllY >,irring or lofty feelings. In order to help accomplish this, j;lzz
'Mr Price. Please don't try to make things nice. All the wrong Iicr popular idioms were borrowed by them, and the resulting
notes are right. ' was 'successfully' noisy and cheap. Serious composers first
I,(.( ;lnlc widely aware of jazz during the 1920s. and fcw o f tllr

And again, Ives' jotted comment on the margm of the manuscript I,lc,l,orlc.nts of the 'new music' failed to incorporntc i t i n t o rlicir
of his Second String Quartet: w c ~ l l i I O some extent. Stravinsky, Ravel, Hindcrnith, (:opl;~~~tl;incl
THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 97
many others - composers good and bad - all allowed jazz-like Russia which culminates in the sacrifice of a virgin. Even by itself,
effects into their work. By this time, spiritual standards were either the music alone of The Rite of Spring reaches such a crescendo of
non-existent or had been turned upside down. Regrettably few hedonistic abandonment as to suggest the sacrificial virgin,
musicians of the 1920s seemed to realize the difference between intoxicated by the pagan ritual and violent rhythms, literally
mysticism and moodiness; or if they did, they preferred the latter. dancing herself frenziedly to death.
And still this was only the beginning. . . . W e are familiar by now in this book with the very real powers
which music seems able t o wield; also one would have had t o have
IGOR STRAVINSKY lived as a hermit for many years not to have heard of the acts of
In the early stages of the 'new music', one work above all others violence and riots which sometimcs takr place at rock concerts. It
marked the arrival, not to mention the sheer, irrepressible force, of should little surprise us then that: thc prcnnii.rc of The Rite of Spring,
... 01
the revolution. Today, music students listen to this revolutionary over forty years before thc coming ..L- .l
r O C K , ;ind yrt strangely akin to

work in what is usually passive humility. They arc iicademically this music of later decades in the irrcprcsaihlc violence of its
trained to analyse the structure, rhythm and harmonics of a piece of rhythms, likewise resulted in a riot. Accounts writtcn at the time
music rather than its overall effect and impact. No thought at all is record that the audience sat and listencd in silcncc. . . . for two
given to such considerations as the work's lcvcl 01' sl>irituality, of minutes. Then there came catcalls and shouts o l outragc. People
course. Yet there are still many pcoplc out in thc world who, having seated next t o each other began to fight with fists ancl cancs. Ncxt,
found it natural to love eighteenth and ninctrrnrl~ the attention of the audience became directed towarcis thc orchestra,
. .. c,c~~tury music,
have scarcely heard the works of thr 'new m \ Ic have ra rely, towards which everything conceivable that was 10osc and- r~cmotcly
if ever, heard this particular composition, :II rxsion I have aerodynamic was thrown. But resolutely, the mu!sicians pl ;~ycdon
played a recording of it for thcni. lnv;il~i.~l)l~ r 111 upon t:hem through a hail of abuse and a torrent of missiles. 7The concl ~lsionof
.J . .-
has been one of powerful dist:urb:tncc. ;illcl ~ I I I I C K , vv I I I' lI C aarnitting the ballet was greeted by the arrival of the gendarmes. R I
m.cantinle,
its intellectual genius and originality, I llcy 11cvc.1I 11c.lrssfound it to the composer at the cause of it all had escaped through a window
sharply lower their state of conscioi~sncss,;ln[l I I O I ;I single one backstage. Such scenes had never been heard of at a ballet before,
professed the desire ever to hear the work ag;tin. and the incident caused a great scandal.
In the reactio~I of thes e divine innocents, wllo 11;1t1 somehow But Stravinsky, at 30, had only as yet begun to get warmed up,
shielded themselv-cs from the presence of the 'nr-W ni~~sic' in the and certainly was in no mood for apologies. 'I heard, and I wrote
world about then,, -..--
w r 111ust be c,oming very claw I I I the initial what I heard,' hc said. 'I was the vessel through which Le Sacre du
impact- of the work upon its first audiences. T/J?Kitrv o f Spring is Printemps passed.'
without doubt the most famous work of Igor Strit~insky.Stravinsky Stravinsky had written The Rite of Spring while still only 29. It
(1882-1971) based the work upon the concc.pt 01' a pagan marked only the beginning of his world-renown, and only the end
ceremony. Certainly the music of The Rite of Sprit% is norhing if not of the beginning of his output, l-lc went on to compose for a total of
pagan, being wild, aggressive, and fierceIy unp)tlly. The melodies over six decades, and had become the acknowledged grandmaster of
seem designed to frighten; the harmonies to disrllI>t rhr mind. But the 'new music' long before his death in 197 1 . Hardly a singlc style
more than anything it was the complex rhythmic 5itlc of the work or movement of the 'new music' went untouched by him. As thc
which was so unique. The rhythms race cornprllingly, driving general in the field, he bustlcd through the ranks, showing his f;tcr i l l
relentlessly onward, breathlessly, and with dark undertones of this division and that, encnuritging here, advising there, addin!; 1.011-
violence and dread. fidencc by the fact of his presence. Along the way. S~r;tvi~i.;kv
For the premihe performance of the ballet in I 9 1 3, Nijinsky became one of the first composers of serious music I O i r ~ III~IC. r
directed the choreography, and none other than Nicholas Roerich, elements of jazz in his work. This tendency hc c:ipprtl will1 1111.
in a rare misjudgment, agreed to create the dkor. 'The choreogra- Ebony Concerto, composed especially for the 'big I ~ : a r ~ c lj.177 ' 1r1 11r.e.11 .I

phy followed the only general pattern possible, given the music of clarinettist Woody Herman and trumptt yc.r S11111 I y l( l , * r I
I m

upon which it was based: a primitive ritual of pre-Christian peasant Ftrr decades, cven as he devclnprd hi3 ; I I . I .I r 1 1 l !:.l1 r ~ c . , l ~ r * l l l I,
3 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW bl l l S I ( :' 99
*cognition, Stravinsky remained next t o penniless. But this did not I t is necessary t o b e sufficiently tlr~.rtl~c.tl ; I S 1 0 I,c impc.rvious
prevent him from becoming closely acquainted with a11nost all t he '- to intimidation b y the materi; usical
major names in the European arts. Picasso, a similarly cc3mmandi"g intellectuals. These, proud t o belon wliich
and avant-garde figure, drew Stravinsky scvcr;il timm . Duri "g 'the average person doesn't underst ron ;ill
W o r l d W a r I, while attempting t o cross the Italian border, I
ac.~ r a v i n - who could dare t o be so 'old-fashionc.c~ 1 ) I . I > O I - I I I , ~ ,iLlI ( I ~ I I I ( . \ I 1011, ; ~ r
sky was stopped b y the guards who accused him, as he later wrote, this late date, the validity of The Rite I , / . S / r , i r ~'.l ' l ~ c ...II.III
~ i . l , ~ i l l lt o
'of trying t o smuggle a $an of fortifications - in fiict my portrait by our face: The Rite of Spying and Bec.1l 1 1 ~ v c . 1 1 ' 5N in1 11 S s ~ ~ ~ ;l~ ~r c l ~ ~ ) ~ ~ s
Picasso - out of the country'. each equally valid within the contcxl I 11 I l~c.il I C - . ~ K . . I ii", . I / : ( ' \ , '7'0
Neither did his long-standing poverty dctcr him from maintain- which the disccrning shall reply: True 1 1 1s rl1.11 ( . , i e 11 , I I ( , I I I I I ' , cI' ~~c,. 1 1
ing a whisky intake of the kind that woulcl l)c cxl>cctcdt o kill most consisting physically of air vibrations , 1 1 1 ~ 1~ ~ 1 1 11 I(.III/:
1 ~ ) ( . I - I o I 111e.(l 1))'
men. H e oncc preceded the conducting o f ;I (.oncc1,1in Moscow by similar musical instruments ; but thesc work\ , [ I I 111. I I-,IIII I ) I I W O
downing ten drops of opium and twc .S 01 whisky. (Given diametrically opposed philosophies - ;tr l ~ c . i \ li c I I I I I I I , I I ) ~ ~ I I I ,111~1
the youthful age at which he gaincc ,I y , l ~ i sdegenerative spiritual idealism - which have warrrd 5inc.c. l)c.101.(.I I I ( . ~ I , I W I I 01-
lifestyle, and the radical nature of- 111s I I I I I \ I ( . , S ~ ~ . , ~ v i n swas k y not history for the possession of the minds o f ti7c.n.
very dissimilar, within the context 01' I1i5 O W I I (.I.;I, to, say, the If we should doubt whether or not Thr Kitc o/'.il~t.h~,~: ; I I I ( ~ ~11c
Rolling Stones and other rock st;irs 01 I O ( I . I ~ . ) I ) I I I . ~ I I ~ this ; MOSCOW other early works of 'new music' are really so 1>;1~1,ts ,111 I h ; ~ r 1l1un .
concert he then suddenly felt sick. l ; i ~ ~ t l i ~ ~ ! : I ~ ~ ~ I \ w(';tk,
I ~ i s(. ~ a doctor we have only to glance further on in time t o see w l ~ t rt l ~ c I(.(! . ~ 10.
forbade him t o c ' I)!! l ( 1 1 1 Illis oi~traged the W h a t manner of art did the 'new music' g o on t o bccomc l'ollowi~~g
composer, w h o we^ c I 1111 I , 1 1 1 r+r ilrdulging in his these first beginnings? After all, the real nature of the secd bcco~nzs
o w n 'remedy' of bra inevitably outpictured in the flower! T h e seed itself may givc littlc or
O n c of Stravinsky 1 1 1 o w l . ( l l l o t l . l L V I I I I : ~ ~ IOI. 111~.stage is the no indication as t o that which lies within it. and the non-hot:cni5r
opera-oratorio, Oedi/~zl~ KCY ( I 02 7 ) . 1 1 1 I W Cu k , I~owcvcr,the
1 1 1 6 ~ might easily put thc namc 'rose tree' t o the seed of a Vcnus fly-tr;tp.
institution and estal)lisl~c(lc.onccp~io11 I )l' I l ~ r . I I ~ I ( . I, I i5 completely But in the proccss o f its & ~ o w t all
h becomes revcaled.
ridiculed. Though b;~scd111)or1 ~ h c~l;~?;sic:tl
c worli ljy Sopl~ocles,the Is therc a diffic~llly in disccrning the subtle naturc of a music.
libretto is sung in Latin - which n o doubt I I I O \ I 01 I I I ( . audience whether it is beneficial or cl(,structivc in effect? Then the answcr t o
cannot follow - whilc a commentator in evenin!; ilrt.sc; \1;111dst o one the dilcn~mawas put into I N I . I~andstwo millennia ago:
side of the stage and interprets the action in n ~ i ~ ~ l j:~~.gon r . ~ - r ~t o the - Ye shall know tbrr)/ /bc>ir./i.rrirs. . .
audience, which has the effect of utterly alien;~rin!: I 11i.5i11gersfrom
the onlookers. BALLET MECHANIQU E, ANT) AFTER
W a s the 'new music' so different to that of ~~l.r.vio~ls centuries? The date: l 0 April, 1927. 'I'll(* l)l,~cc: Carnegie Hall, N e w York. A
Stravinsky's treatment of Oedipzrs Rex furnishes 11s M J ~11I I lie answer. quarter of the way into tl. ' now. And an American audiencr
T h e narrow-minded critic will argue herc thar III(.11c.wmusicians prepared themselves for ;I of the wonderful new music. The
did not break with the past, but merely followr~l1 1 1 ~ .course of thc composer, George Anthr oduced a work befitting the ncw
natural evolution of the art, following the i n n o v : ~ir 111.; ~ 01' Beethoven, century of progress. R u l ~ c t ~ ~steadily
lg upon each other's work,
Liszt, Wagner and others. T o which. in reply. it nlllsl h r emphasised composer after composes h ; ~ c l])ushed the grandeur and sublimity of
that the prime distinction between twentieth-cc.nt1lry music and that Western music ever highcr. 1. S. Bach, Handel, H a y d n , Mozart,
of classicism and romanticism was never the ohvioils technical one. Beethoven, Wager - ancl now George Antheil, with the f'irht p(.1-101,-
but the difference between the spiritual level OF [llr two. I t is a mance of Ballel Mhchirlvrqz[e, his newly wrought c r c ; ~ion. ~ /\1.1(1
question of motive, of the goal of the music; it i 4 ;I fundamental 'wrought' it had indeed IIxen : 'm1lsical engineering', Anth<.il c ; i I 1 ~ ~ 1
L _ __
question of morality. W e must ask ourselves of any picce of music: it. T h e instrumentation f o .r. -ulc wurk included various oJJ.i ;IIILI (.IILI'~
Does this build up or does it tear d o w n ? Ultimately, it is a question and items of hardware - anvils, bells, horns, hu;.~5,iws , ~ r ~ t,111 l
of the ~onsciousnessof the composer. airplane propeller. O h , and also some pianos. (Tcn, t o 1 . ) ~lr~,rc.isc*.)
THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 101
One can imagine that for such a grand occasion as the premiirc at ; ~ n dimmediately began using it to cnlc'r :c11( V I I i1.c.1~I I C W ficld nf tone
the Carnegie Hall only the world's leading virtuoso buzzsawists will production for 'artistic purposes', which W;IS j11s1opening up. N o w
have been employed, and perhaps one of the Wright brothers on i t was possible t o pre-record exactly rllc so1111il5 one r ~ n c ~ ~ ~ itroc d ,
propeller for the uplifting finale. (For a much later 1 9 5 4 perfor- txoduce tones artifically, to mix them, slow 11lct11c l o w ~ speed ~. them
mance, the composer feared that Ballet Me'thanzqzre might b y then up, or play them backwards.
sound - well, old fashioned - and replaced thc airplane propeller Needless to say, the 'new musici;tns' wcbrcgoin): I O I I , I V ~ . ;I iiclri
with a recording of a jet engine. After all, thc 'new music' must day.
move on !) And so, following a gap of t w o dccarics, V;~r;.scI,t/:;tn c,ompos-
Edgar VarPse (1 88 5-1 9 6 5), another American, dcdicated his life ing once more. His tape-recorded work, Dt':rurt.r, w;ts c o ~ ~ ~ ~ ) l (i l.l t r c l
to seeing that thc 'new music' did indeed 'movc on', and became one 1 9 5 4 and premiPred on 2 December in Paris. Dcirrf.r c o ~ l s i s ~ cOSd
of the leaders in the field. Born a French-It;ili;in in Paris, V a r k e sections of recorded industrial noises (more I~ishill~:,! : I . ~ I I ~ ~ ~ I I ! ; ;IIICI
emigrated to America in 1 9 15. H e saw aro~lndhinrsclf a concen- - Vari.se had apparently not advatlcctl so 1;tr clilri~i!; t110sc
trated lifc of hustle and bustle, and a world wl~ic.l~, somc said, had twenty years!) alternated with instrumental pcrn~suio~r~);~ss,~gt.s.
entered into a machine agc. Both the spcc.d ,IIII.! r l ~ cmachinery of The effect was t o suggest both a musicality prcscllr i l l ~ I I ( ~ I I ~ I I .;IIICI
Y.
twentieth-century city life were to bc ;tn inlpc)n.~r~[ influence upon also a mechanization of human musicians. Broadcast in s ~ t r c or;iJio,
his music. Said Varhse: the piece gained instant fame. Like The Rite ofSprit18 I'ot~rtlcc..~cl(ss
earlier, Deierts had broken new and starkly rcvolution;iry gro~~rrcl,
Speed and synthesis are c1iar;tcr cris~i t 1 ,I I ,111 (.I)( ~ . h W . e need and resulted in a wave of music which followed in its wskc. iVil11i11
twentieth-century instrurnrntu 1 1 ) 111.1~,
11.. I ' ( - , I ~ ~ Y (~
' I ~ o in
s emusic. 2 ' but a year or two, the production line for electronic music was in top
gear.
And had the people of the d ; ~ y1.tk1.11I I I I I I 10 I I I ( ' . I I I I)IIT:I.S~W~ etc., Deserts had originally been intended t o be accompanied by ;I film
they would not have been far wrong. I I I:; wol.k r.c-I~oc~tl the sounds 'purely of light As we might by n o w expect, howcvcr,
of city life. Motors, pistons, c;tr horns ; t ~ ~ or11r.r
rl 511c 11 sc,unds are
VarPse stipulated that 'the film must be absolutely in opposition
distinctly evoked in the rnr~sic. Mclocty ;incl II;II.IIIOII~ wrre at a with the score'. (Opposite visual and auditory perceptions, it seems
minimum; all the emphasis Varcsc placed upon ~ I I ~ I ~ ~ tIis I I I insis-
. reasonable t o assumc, could exert a disastrously mind-splitting
tent rhythms reflected the throbbing, whirrins i l l c l l ~ \ ~ l . i ; llik l a n d the efiect, resulting in possil,le: psychosis. Could it have been that at
hectic bedlam of rush-hour. some level of his being, Vitrtsc 'fe~iredsuch results ?)
. . .. ,
Yes - again W C: find 0111-selves m,zeting our o i c 1 I'1.i~. sm . O f Dherts and the later work, Poime Electronzgue, Francis Routh
Of course, the 'net Y music' iS somethin g which t l l c - I i k o ld I has pointed out that V;~ri.sc'~locsnot seek to assert the human will
'just d o not under:itand . BI~t ncvertlleless, perh;~p% wt. non so much as to submit it t o the, ~inlclessvoid that is nature. W e move
sufficient courage t o tentatively enquire: Wh)!S I I C11 ~rtusic?W h y through a wasteland of sound ...'2Z Routh further indicates thc
reflect city life? (And h o w objective was Vari-sc'u vi5i1111o f city lifc similarity between such music ; ~ n dthe literature of existentialism, as
in any caie?) Observe the difference here again I,r,rwc-c.~, twentieth- championed by Jean-Paul S;II.II.C. (Existentialism was particularly
century 'serious music' and that of earlier times. I:orlnerly music prominent in Varhse's land o f ITirth, France, and especially from rllch
raised and sublimated; now it 'reflects'. W h a t gooil ~ l o c ssuch music late 1 9 4 0 s onwards.) Pcrh;~psherc w e find as clear a pointer ;[S a n y
d o for anyone? (But here our questions arc cl~.owned out by t o the philosophy underlying the 'new music': existcntialism. of
orchestrated peals of sarcastic laughter. 'Good?W l ~ yshould music course, is the general dr)ctrine which denies objective univcrs;~l
have to do good?') values or morals. A man. so it is claimed, must create v;tlt~c*\1111-
After the early 1 9 3 0 s VarPse virtually ceased composing, and himself through his own actions. H e has absolute liberty t o c10 .I.. 111.
took up research into electronic instruments. Mc:~nwhile,the tape chooscs; thus allowing for anarchy. In fact, Polrt~r l i / r . ~ / ~ o t t l r / / i c .
recorder had been invented in 1 9 3 5, though it only Ixcame widely (1957-8) was described by Vari.se as 'a protest ;ig;tinsl ~ I I ~ ~ I I I . , I I I ~ ~ I I
wailable after about 1950. VarPse received one as a gift in 195 3, [i.e. the maintenance o f standards - D.T.] in cvc.rv 11,1111' .I

strikingly anarchistic statement.


I02 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 103

Poinze Electro~zique,though only eight minutes long, came t o be 1)ositions: a dark, yawning crevasse wllich, if wit allow it to, will
recognized as 'a masterpiece of tape music'. Amid a strange, ~lacllyswallow up whatever portion of oilr mind W C offer it by the
fearsome background of harsh, artificial sounds, a solo soprano tlirccting of our attention towards it.
voice enters towards the end, sounding as though invoking some While Subotnik's work was emerging, anothcr ncbw Jcvclopment
i~nimaginableform of evil. T h e composition of the work was wits also under way, coming to fruition in 1908. O I I C Waltcr
suggested in the first place by Le Corbusier, so that it could bc (hrlos, taking up the music of J. S. Bach, prorluccd wll;it (.ould be
played in the Phillips Radio Corporation pavilion which he had ~ . ; ~ l l ea dstyle of 'neo-classicism'. Afraid th;11 tllrrc 111i);llt yet 1)e life
designed for the Brussels Exhibition. T h r tones wcre projected b y i l l the old boy and his work, Carlos took K;lr.l~I ) y r l ~ c11cc.k ;und

four hundred loudspeakers placed at every position conceivable .~rtcmpted(if he could) to utterly throttle ; I I - I L ~ clc.srroy h i n ~ .K:1cl1
within the building, which itself resembled 'a circus tent with three pvfirmed by gnthesizer was the appalling outcome. (More. sctisrnic,
polcs somewhat inaccurately p i t c h ~ d ' . ~ ' shocks from China.) Needless t o say, the syntllcsi7,c~rprovc.tl 1 1 t t c r 1 ~
Dijerts and Poime Electronique were the only major works t o be incapable of capturing the most meagre cssc.ncc o f 111c I1I;LIIy S II;IC~CS
composed by Varcsc. aftcr the 1 9 3 0 s , and yet, judging by the after- o f warmth, power, awe and reverence, scrc:riity and d(.lic;ctc*1-)c;luty
math, they co~lldnot have been better calculated to stir up a new which Bach's works demand of their usual i nstruIiic11ts. ' l ' l ~ i x \V;IS of
movemen; of tlie revolution. Withiin month s of the premiere of h
little, if any, concern t o Carlos or the record comp;lny pi.otl~~cing rlrc
Diierls, there followed the first live concert in the w o rld at wtlich ;urocity, however. Their thoughts were n o doubt clscwhc.rc: llic I ,IJ
every sound was electronically syn thcsizcd. Four ye,ars later., in lxxording swiftly became by far the most popular (and Itlc.r;~tivc)
19) 8, thcrc appeared Berio's T / ~ ~ ? - / l r om?)zagio
l a Joyce, which cblectronic recording of all time. Sporting the title Slodt~beJO N ULI(%>
seemed t o be an attempt t o portray, in electronic tone and on the cover, along with a number of repetitions of Bach's f,~cc
electronically-manipulated spcc.ch, ;l progressive mental disintcgra- illustrated in psychedelic style, it became the kind of record which is
tlon. 1113for sale by the dozen on Woolworth's swing-racks, and which is

Another 'first' c;tmc for tllc clcctronic musicians in 1 9 6 7 - the ]>ipedthrough as 'easy listening' into dentists' waiting rooms.
first commission of a picc.c o f electronic music by a record company W h a t is more, it must be remembered that this was 1968: the
. , .
where thc music wits n o r initially intended for broadcast p r f o r - 'new m u s ~ c ,jazz, and rock music had by now, between them,
mance.2"I\/lor~on Sul)otnik was the lucky n u n , the crentor of such reigned supreme for decades. Tragic to relate it may be, but none-
previous artistic ~n;lstcrpiecesas The W i l d Bull and Sidewirzder. rl~clessabsolutely true, that for thousands of households into which
ut' 1 1 1 ~ 1;In ~K ~ l c l ~.iYnthcsizer,
'- ' l;~ he now unvriled for the world - [his atrocity gained admittance, for untold adults and for their
Sii'uer /Ipple.\ c~/'/llt# Moo~. (.h ildrer1, Switched on Bach rcprcscn t cd their retyfinrt, fi not their only
H o w t o dcscrihc this 'music' of Subotnik? A t first it sounds ctlfcounte,v with this giant of thc histcltry of gre,at music.
merely monotc.)nous. Yet somehow the title is eerily apt: it is as But it was not t o be their I;lst. Pdot sluggish t o cash in o n a good
though silver bi~llsare raining from space and exploding o n the ~lling,Carlos followed up within a year with The Well-Tempered
ground and in lhc ;lir all around one, doing so with 'bleeping' \ y~/hesixev.
noises. And s o il gocs on. Then, for :I mclnient one comes t o feel that ISy this time a certain cross-fertilization was becoming apparent
thcrc might aftcr ;III I)c genuine aesthetic interest in these bleeps . . . I)cl wchcnthe 'new music' ant1 thr general jazz and rock style. I t camc
if only one listcns, t l ~ l t tis; li:itening more closcly ... more attcntivcly 1 0 I)c xccn that thc technic;~ldil'l'c.rcnces between 'scrious' music, j ; i n ,
.. . t o the sounds, t he*xilvcr: iounds . .. thc busting apples .. . 1 . o C . k . or any other form n l ~ ~ ~ o d music
c r n were lcss important tl1;111
I i o u l d the rcadc-l ..l1..... .me here t o offcr on< opinion? Nv proof,
... .cllow I I I L * u ~ ~ i f y i nfactor
g that tlicir philosophical basis was morc or Icss
no scientific discussion ahout the pros and cons of the conviction I I the same: hedonis111and anarchy. I n an era during w l ~ i c , l ~
find niysclf with - just a siniplc gut reaction: that there is something ;ic.ian was constantly searching for 'new sounds' wit11 wllic-h
distinctly dangerous t o thc consciousness in such music as this. I O rli\rinxuish himsclf from the pack, the brcakciown o f thc clivi\io~~\

Dangerous in a perhaps surprisingly tangible and immediate way. It c.r.p;lr;~tingthe different musical forms offcrcd tempting ~~ox\il~iIi~ir.s.
is as though therc exists a chasm within each of these electronic com- ] , 1 7 7 look 011 rock elements, and rock took to itxc,lf I I I : I I 01I~111~
04 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 101

tchniques of jazz. Rock, which had arisen from the most primitive I.trndscape N o . 1 ( 1 939), Cage played t w o gramophonca rc.c,ords of
of beginnings. spawned groups such as Soft Machine and Velvet 111csine continuum which is used by telephone cnginccrs t o Irst tcle-
Underground, which were s~~fficiently avant-garde that no book I)honelines, at the same time including the sound of ;I t;llll-l;lrn. thc
about the 'new music' was complete without mentioning them. ~.csult of it all being recorded onto anothcr record. (:;igc* :~lso
Meanwhile, one noticrd with amusement that a certain atmosphere tlcigned t o include a more conservative instrument, tllc. ~)i;cllo-
of 'the rock star' had attached itself t o a number of the 'new played b y one hand while the other hand was uscd t o (I.IIIII) llir
musicians' in the magic of adulation which became associated with .
strings . .
their names. Again Cage bowed t o such 'classical influences' for tl~c. 1 0 4 2
From the lofticst viewpoint, the different forms of modern music c,omposition, Credo In Us. But this time not merely a ~ ) ~ . I I I I ) ,I ) I I ~
began to look likc the various branches of what was, at its root, one classical music itself was inserted directly into the work: Crr*rlr~In ( 1 ,
revolution. The slcevc notcs of Tcrry Rilcy's A Rainbow in Curved made use of a record player which Cage, as 'composer', s r ~ ~ g c . s ~ c . ~ l
A i r , for instance, could have been taken directly from a sixties' rock should be playing a classical work such as that of B ( . I . I ~ I O V ( ' I I .
album slecve, in their naive, anti-patriotic, left-wing vision of an Sibelius, D v o r i k or Shostakovich. But unfortunately thc t I,rhsic ;il
LSD-tinted future: recording had t o share the sound-vibrations of Credo In Us wit 11 hi.
playing of a radio and recordings of gamelan music and j a y , J ( . ( O I .
And then all wars cndcd . . . The Pcntagr~nw2s turned on its sidc ding to the laid-down instructions of the 'composer'. F u r t l ~ c ' l . ~ ~ ~ o ~ . ( . ,
and paintcd purple, yellow ;tnd Srccn ... People swam in the the 'performer', sitting at the classic-playing gramophor~c, w ~ . ;
sparkling rivcrs under blue k i c s streaked only with incense obliged t o regularly raise and lower the needle. Thus, t11c. c-1;lssic
pouring from the new f;~c.torics . . . National flags were sewn became subjected, in the words of Paul Griffiths, 'to piecenlc;~l1)r.c-
together into brightly colourcd circus tents under which sentation in a quite alien context'.24 W e must decide for oursclvcs 1.0
politicians wcrc allowcci I o pcrfr)rm harmless thcatric;~lgames . .. what extent the elements of Credo In Us were all chosen for purcly
The concept of work wit, forgotten [despite the 'new factories', 'artistic' purposes, and t o what extent the ridiculing of the classical
where some pcol?lc workcd - while olherr outside swam! - D . T . ] composers, some of whom were still alive and composing, might
. . . The cncrgy from dixmantled nuclcar weapons provided frce have been a form of dictatorial attack. (Peter Yatcs, w h o kncw
heat and light." Cage during these early years, describes him as having bcen
stubborn and argumentative.2')
MUSIC BECCIM ES CAGED I t was also in the 1 9 4 0 s that Cage brought out his 'prepared
O n c of thc rnost influential contemporary figures in tcrms of his piano' pieces. T o understand the concept behind these works, it is
effcct upon t l ~ cc,ou;sc of the 'new music' is John Ciigc (b. 1 9 12). It necessary to realize that thor1~11pianos had previously been a n -
will be wor-thwhilc to describe a number of Cage's most important sidered adequate enough as rllcy wcrc, the 'new music', based as it is
. very cutting cdge of whert the ' new mus ic'
works, sincc Ii(. is a1 the of course upon the ideal of con1 i11ual progress, needed t o furnish the
is attempting 1 0 t;d;c us tod ay. By virtue of the sounci,S which hc instrument with certain i r n p r o v c . ~ ~ ~ cTherefore
~its. Cage took it upon
produces. by virtue o f the le ngth o f his career ;incl his promincn cc Iiirnself t o d o so, 'preparing' rhc ~ i a n oby placing various objects
within the field, Ily virtue of the number of new s ~ ~ b - ~ r ~ u v c ~ ~ ~ c n t s within it, resting loosely L I ~ O I I the strings - scraps and bits of wood,
within the tonal drts which he has initiated o r hrlpcd t o initiate, and odd nuts and bolts, weathcr >tripping, etc. - thus introducing wh.11
by virtue of the f;~ct11iat he has gonc t o the lengtlls of specifically Larorrsse politely calls 'unusual timbres',19 and Virgil Thomson ':L
stating the foundation5 underlying hi\ own work, it is ping cpalified by a thud'.
perhaps John Cage ;tbovc all others who, nrnong thc 'new Anuilier Cage mastcrpiecc, which no doubt took cnnsidcr;ll)lc,
. . 3

musicians , deserves t o bc rcgarded as the arch-cncmy of spiritual pains t o compose, was r:ithcr less discordant. 4 rninil!~.~ ( r ~ r ! iI
idealism. .second.s consists of performers w h o arrive on stage, lily u p I I I ( * ~ I .
Cage's initial claim t o fame was the to-some-dubious honour instruments, poise themselves t o play ... and rcmnir~I I I J I W , I ~1;)s -

of completing thc first known electronic composition. In Imaginavy yc:s, 4 minutes and 33 seconds.
106 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC'
Are we being unkind in ridiculing 4 minutes and 3 3 seconds? I ~liosewho question the validity of such sounds 'do not understand';
believe not. It is true that all sorts of lofty mystical concepts can be tlrcir 'conception of music is too narrow'.) It might be felt that such
associated with silence; this work, it could be argued, brings silence ,111ticscould have little or no bearing on the stream of serious music
to our attention. Yet one feels that this is grossly to underestimate as a whole. Yet nothing could be further from the truth: Cage has
the majority of the audience. Those who cannot normally sit still cxcrted a great influence, over the years, upon other musicians.
and appreciate silence will not genuinely d o so during this 'composi- Indeterminacy in music, for example, has actually become quite
tion' either, whereas those who are meditatively inclined do not widely practised since Cage first began twiddling his radio dials and
need John Cage to make them so - they enjoy meditation and the tlirowing his dice.
stillness of silence frequently. 4 minutes and ?J seconds might In time, Cage's own use of indeterminacy also grew more
therefore be viewed as nothing but a joke; cheap, unnecessary and, sophisticated. H e left off his dice-throwing as a determinator of the
perhaps also, egocentric. tones, and took up I Ching. Then later, as the computer field
Imaginary Landscape No. 4 appeared in 195 1 . This piece, in one developed, Cage made use of computers also, thus having
respect, was in the best tradition of the ancient wisdom, involving as progressed from gambling with dice, through psychism with I
it did the mystical numbers of 12 and 24. The work required 1 2 Ching, and arriving at the mechanization concept of life. One might
radios as the instruments and 24 performers (onc performer for each imagine that the idea of music as being sounds produced without the
volume dial and one for each frequency dial). ?'hc prcmiPre perfor- intrusion of human will is as near as the art can be taken t o the edge
mance was delayed for quite a while, ilntil 1;itc cvcning in fact, with of the crevasse of cynical nihilism. However, Cage's Concert for
the result that when it finally did takr pl:tcr. m;lny radio program- Piano and Orchestra and Atlas Eclipticalis may be said to succeed,
mes had changed and some stations 11;itl golri' 01'1' the air entirely. through another method, in pushing music completely over the edge.
Some critics scoffed that the pcrforrn;tncr Ii;ld t llrrcfore flopped, but 'To borrow Peter Yates' description of the works, these 'may be
Cage himself, turning defeat into vicrtory ;IS i~ wc.~.c.,brought forth called an antimusic, as a scientist speaks of antimatter. The many
his new doctrine of music. 'I'he wholc point, i~ sc-cn~cd,was that motifs do not harmonicaUy draw together but are mutually rejecting
Cage's work had involved chancc lactors, ii'ro~.\ out of the com- . . .'23
poser's control, and so the late performancc 11;1rl, i r ~Ii~ct,succeeded Personally, I am attempting to explain to myself here what
in demonstrating these all the more successfi~lly!A ~ i ~ the i n critics manner of mind it can be that feels moved to actively pursue the
attacked: they pointed out that the performance 1 1 , l c l not involved creation of a literal antimusic. Once more, we must not avoid the
pure. random chance, but only relative chancc, si~~c-c t11(- composer necessary enquiries: What is the inner motive? W h a t u the con-
had still laid down a number of stipulatic)r~s.(:,ISC therefore sciousness which has brought forth these works? In what direction is
renamed the new doctrine ' I n d e t e r r n i n a ~ ' . ~ ~ such a music like4 to take czt~ilrlption,should it be true that life patterns
Indeterminacy was a radical concept for rn~~sic,. 'l'llc composer, are influenced by musicpattems?
according to the work he envisaged and the c o r ~ s ~ ~ .11c ; ~either
i ~ l ~ sdid Cage himself has offered a number of insights into his mental
or did not impose, could allow for anything from ,r slight degree of processes and his personal attitude to music. In 195 2, in a lecture ;it
indeterminacy to a very large, almost total, degree t 11' ind~terminac~. LIIC Juihard School of Music, he explained to the breathless, open-
(Such music is also sometimes called aleatory music:. f'rom the Latin ruouthcd students (the blank4 indicating his musical interludes):
term for dice, alea. And yes - Cage d i d use dic-c to decide the
sounds for some compositions.) I h ; ~ v enothing to say and I am saying it and t11:tr i\
A good example of indeterminate music in action was the work, poetry as I need it contemporary music is changing.
Concert, of 19J7-8, In this piece, each player was simply instructed But since everything's changing we could sinlrly tlcc itlr
to play any, all or none of his notes. The result could have been to drink a glass of water To have somrthi~r~: Ilc .I
anywhere between total noise to total silence, with a more likely nla.;rcrpiece you have to have enough timr t o r , ~ l k wl1r11
area of partial noise in-between. Whether the rcsult could ever have you have nothing to say.26
been music, however, is another matter entirely. (But then, of course,
108 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 109
So then they knew. Alas. not all modern musicians can boast such penetrating sanity.
Also, one other statement by Cage deserves mention. While 1;ollowing Cage's lead, a number of others have also worked mainly
nevertheless composing more and more works, he has or entirely within the 'Zen'/indeterminacy framework; the majority
simultaneously insisted that he is 'less and less interested in music'. of them living in America, and most of these in California. Terry
Not exactly encouraging to the audience ! Ililey, the sleeve notes to whose record we quoted earlier, is among
Cage's style of poetry, it will be observed from the above, is very them. Among his creations we find the composition, I n C . For this
reminiscent of Kerouac, Ginsberg and the 'TOs' beat generation. work any number of performers may be used. Each plays as many
And the parallels also go further: Cage lived in the same state, times as he desires a short melodic fragment, before moving on to
California, at the same time, the 19JOs, as did the early movement the next. Fifty short melodic fragments are included in all, each
of ~ot-smoking, 'spontaneous prose'-writing drop-outs. Cage being diatonic on the scale of C. Through all the noise in which this
likewise professed an interest in Zen Buddhism. and Cage's concept set-up results, some semblance of cohesion is provided by a piano;
of Zen was likewide a perversion of the genuine article. upon this the note C is repeated rapidly and continuously.
In fact, Zen actually became the mainstay of Cage's defence of LaMonte Young's Composition 1960 No. 7 consists of nothing
his doctrines. Genuine Zen may be defined as a mystical path to self- more than the instmction: 'B and F sharp. T o be held for a long
realization based upon methods designed to stretch the limits and time.' As in Cage's 4'33", any pretensions at mysticism are here
break the over-automated hnbitu~llpattcrns of the mind. Certainly overshadowed by the overwhelming and gigantically egocentric
its goal and its effect are positive and constructive; with insight, Zen attitude of cynicism. And any suspicions that such cynicism stems
can be seen to be entirclp in cnnfornlity with the great world reli- from some form of actual, suppressed malevolence may not be ill-
gions and mystical paths. Thc 'Zcn' of Cage and of the self- founded. For to Young also goes the dubious distinction of having
professed 'monks' of br:it CL~lifornia,however, is altogether less pushed concert programmes inside a violin and then having burned
well-defined, and takes 11ic form of an excuse for artistic and the instrument on stage.
behavioural anarchy. Cage uscs Zen as a philosophical basis for his Another 'new musician', David Tudor, has on more than one
techniques of indctcrn~inac~; and yet, as Christopher Small has occasion attacked a piano with various weapons - a chisel, a rubber
pointed out. true Zen docs not teach a doctrine of luck or chance, hammer, a bicycle chain and a saw - while in live performance.
but one of a diffcrcll~kind of order: a spontaneous order, but not ran- Sounds familiar? During those same years sundry rock musicians
d~mness.~' were doing the same: smashing guitars, burning drum kits and
Francis Rot~rli,wlio is actuallp considerably involved himself in amplifiers, biting the heads off live chickens and bats, and so on.
the 'new music', ncvertheless dismisses Cage's philosophy as being Clearly there is no real diffcrcncc. lxtween t h e e patterns of activity
seriously in rrror. St;~tcsRouth: within the two musical movcnicnts. True it is that 'serious' music
and popular music stem from ditfcrcnt origins and have tended to be
John Cagc rrprescnts the point of no return; nothingness. zero. widely divergent in style, forn~;tnd purpose. But there is today a
W e are bidcicn t o leave the world of reality as if in a trance. The common element moving within them : something motivated by
sound has no hcginning, middle or end; disemhodiment is the hatred rather than by love or :my other higher - emotion; a forcr
ideal; the music is not to be 'listened to' so much as 'experienced', unmistakably destructive and m;1lignant.
.
which is not easy l;)r a Westerner .. But, Cagc says, forget all Some compositions seen1 almost t o have been envisn!:r.tl
you have ever he;crd, all traditions, musical associations. every- specifically as a means of ch:innclling this malevolence into thc 11il.c.c.
thing; forget life. tion of the audience. LaMontc Young's The Tortoise, Hir Drvirr)r\
The flaw in this is iln~nistakable;if the listrncr is to enter such and Journeys expects the audience, no doubt composed {If'i n r ~ CcT~I II
a state of nihilism, he will also forget John Cagc. Moreover, has wide-eyed, admiring college students, to sit through scvrr;~lI I O I I I ~01~
not King Lear already told us what can 'come of nothing'? And aural and psychological onslaught. Young and thrcc :IS\( , ( . ; . ~ r c-. 4 11.11 11
in denying its past, thc Cagc aesthetic inevitably denies any an open chord through vastly powerful, car-splittirll: ;inlpl~f1c.1 . l 1 1 1 1
C..

possible future.22 maintain this solitary chord non-stop for alniosr two I I ~ I I I I , , ,111 I 111,.
110 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 111
within a darkened room in which the only light comes from projec- tl~cnlighted, into the needle slots of the cartridges and agitate
tions of astral, psychedelic-patterned art. Then there is a break; ~llcrn,producing noises in the loudspeakers, which accompany the
following which comes another like session of similar duration - l~crl;~rmance with low-frequency vibration sounds culled from
another two hours. It is possible in one hundred per cent seriousness ~.c.cordsof his music. One watches the actions of the t y o pcrfor-
to equate such practices with the modern brainwashing techniques of 111c.r~as in other days one watched the actions of the clowns
Communist and other dictatorial regimes. (Yet who is the more (~rculatingaround the three rings of the circus, and the morc onc
imprisoned and brainwashed - he who is kept under lock and key rcblaxes into uninhibited attention the funnier it gets. The acrion.
due to his activities on behalf of freedom, or he who, from the free likr great farce, treads with dangerous steps, as if unaware \ I O W
world, goes willingly into the prepared and darkened chamber of 11arrow1~ it avoids the precipitous inane.23
psychological onslaught 2)
A friend and fellow composer of Young, Steve Reich, has seen fit Arid of Cage's Variations IV, as performed by the O N C E gro111)01'
to study - not at any established school of music, nor even in the Anr~Arbor, Michigan:
Orient - but under a voodoo dmmmer in Ghana. Now, voodoo is
one of the few musics which, rather than cloaking its innate On a small platform an interview was being mimed (an Arncric,;~~~
hedonism and malevolence behind a mask of intellectualism, openly composer interviewing another American composer), whilc a r.cl)c
admits to being intended as a means of inducing orgies and of of the actual interview, taken from a broadcast, playcd thro~~gh
inflicting harm and even death upon other individuals. This is the an inconspicuous loudspeaker. The interviewee blasted sevcr;tl of
intent of the voodoo ritual. whatcvcr wc may think of its objective his more popular contemporaries, saying many things ;tl)out
ability. And, in view of our data thus far on music's power, the idea musical conditions and personalities as true as ernbarrassi~~g,
that voodoo does possess romc ;tctu;il clrutruciive power should not, while the mimed 'feedback' turned it all into parodic comedy, tllc
perhaps, be lightly disn~isr~d. audience laughing at truth and parody together. Meanwhile a girl
A sign for the future, t h ~ t l iArc ihc ,iv:i~it-prdegoing to be was being tied to a table and elevated by two men to the top of a
returning from Africa by the dozen '15 1r;iinc-d voodoo priests? How metal pole. Firecrackers were exploding, an automobile running
long before the first voodoo rite at London's Itoyal Festival Hall? outside an open door. A man appeared, bemused and carrying a
(A ridiculous concept? Think how inconceivahlr i t would have been baton, as if expecting an orchestra. A girl approached him with a
to, say, Haydn, that concert audiences woulrl ever sit through scarf, wound it around his neck. returned with an overcoat to put
violin-burning, dice-throwing, and the biting ot'i of the heads of it on him, returned to exchange his glasses for dark glasses, to
chickens.) The glorious dream of the expcrinlcntalists fulfilled: outfit him with a piano accordion, finally to replace his baton
Western music improved and evolved in our tirrlc from Bach, with a blind man's white, rrd-tipped cane. The image of the
Beethoven and Wagner - to the jungle beat ! reduced conductor was lcti up the aisle, bleating his accordion.
Meanwhile, the subtleties of Cage's own arti5tic style have con- An allegory of 'the end of lnusic as we have known it'!23
tinued to evolve. But, to ensure an unbiased report, Ict us hear from
Peter Yates, who himself has much sympathy wit11 ~nostof the 'new 'T~IIISmusic becomes theatrc; not as a synthesis of the two, but as a
music' : tlisint cgration of each.
Nrither has dance been allowed to escape the treatment. I11
Some of these compositions are a type of glorified play, for witncssing the activities of .Mcrce Cunningham's dance troupr, one
example Cartridge Music. Phonograph-nerdlc cartridges are rcc~llsthe original psyche-splitting plan of Edgar Vartse, t11;tt his
attached to an overhead boom and the edge and centre of a table, D6ert.v should be played in conjunction with a film of light-
chosen for the resonance of its vibration when shoved back and phcnomma, 'absolutely in opposition with the score'. 111 h/l nc-C
forth across the floor. Cage and a companion, each following a Cunningham's dances - yes; the reader's anticipation Imps :~lrc.:ttlo f
different graphic pattern of events by chance, insert slinkies, pipe 11s - the dance movements bear no relation wh;crcvrr I ~ IIIIC
cleaners, miniature flags, even a tiny birthday candle which is ;~ccornpanyingsound.
112 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 113
Cage himself has in the past worked with thc Merce III 1y y r.1 IN. cause to take heart. For as everybody knows, music with
Cunningham group. But the relationship, if 'relationship' it can be v,-4 # I,I-, is ;~lwayseasier for the man in the street to ~lndcrstand;and a
said to have been, was of the following kind: cach composer or I I I ~ I I )II T~ 01' Stockhausen's influential works d o cont;lin text. For
dancer would g o off quite separately t o plan and practise his or her t V . I I I ) ~ llle ) I C ,7 ,l-minute work Mometzts (1 964) includes the listed
own individual stage performance; then they would come together 1 1 I I I I I . ~ , 01- Stockhausen's wife. children and friends, s111;1ll portions
to perform on stage. 1 1 I I I I ICI trrs he received while creating thc wc-~rk,otld lincs from
- All of them, performing simultaneously. \%'illi,rn~Ulake, clapping and shouts of 'cncorc'. (Wit11 lhcsc last
When one thinks about it, such a situation - with everybody 111 III\, llowever. the composer may have bccn slightly ju~npirigthe
playing or dancing his 'own thing' - must be the way music and r6l1ll )
dance actually began. one day back in the steaming primeval forests. F,,I )n after Moments, Stockhausen unveiled M ikropborire I
But then, at some point, there arose co-operation and organization - I 1 ')(14),a work requiring four players, t w o of whom, wit11 thc ultra-
which, in retrospect, is after all considered to have been a point of . , I I O I I S and self-important concentration normal to pcrforn~crsof the
evolution. . ,
' i 1 l . w rnustc , excite a large tarn-tam from opposite sidrss with a 111~11-

I 11 IIIII- of different objects made of everything from wood ;und p;tpcr


A VISITOR FROM SIRIUS 1 1 , I)l;~stic and glass. The resultant sounds are picked up hy micro-
Not for no reason did the face of ECarlheinz Stockhausen (b. 1928) I ~ I ~ Ah, c ~ . raucous 'new music' sound once a g a i n N o t a
~ , ~the~ usual
peer out at us from the front cover of the Beatlcs' Sgt Pepper album I , I t o i it! For, not to be outdone, Stockhausen has seen to it that this
1L' . -.
of 1967. The numerous faces and oo~cccs - -
on the cover represented a well, 'acoustic material' - is then fed into the gadgetry workcd, or
synthesis of the Beatles' pet loves and hates; and Stockhausen was 'Iu.~.iormed',by the other two participants, who process and alter
included by those four lcading figurcs of one revolutionary field of I l l r . volume and timbre of the material. Four speakers emit both the
music in recognition of this lcading personage in anothcr branch of i!:inal and the electronically treated sounds simultaneously for thc
what was, in some ways, the same basic musical revolution. 1.J1.4 of the audience. (John Cage has not reacted favourably to the
Though Stackllnusen has never been quite as radical as Cagc, thc IIII.:~ of the raw 'new music' sound being thus tampered with by the
difference brtwecn the two is in fact one of degree, and not of type. will of human beings. It is said that Cage was present for one of
Stockha sic ia still1 of the stylc which thc majority of people \~c,c,khausen's concerts, but that when Stockhausen began using
would n Icr to be music at all. Nevertheless, Stockhausen is I U t1cntiometers etc. to alter the acoustic produce of the other perfor-
acknowl itl~inthe realm of modern 'serious' music to be the I I I I . ~ ~Cage
. stood up haughtily and walked out.)
most important c.omposer since the Second World War. His work IJpon composing a lengthy picce which he chose to call Sirius,
has influcncc.~lvcry many young musicians. Given this notability Y~rrckhausenwent on to explain a n ~ ~ m b of c r things about the work.
and influence, itl~owhich dircction then has hc dirccted thc tonal I'l~cjumble of sounds comprising the picce he claimed to reflect the
arts, this 'rnobt important composer since the Sccond World W a r ' ? I osnlic music which inund;ttcs 11ic earth from the heavenly body of
At first c.otnposing within the bounds of total serialism, I I I I . title, and from the cosmic hcings dwclling thereupon. ( S i r i ~ was s
Stockhausen the11 went on to introduce electronics into his music. ~c.lv;tsr.din a format most ;~liint o the presentation of rock recor-
And next thcrc camc indeterminate music, still largely working with tlit~!:.;:the psychedelic covcr tlcpicted an unclothed Stockhausen, as
electronic materials. Stockhausen has therefore become the virtual IIIOII/:II in the role of rock 'star', lying on the sea-shore and
embodiment of the ni;~jortrends of music within the last thirty Id~otogr;tphed stylistically whilc gazing up at a cosmic sky.) Follow-
years. Not as a followcr. however, but very much as the leader. 111): tllc release of the work, Stockhausen claimed with intcnsc*
Among his flashcs of genius is the use of electronic modulators into .l~.ri~~i~sness to have a c t ~ l ; t l ldescended
~ from a civilization of tltc
which are fed the live sounds of the performers, thesc sounds then ' I )og St;~r'.For their ~ ; I I .csotcricists
I, found much of signillc;t~~cc it)
being subject to electronic potcntiometers, filters, generators and the .
Illis st;ttc.ment ,. Ccrl;tin critics, however, contentctl thcmwlvc.c
like. w i l l 1 I hr observation th;~tit was probably timr ior ~I1cr t r / ; r r t ~~r,rriljl~*
If all this sounds worryingly inaccessible to the layman, there t onlcmporary music to he returned home.
114 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 115
THE B.F. SKINNER SHOW, OR MUSIC TO GET UNDER I I 1 1 1 c.ommerua1
~ proliferation of such 'music to g r t under the skin'
YOUR SKIN 11.1.. lot arrived yet, the same cannot be said of the commercial
Now, as we approach the close of the twentieth century, the dream t~tt)liic-r;~tion of musical vibrations applied directly onto thc surface
of those 'new music' composers who began it - that the works of 4 1 1 11ir skin. T h e inventor, David Lloyd, receivrd thc idca o n e day

Haydn, Mozart and Beethoven would be left far behind by the wllc~lanother of his inventions, a musically-vibrating flying saucer
wonderful new advances which the 'new musicians' heralded - w l~iclihung from the ceiling, fell d o w n and onto his lap. T h c srnsit-
seems without doubt to be close to full realization. The orchestra has I 1o11'felt good' t o him: 'It made m y whole body tingle.' (And
been successfully replaced by electronic filters and potentiometers. Ilc.ilcc, the dividing line between the musical arts and the 'feelgood'
W i t h typical twentieth-century ingenuity, it has been perceived that tlsug-like experience becomes less distinct.) Lloyd began marketing
when music is indeterminate in any case, and relies fully upon a t hr idea in the form of a two-inch disc which can be attached t o tlir
network of electronic connections t o determine the resultant sound, wxistband of shorts or panties. While listening o r dancing t o music,
then thc old-fashioned score-sheets are therefore not only tlic vibrations can also be transferred directly t o the body. Lloyd
unnecessary. but even unemployable. Thus, the instructions for Irrst put out the discs 'as a joke', but found that the 'rock 'n' roll hot
music today often consist only of circuit diagrams and notes on how p;tnis' idea caught on fast. However, certain implications associated
the various items of electronic equipment s h o d d be connected up. with these musical vibro-discs are somewhat less of a joke.
Lest conditions become ripe for B. F. Skinner himself t o g o on Researchers have discovered that when vibrations are applied t o one
the road, perhaps it is time to gct back t o simplicity. And what part of the anatomy, as for instance during a workman's use of a
could be more simple than the sol(-)performer? pneumatic drill, the vibrations travel throughout the body and to
In Alvin Lucier's (b. 19 3 1 ) 1 96 S 'composition', Music For .'?olo every organ. As we shall see in the next chapter, the acoustic effects
Performer, the 'performer' has thrcc Glass Instrument silver of the rhythms of much modern music have already been found t o be
electrodes placed upon his licad. 7'hcse pick up his alpha-waves and harmful to the human organism. O n e wonders, therefore, what
amplify them through spc;~krrs;the resultant sound is then used to effects might be expected whcn those same rhythms are transferred
activate a varicty ol prscllssion instruments placed in front of the directly-to the body by means of raw vibration. The spiritual/
~ ~ c a k e r s Vcry
.'~ wrll. let us put it down to typical 1960s' philosophical implications of using music in this way are also
exuberance; but striking a more sinister note by far are the state- sobering. T o the idealist poitlt of view, music should be used in
ments of ;I $rowing number of individuals who - all humour apart - order t o influence man's spirit~ralnature, inspiring his soul with
actzralb are m ~ n i c ; ~Skinnerians.
l Thcir ideas have already assumcd feelings of love, beauty, rczolulioll. ;~ltruismand all good emotions.
sufficient import;[nc-c- to gain an honorary mention in the Larozrsse W i t h this commercial invc.nrio11 o f David LloydVs,however, we
E ncydojedinof-M //sic: have the application of mucic, not 10rhc spiritual nature of man, but
to the physical body, and in trrclrr t o c;lusc 'tingles' and other bodily
The ncw music niade possible by the [new] instruments and sensations which 'feel goo~l'.A plioto8raph, published to show the
.
procedi~rcs .. i'lill no/ be less, o r move valid - it will be different musical vibro-disc in action. tlispl;iys thc torso of a near-nudc fcmalr
[my italics]. Ir 1i;is been said that in a few years' time, our under- with the disc's lead d i s a p l ~ r ; t r i rclown
~ ~ the front of a pair of vcsy
standing of tlir rc.:cctions of the central nrrvr~ussystem will have brief panties.
advanced so f : ~ rthat it will be possible to produce 'functional' I t can be seen, then, r l i ; ~ r with the coming of new ypes of music.
music predetrrmincd ;~ccordingto parameters defined by thc laws come also new uses of music, the niusic and its uses bcing of ;I sin~il:rr
of sociology and human behaviour. Knowledge of sensory orientation. The new brrrci c ~ fmusician, being fully S k i n n c r i ; ~I I~I
systems will permit thc diffusion of this music by dircct applica- outlook, can be said to r.otlstitute the ultimate and incvit;tl>lt. I.CSIIII
tion of electrical stimuli. T h e musical element will be established of the reductionist-materi~~list approach t o the art. If tlrc 1711qj1 I I I
by an electronic syntlicsizer fed with a score in the form of a music is not t o sublimate. nian's being and spiritualizt s0cic.1 - i I I I l i .
computer programrnc. The 'instruments of music' will have
become a clinical electrode applied to the forearm.I9
.
aim :,f all a n is not to dircct consciousness .f 'hrc:~u\c.I IICIY. I., l l t r
.f ' - then it logically follows that music shottlil ins1 c,~clI N - t14(.<11 4
I0 T H E SECRET POWER OF MUSIC T H E 'NEW MUSIC' 117

,ursue hedonistic goals. Music becomes not so much an art as a IIIII!: to the level of output. It is difficult t o see how thc acoustic kick
I nethod by which the musician can experience sensuous pleasure, 1111 I l ~ c ~ o r workers
y could be detected, or at least proved, by
LLmass we,alth, boost his ego, and gain power through the ability to
~llvc.<ligativebodies. And in any case, from thc first discovery of
c:ontrol ot hers. All of this we see today in the endless production-line ..l1111 ;L technique, if it proved to work very well, we can be surc t1i;tt
. .
of the rock-muzak 'industry' - which is an industry, and not an art, 111~. ,ir~cntionof the industrialists and of the nations' ministcrs of thc
I., 1111onlywould be very much alerted; and the behind-the-sccncs
since the prime moving motive of the musicians, managers and
technicians is those wads of greenbacks. I n the rock industry,money Iw(";r;llrc would then be on for the technique not to be outlawed in
I 111.Iirst place.
is basically what it is all about; and thus music is directed, not
upward (thus stretching the minds of the people and expanding their liven more difficult t o legislate would be the individual, free-will
I l~oiccto experience behaviourist music. Modern Western natiolls
consciousness), but to the lowest common denominator. The
question of questions is: W i l l it sell? T h e standard of artistry could 11.1vcrarely, if ever, legislated against any form of music, and i~
not be less relevant. would be a dilemma t o know where t o draw the line between le):.~l
Yet certain Skinnerians, who have emerged from the serious, . I I I Jillegal tonal art. Yet Skinnerian music could be as addictive a11t1
rather than from the popular, musical culture, are not satisfied with tl;c~lgerousas any chemical drugs such as heroin. (The reader will no1
the bodily 'feelgood' effect of rock, or with the industry's lucrative 11;tve missed that ominous line from Larousse, that 'The, "instr,u-
potentials. More than this, these individuals are seeking, in true lllcnts of music" will have become a clinical electrode applied to tl~c,
behaviourist fashion, to discover thc ultimate secrets of h o w to f0rearm.'l9) If unchecked, the scope for the cold-blooded exp1oit:r-
control living beings by acoustic means. Their questions are: Is there lion of Skinnerian music would be varied and vast.
a chord that can make a man go mild? A melody that, accompany- By the twenty-first century, it is altogether conceivable h11
ing a T V ad, would absolutely r-on~jelthe viewer to buy? Are there Skinnerian principles to have been successfully implanted into music
rhythms that can disintcgratc matter? 10 the extent of there being music junlues, music pushers, and .I
The electronic composcr .. V o r h ans, ~ is attempting to produce 111ulti-billiondollar industry sprung up to exploit the practice t o the
music that goes straight to ttic nerves, bypassing the conscious mind. Ililt. Music could be not an art for the uplifting and spiritual
His aim is to compose elcctrUlllc 111usiccapable of manipulating the
.,<-a- -..m cnlancipation of humanity, but a ruthless, mechanized industry
brain, inducing nrg,;ISIIIS : ~ n dbringing about LSD-like experiences.28 clcsigned to milk the last pcnny from the pockets of the enslaved.
Elsewhere, ; ~ thct r imc of W riting, certain scientists and researchers and to utterly control human behaviour for political purposes.
I
are attempting t o ulhcovcr a sound or ronal phrase that can kill a
man. SOME FURTHER ADVANCES IN THE ART
It would bc most llnwise to dismiss such devclopmcnts as imposs- Meanwhile, the wolution of thc 'new music' progresses from glory
ible; history tcnds io demonstrate all too c o n v i n c i t ~ g lthat
~ mcn to glory. M a y we present some frlrihcr advances in the art:
have been itblc to develop, evmtually, almost ;inything their Terretektorh (196J-6) by the (;reek composer, Yannis Xenakis,
imaginations scizccl llpon. The acoilstically-induced human orgasm ~.cquircs88 musicians. O n e c a ~ ~ l cvcnc i call them an orchestra. With
or anything apprn;tcliing it would certainly bring thc behaviourist 111(. slight difference that, in addition t o their usual instruments, r:tclc

brave new world ;I giant 11 : a p nearer to cornplrtion. I t could be pl:i y cr also performs upon maraca, woodblock, siren-whistlt .LIICI
expected to be only ;L matter of time bcfore industri;~linterests found w h i p ; all of which can hardly be likely t o relax or reassrrrr.
some means of over ~ t l yintroducing the 'amustic kick' onto i ~ ~ n o c c nand
t unsuspecting rncmber of the audience - sirrc,r I I I ~
thc factory floor in onc rorm or another. Like rats in a Skinner box, playrrs ;Ire all seated among the ranks of the listeners.
k ,

which are wired up to rcccivc electrical stimulation of their brain's Onr .lspect of the tota I anarch! of contemporary 11111%i(1'. 1111.
pleasure centre each timc they press a lever, ; ~ n dwhich press growing I ~ o d yof musiciaris keen tl3 demonstrate th;tr tlrr.~.r. i*,. ~ r ~ c l
rcpcatcdly and frantically until their bodies no longer possess thc \llould I)c no limit t o the v.a n.c.r y 0- ;1 means o f sound ~ I - I , I ~ II 11I I~r l 111
strength, s o the specially formulated 'music' fed to industrial ~)l-da,why shotrid a musician have to stick t o 1 1 1 4 - ,1111 ~ I ~ I ~ I I I .

workers could be controllcd to give less or more of a 'kick' accor- ;cnd so forth to produce tones? Or v v r n r l ~ r . ,:1111.11 ,11111
118 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 119
drum set for that matter? A foremost exponent of this theory is M a x
Neuhaus, a percussionist who has worked with Pierre Boulez.
S

I
y s ~ . .lI I W
0 I( I( ) .-
(As every programmer
it and feeds it information.
Garbage In, Garbage O u t - is an irrcprc!
-
... . knows, ...
Among the wondrous inventions of Neuhaus are instruments such as i 1 1 l 1 - ) In music, as in many other areas of lifc, the cc

the Water Whistle, for example. T h e Water Whistle consists of a 11 a l l v oifc*rs much as a labour-saving device. Thc I
series of rubber pressure hoses whipping around underwater in a ~ l ~ l l l . . ~ l neutral
l y implement, may even be capable 01 ;ucring in tric
pool. The hoses have whistles attached. Music (or at any rate, 'I I, vqsof composing music of real worth. Some young composers
1

sounds) are produced beneath the surface, and can only be heard by . i I ~ ~ + . b find
~ l y that computers are useful t o them since it is possible t o

submerging the ears.29 Inventions of such genius should of them- 4 I~III~>OS inC computer memory, the machine then being ablc to play
selves serve t o demonstrate why the more traditional instruments, I l t 1'1.i111 out the completed work. However, some would dchatc the
which possess such a huge range of possible tones and subtle touches ,~l.a,rlrc*tic purity of even this practice. After all, how well can n
of beauty, yet reign supreme. The W a t e r Whistlc and its brethren a llllluwr play back one's latest symphony? Certainly one can
may provide remarkable fun for the children on a Sunday afternoon, I l . ~ ~ . t imagine
ll~ that Beethoven was at all the worse for not posscis-
but each is surely doomed t o join the ranks of all other nine-day rll!: :I computer, o r even that he would have had the slightest use for
wonders. I in the forging of his masterpieces.
And yet, as though programmed t o the one inflexible goal, the I3ut (inevitably, one must by now suppose) the use of computes
'ncw musicians' persist. Increasingly, hc who would perform con- 11.15I~cenat the forefront of the works of the modern marerialist
temporary music is, like a 1 9 6 0 s astronaut, apparently expected to I 4,nlposers; works which seem to be almost consciously designed for
..
be an accomplished scuiha-drver,' ,in athlc~ t c ,and an electronics r l ~ r spczcific purpose of turning the age-old human values of
expert, not to mention a dlab hand with a W hip. The modern perfor- ,~i.\thetiCS and the principles of beauty upside down and inside out.
mer is expected to succu mh to a11 and ev ery crazy whim of the 11% was reported in a recent article by D o u g Garr, computers 'have
.- -..- .. S o w n schizophrenic humour
composer; to embody thc. crjrnpubrr ~ B.- ~~ .--l
c c c - s sbroken
f ~ l l y music and vocalization into their component
and pretentious conccntratic-)n upon the frankly inane. W h e n an I ~ ; ~ r t s a nreassembled
d them as new, hybrid sounds. Voices have
orchestra is not prcpnrcd to d o so (and there have been instanccs of I rrcn transformed into emotionless tonal i n ~ t r u r n c n t s . ' ~ ~
renowned orchestras rebelling at the demands of the radical avant- Something of the kind was tried in the early '70s by the rock
garde), thcn thcy arc cl~idcdas being backward, and dismissed as !:roup Curved Air, human speech being vocoded and played back
unprofession;~l. ~llrough an electronic keyboard instrument. The 'ghost in the
Relentlessly, increasingly, live performances of contemporary
2 ,
~rl;tchine'said a little pocm with the acoustic arena all to itself, all
music cor Tor nll a~)pearan(zes, t o combine an episode of Dr 3unds having halted, as cho 11g1ithe 1istener wcre expected t o
Who wit1 r of It's cI KtzocX tout a n d an operation of the SAS. l this ultimate flash o f g('nius as i~: appeared in spotlight.
Christoph ~ r y ,a 'S ound a~rtist' (yes. the quaint old term, iappened, however, t h e c.n1~1 result of the experiment was
'composcr', could ncvcr last) from Boston. has cngincered a musical clrlotiona& cold as ice, and rnorc. th;in a littlc dull even t o Curved
instrument from n stnirwell. Photoelectric cells are attached to the Air's mainly ~ l n d e r n a n d i naudience:
~ the artistic low-point of t h r
steps, and each individual photoelectric beam. if broken, releases a cnrirc piece; a mechanized sound Sor mechanized minds.
series of notes stored in a computer. The 'instrument' is played by I3trt progress marches on: at thc present time w e have thc
one or more people rurlning up and down the stairs." rcsrarcl~being undertaken hy Charles Dodge and the cornputcr
music drpartment which hc runs at Brooklyn College, Ncw Ytrrk.
COMPUTER MUSIC Dodgtb 'I;r;ifts' different varii1b1c.s and factors of the souncl of cjiff'r-
Christopher Janney's usc of computer conforms t o the rule rather rent singers together. Voiccs are first digitized at 15,000 c ; ~ m p l r s
than being an exception among contemporary 'sound artists'. The per s c c o ~ ~ dand , this analysis is then reduced to 120 s;~rn~il(.s prr
computer, like many other technological devices, is of course neither second. which is easier to work with. A number of factc,r5 ; ~ r ~ 'I'iItrr tl
good nor bad in itself; the cxtcant of its usefulness, and whether it coefficirnts' vary within each time frame - factors scrt,l~:I\ I j i ~ ~ . l ~ ,
works for good o r evil, depends entirely upon the human being who : ~ r n p l i t ~ ~ d;tnd c , the sounds gencratcd by w i n d l ~ i p r ,I O I I , I ; IiI: ~ ~
w,,
120 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 1 21
mouth. glottis and vocal-cords. By combining the 'filter coefficients' :( )IIKAGEOUSLY EXPLORING BACKWARDS
of different individuals, then, it is possiblc t o produce a speech graft. \ V ( . sllould probably be grateful that cross-synthesis is not as easy t o
For example, the pitch and amplitude of one voice can be 'played \:,.I in10 as playing the guitar: the high cost of computers prohibits
through' the tongue, jaw and glottis of another voice.19 \,ltic,c.-grafting and the like b y all but the more wealthy musicians
Doug Garr reports on the development that, 'From simple . I I I ~ I 11111sicdepartments. I B M s are still not something you can sling
melody to complex, eerie harmonies, the musical breadth is as if the 0lvc.r your shoulder and take with you along the overland route to
Andrcws Sisters had suddenly become baritoncs.' Comments music Il~tli;~. But all praise then for Skip LaPlante, w h o has the
professor Tom Jcrse, laughing, 'It's like taking one person's vocal . I l i l i t p to make music right back among the more usual social stratas
cords and putting them in someone else's mouth. It means you can I ,I society.

mix Mick Jagger and, say, Luciano Pavarotti in one voice A graduate of Princeton University, N e w Jersey, USA (where he
track . . .'29 9.111cliedMozart and Schoenberg), LaPlante performs o n sound
Marvellous! ( ... Yes?) N o doukt the Ph.Ds arc being handed l:c.ncrators which usually cost less than $ U S 2 5 t o build. H e has
out thick and fast these days down at the Brooklyn College .~l,out60 of them, all different; wind and percussion instrument^.^^
computer music department. Aiid the secret?
If w e hold, even just t o s o n ~ ccicgrcc, to the axiom As in music, so The secret of this latest advance in the art is t o raid scrap-heaps,
in lfe, then where a runaway, l ~ o l ~ ~ ~ l ; l rart i x e dof voice-grafting kitchens and old farmhouses. LaPlante has discovered pace-setting
would lead us is both difficult I O prcdict and sobering t o con- 11cw timbres from 'huge cardboard rug tubes, broiler pans, catfood
template. At bcst it wo~lld scsc~iit o point towards a further (,;Ins, even shards of glass'.29 Enthuses LaPlante: 'You can get really
dehumanization of thc c.on;tl ;trts, and to yet another force present clcan pitches from cinder blocks broken into L-shapes. And cut-
within society to incrr;15c. r l ~ c : incidence of alienation and mental town wine jugs make excellent cloud-chamber bowls.' According t o
illness. Actually, in suc,l~tli'sctiptions as that above of voice-grafting, Iloug Garr, our erstwhile, new-arrival sound artist 'hunts for
it is possible to notc. ;I cx:srain parallel with the grafting of gcnes in 1);tttered and discarded wine jugs on the Bowery in N e w York
genetic enginecrirlg: ;I ~ > ; ~ ~ ; i l lin
c . lthc sccming lack of respect towards City'. And: ' H e has cvcn created music by bouncing a Superball on
Nature as givcn t o us; in something of a desire t o play G o d ; a ;I piece of glass.'29
certain hint of ;trl O,L;L::III~C~. Yet the fact is that Skip LaPlante has heard nothing! M a n y times
W e can :it Ic;~:;tI K thankful that the 'engineers' of genes are con- I have encountered such music. and always performed by experts in
strained, at Ir.;ts~Ior tltc present, to thc combining of biological traits the field; even once while p;~ssingthrough a district of his own
with other hinlqSical traits. The sound grafters, to their glee, are N e w York City - here too I wirncsscd the neighbourhood toddlers
subject to no s11iI1 constriction. Computer cxpcrts at Stanford gathering together. I n this plrr ic~tlarinstance they had t w o toy tin
University, C;tlil;)rnia. for example, can mix thc sound of one banjos, a kazoo and a coupl~.01 woodcn spoons with which to beat
inanimate rn~tsic.;tlinstrument with another, or of an instrument with an assortment of pots and 1711111. (Ii)r as long as their parents would
the voicc ol' ;I \ i ~ ~ g cThe r . results can sound likc ,I piano-guitar, a stand it). N o doubt toddlcrs i l l c-vcry city of the world d o much thc
talking flutc or ;t trumpeting soprano. Stanfnrcl rtsearchcr John s;imc. All of them quite unsusptctirlg that they are 'new musicians'!
Serawn, who calls thc process 'cross-synthesis', says that the result- However, can LaPlatitc's mrisic really be called 'new' when its
ing harmonirs arc 'clt~itcspooky'.2' sounds are such a close kin t o those produced by the first cave m:in
Incidentally, I h;tvc yet to come across a written account of t o think of banging a bone OII ;I hollow log? W e have already pos~.cI
computer vocoding o r other such practices which does not, in this same moot point in rcfcrcnce to the work of John Cage ;incl I 111.
describing the resu1t:unt sounds, use adjectives such as 'spooky', Mercc Cunningham group. Question of questions: C o ~ ~ l ci t l 111t.11
'weird' and 'eerie'. If life pattcrns d o tcnd t o follow music patterns, possibly, conceivably be that the self-professed musical ';~v:IIII-!:.II.~~(".
d o we really want the eerinrss and spookiness of voice grafting o r way out in front, ahead of all the others and pointing t l ~ c .t1irc.i I i o 1 1 .
cross-synthesis t o be the sound of music t o come? ..
arc leading us all . backlv'ards?!
If so, it may be pointless to struggle against t l ~ ci ~ ~ c . v i l . ~(l d11~. I.I
112 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 123
1c;ist. SO thc 'avant-garde' ancl their supporters would havc us w.ly 10 communicate with thcm musically Thcy simply follow
belicvc*, for it is startling with what confidence they ,Ire able to map I I I C I I ~ ~ n ~ u l \ which
es, is very good ds therapy for them per-
out our musical future for us in advance. Doug Garr, for instance, ,,l 11r.1 l1 ; but unfortunately, they d o not go beyond t h ~ point
t and
whcsc illuminating ;irticlc, "The Endless S c a l c ' , ' ~ a s been quoted 1 1 1 1 c.11J result is often chaos, not a well-ordered niu\ical work.

,l
from scvc-ral times above. assurcdl\l informs us that. 'The riiusic of h1.111yof our younger composers have lost the clu,ility of
tomorrow will not limit expression: i t will- frcc it of virtually all I I I I I I I I ~ I ~ ~ , d most important elcmcnt for scrving thc Musc.
restraints', and confidentl\t concludes: 'Our aural expcricncc will he \ V ~ ~ I i o uhumility t there is no love o r charity, and dogmatism
cclectic and clccrron;~.' 1l..ll.tllY follows."

ll
ASSESSING THE A V A N T - G A R D E W I I AT IS THE PURPOSE OF MUSIC?
N o t all who work within the field of music have followed the '.nI~o~lI~l WC desire t o help reveal the actual inner nature of the 'new
views in their entirety of the new 'sound artists'. A number of sane . .
I I I I I ~ Iand L . , its possible effects upon the listener, then there exists a
, ~ n c i timcly cornrncncs havc been forthcoming even from nlusicians \ , I - I y effective method of doing so. Let us recall our previous
~'110~ ~ C I I I S C ~ Vprofcsc
CS sor~icintcrcst in t l ~ cncw thcorics and stylcs. . I I I : I ~ofOthe ~ ~seed and its end result: that the real nature of the
111 p.~rtictrlar, attention has t>c,cn ioc~usrcl rlpon the pcculi;tr ;tnd -.(.(.(I is only fully discovered when it has sprouted and flowered.
q ~ ~ c s t i c ~ n ~conscictusnesh
iblc o f thr raciic:~l.iv:tiit-gnrdc thcnisclvcs ns \2/11;1tthen, we should ask, is the ultimate goal of today's radical
l
ind~viduals.This is to pct right to LIIC cor-c o f the rn;t~:tc-r.Stephen U 4 ,l~~l>osers? W h a t manner of flower d o they envision for their seed?
i~ I i2';tlsh wrltes candidly ot- t l ~ c'p~,ctc~irious solcmniry with which Wlr;i~is the purpose behind their endeavours? T o what d o they
ll
1
o f [~nodcrnmusic'sl Ic\\cl. cxponrnts conrinuc to rcpnrd thcm-
s ~ l v ~ sI v ' . Y chudi I\4rniil1in, r lie liuniblc ;tnd pcrcpicacious '13;itron
~ \ j j i r c iD o they believe, as did J. S. Bach, that music is for the glory
# , I G o d and the betterment of man? D o they believe, as did all the
saint' of good Mrc,stcr~imusir.. rcicrs to thc a v ; l n ~ - p r d cas 'mcchano'
i ~l
composcrs. sincr tlrcy clisl>l,ty;nind ~vithoutheart.
111;ljorclassical composers, that their art should be consecrated t o the
1 l ..l>iritualuplifting of society?
Even by the c;trIy 1 O.;O>, the direction takcn by some cornposcrs No. for such concepts cannot in fact be contained within the
had bcctrmc. \uf'fic.ic.ntly I>iz;~rrefor T h o m ; ~ sFicldcn. in :t chaptcr 111indwhich precludes the possibility of the vertical dimcnsion of
1~

l i
cntitlcd .Ml~;t!is (;crocl'~usic?'to w'trn 11s that: ~ . c ; t l i twith
~ , its mystical implications.
i It is true that many, and rvcn most. twentieth-century composers
... WC* h.~1.C , 1 1 ) rc'tiictnhcr t1i;tt w l i i l ~W C may discitrd the vulp;tr,
~ i rvc go [ c , 1 1 1 ~ .crtl~crcxtrcmc if W C spend rrur tirnc posing and
.tciop~i~i+~,e'll~rico ~ ~ t p ~ ~ ;IS
( i r great,
i ~ i g j~u q t I>cc;tr~hcb
they happrn
to 1~ i r t l ~ l ' r r11~ 'I'lic onc is just ;[S inutistic and ncjn-contrib~ltoryt o
11;tve claimed to hold t o sorncs form of spiritual belief, and have
es included supposedly rnystical elements within their
ut these 'beliefs', likr C:;iSc's 'Zcn', have usually tcnded to
Irc t ~ n ~ watered-down
~ ~ e , ;~ntl111ixcd-up;they have been, for the
cctlturc 2nd cl1;11-;1ctcr as the othcr."' ~ n o s tpart, a severe comprc A' genuine religious and mor;tl
I>ritlciples,and even, at timr! m. W e would usually be corrcct

~ ~,
In his esccllcr~~I ) o t r k , iMusic it! t h r Life qf'hlrlr~.Julius Portnoy . .
111 ~gnoringthe token word. h composers, and realizing that
1 i 1 11 clearly dcfincs t l ~ cl ~ ~ ~ o l > l c m : 11it.y rcmain, for all their intcllcctual posturing, atheists itntl
I l l
rc~iu~.rio~iists.
A composer r n r l \ r lie. i~rihucdwith a dccp semc oispirituality, but Tow;~rds what goal, thcn. do they envision their art :is I>~.~II!:
l many of our contclrllie)r;tr> ones confi~scit wit11 sentimentality
;uid ~ssociatcit with a n ;tgc o f romantic chivalry which n o longer
tlirectcd? Suggestions as to the purpose of music from even tlir I I I O - ~ I
1'1 ,, wcll-inrrntioned and humanitarian of materialists arc incv i~ . ~ l r yl
,l,
has a p1;ice in a world cxpl;~ined p ~ ~ r t . l in y mechanistic tcr- found to be substantially wanting. Theorists with ;I I ~ i c ~ l o ~ : ~ i . l l
I minoloKY. Many contcmpor;lry composers will not toil and I~ackground,for instance, have frequently statcd wit 11 I . I - I I I . I I I<.IIII
,l! bcconie p-oficicnt in thcit. cr;lft. 'They would r;tthcr bc vague ;tnd unruffled confidence that all music is an imitation 01- , I I I ~ I T I . I ~ I.~I.%..
\ilhjcctivc. ,tnd clo~tkthcni.;clvccs in ac~st1icti.cpurism so tlicrc is n o ( :harlcs Darwin himself, while proceeding ratlicr nrc ,rr I ~ I I .II I ivcl~,

l'!
I
124 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 125
suggested that musical tones and rhythm first originated when the ~ ~ ( U 1 4 1 1 I I I ~ . ;,rain' is symptomatic of thc. tinlcx. \\'I' livc In ;In ;tge
I I

half-human progenitors of man evolved the sounds in order to I ) 'r l vc.11 the dccpest of spiritual practices. such a, mccfitation, arc
attract a mate, and to ritualize the process of courtship. If this was r , ~ I I ,1,rly ~ . c ~ a r d cind such materialist tcrrns. kIrJitsiion. tlc\c.t.il~cd
1 .

so, Darwin believed, then it also provided the reason for man's still a S 1 t 1 1 t 111k1.1 ;,go h? thc authors o f thc Up;inishads as 'knowlrdgc o ( ' ~ b r

..
enjoying music and finding it beautiful today: ' . from the deeply I ) I I S ( - ;ind immortal ... pure unitary consciuusncss. ineffable
I laid principles of inherited associations, musical tones would be ,t~prcmr . . . unity with t h r light that is in the slrn.
likely to excite in us, in an ... indefinite manner, the strong 11 I ~ t , r r l from evil. ascension to God's dwelling place .. thc tr'in-
I .
emotions of a long-past age.'jl Darwin was saying, then, that r 11111.rt(c
1 of physical consciousness' is assessed by modcm scicntisi>
Beethoven's Ninth Symphony is enjoyed and acclaimed by us n t a 111tlingto the mcditatur's brain's ability to rno1.c a nccdlc o n ,l11

because it reminds us of sex and courtship with hairy bcauties of I I ( ; tlisplay. Self-acclaimed ttvcnt~eth-ccntury'gurus', such as the
aeons ago. R I .~ll.~~.i\hi Mahcsh Yogi of TM (l'ransccndcntal 1Meditation) fame.
A more reccnt theme is stated b y Marvin Minsky, w h o is the l~lt~c.~.liar techniques o f 'metiitation' guaranteed to fulfil the needs of
head of a project at the Massachusetts Institute of Technology to 1 t 1 . 1 1 1 in the modern world by helping him to be 'unburdcncd o f
investigate computer music, and a pioneer in researching the field of I 4.11~.ion' and. of courw, 'relaxed'.
artificial intelligence. The purpose of music, believes Minsky, might I I I xddition t o what we can call the 'relaxation theory' of muiic
be 'to relax the brain'.j2 This, W C might allow, is probably an I I 1.. tllose other -t ideas that the entire purposc of all music is t o
improvement over the Darwinian hypothesis. At first sight the idea ' I rrtrrtain'. o r that the function of rnusic is to provide 'an emotional

can even seem quite acccptablc: h;tven't we all used music 'to relax I . I I 11.1rsis'.

the brain' now and again? Yct rllc hypothesis - which is shared by Atlother such deficicnt concept ~ r o v i d e sthe foundation stone fcr
many besides Minskp - is gl;iringly materialist on t w o points. First, 1 1 1 ~ rnusic of Steven Halpern. Halpern has become connected in
note the use of t h c wortl 'brain'. T h e implication is obviously I I I . I I I ~people's minds with the New Ape muvcnirnt - the general
i!
contrary to thc spiri~u.tl viewpoint, which views man's being as I1t.licf that as we pass deeper into thr agc o f Aquarius, a new era o f
being something wllich includes but also by far transcends the I~~~othcrhootl, pcace and spirituality will progrc.ssively manifi%st.Yct
physical brain. f3ut no, to the materialist, you and I are merely I I can be of no little importance that the N e w Age movement, for all
bio1ogic:rl roh(jrs; Minsky and his friends are all getting ready to 1 1 , high mystical hopes and conirncndable moral values, has thus far
relax our brains with those electrodes implanted into our forearms. . ~ I h c r c dalmost exclusively t o rhc music o f thc +- and even 4
And sccond, is thC purpose of music only to relax us? That idea is clircction5.
surely fill1 o f liolcs. Arc we relaxed - by the incidental music to an And what, to Steven Halpttn, is rho purpose of his music? In all
action-packcd suspcnsc movie? D o football crowds chant - to 1)1' his talks and writing5 t l i c , \ . I I I I C , c.ritction kecps appe'tring by
relax? For that matter, does The Rite of SprinLq or the Sex Pistols' which all music, it seems. \Iio111~\1~ judpcd: that music should be
'Anarchy In Thc IJK' - relax us? And, still morc to the point, are 'Ilc.aling.. Again, hardly a <lcslii~;tl>lc idea at first sight. How?ver.
works such :IS Rccthoven's Missd 5olemnis or Viiughan Williams' rltr rcrrn 'hcaling'. ;is uscd :IIILII I I I C ~ ( * S ~ ~ O O Cby ! many, is frequently as
Lark Ascendiq rlcsigncd t o relax us - and not to move us, melt our !,II- f:om thc genuine mr;ining 0 1 thr: word as ia the of rhc
hearts, and aurakca t1,oughts of piety in our minds? Rather, good K~.(YIIIIII or the 'love' of' t l ~ c\crrually permissive. For Halpern.
music is designcd t o expand our consciousness, and such a n activity ' h c ; ~ l i n ~means ' soothing n n ~ r;tcitying;
t music to calm - and ).c\. [ ( I
demands of us not s o much a statc of relaxation ns a definitc attitude 'rcI;~x'115 - nfter. a busv day , I ( ~ h office. c All much along the l i n l - \ 1 1 1
of creative tension. ,L music:~l'I'M.
I t seems that the icfc.1 r)f the purpose of music being to 'relax' us A wider and morc accrl,t,~blcdefinition of 'healing rnusiL' worrl~l
occurs to the mind which is locked into the -+ philosophy simply includc tonal art which hrlps to pcrfcct and align the r o r , ~ l i l, \ 1 ,1 1
because this supposed purposr of music is the most con!,tructive of man's I,cbing. I n this srnsc. classical ; ~ n dall gcnuincly gootl I I I ( I ~ II,,~
which such a mind can conceivr. c.ertainly hc;tlinp: healing in the word's truest ancl 1'1111t.sr, l . r l b 9 l . . . i t s .I
T h e theoretical reduction of music to being an agent of 'relaxa- 11;trmonizr.r; ~ n dimprover of cach aspccr o f ni;111'.; I tt*rlr!! I I I ~ ~ * . .I ] ~. t
120 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 127
:motional. mental and spiritual. In his talks, however, Hafpern has N o problem - Routh takes the fact completely in his stride. If the
Ilever see med enthusiastic about classical music. Aftcr t Iloicc is between not altering our artistic standards bccausc it means
ill, work s such as Elgar's tremendous Pomp and Circzlmsrance . ~ l ~ i ' r i nthe
g standards b y which w e also live, or else changing both
Inarches r)r Verdi's A i d a are hardly 'healing' in the sccse of bcing I ) I I I . standards of art and of life, then w e must apparently choose the
soporific, marijuana-music (as is the output of the supposedly New 1.111c.r.Routh continues: 'If the musical ideas appear arbitrarily
Age musicians). Besides being both inspirational and spiritual. l i ~ ~ k c unconnected
d, scctions juxtaposed, the harmony illogical. then
classical music is also usually very demanding intellectually, if it is to St.hoenberg invites us to reconsider and revise our view of the
be fully absorbcd. T h e listener is active, not passive. 111rtsica1 art - and with it, our view of reality [my italics].'22 (Invoking
If a new and better era awaits humanity, its successful manifesta- 111cAs in music, so in life maxim, the kind of music described by
tion will certainly require men and women of true spirituality - I<outh above would therefore lead t o life-phenomena paralleling the
which is to say, men and women of both mystical heart andpractical ,~l)ove-describedmusical phenomena. T h a t is, mental ideas would
mind. Active and capable intellects will be an essential. It demands I)cbcome arbitrarily linked and unconnected, actions would become
little foresight t o realize that planet earth will never be improved by sr r;tngely juxtaposed, and the emotiot.zs illogical.)
sitting back in a cloud of incense or by falling asleep to an electronic Upon what, then, should w e base our value judgments regarding
sound-massage. Is, then, t h e music of Steven Halpern, Steve ;l work of art? Plato and the other sages of old believed that, to be
Hillagc and others truly N e w Age music? Does it raise our hearts of value, art should contain and display the three sisters of Beauty,
with inspiration t o be self-sacrificing? Does it divinely organize our 'Truth and Goodness. These three qualities were conceived as being
minds? Does it impel us to awaken to thc challenges of the hour in intimately interrelated: like the Trinity of the world's religions, the
the world at large, as, directly or in~lircctly,;tny gcnuine N e w Age three qualities were, in fact, different aspects of the Supreme.
music must? Not whcn it is a n i~npi~lsivc~ (.II,IO% o f jazz. Not whcn it Moreover, they were inseparable: a work of art which was beautiful
is over-electronic and divorced fsonr I -linss. Not when, as it was so since it contained elements of Truth and Goodness. Art
so often is, it is a synthrtic nlist of psy n~i;t.;m;t. which did not contain such elements was automatically ugly, and t o
Such music could never have bee1 1111dr.rthe system of he shunned. I t might be said that the definition of Bcauty was that
beliefs held by the composers of former times. Music,i,~nsof the past it contained Truth, in that it was aligned t o the eternal principles of
humbly placed themselves in subservience to thc crc~.n;~l pinciples the Above, and that it contained Goodness, since its effect upon the
which havc governed, and always shall p v c r 11. ~ h claws of pcrceiver was always a beneficial one.
aesthetics of all art. Enter now the 'new music', to the proponents of which the objec-
W h a t happened at the beginning of our ccnttiry is that thcse tive view of art - that art affects and society - is anathema,
principles came to be considered as not being ctcrn;tl ; c l l c t immutable since it demands of the artist ;l scnse of moral responsibility. Hence,
at all. W h e n one thinks about it, the doctrine 01' 11c*xil>lcand tran- in order t o clear the way for ;tnarcliy in music, the objective view of
sient artistic standards was the only basis upon wlii<~lt the revolution thc art must be refuted; the inseparableness of Beauty, Truth and
could ever have taken place. Francis Routh, thc corll1")ct.r and writer C;oodness must be denied, so 11i;lt WC can claim that Beauty, or
on contemporary music, spells the new course ol ~llingsout for us in istic tic valuc, does not d r p c ~ ~ upon
tl the Goodness, or objectivr
his chapter on Schoenberg and the Vienncse school: ~sl'fc.ct,of a work. Over again, rlicn, to Francis Routh:

Once Schoenberg had accepted the break-up OS the traditional '1'11~three goddesses of Reatity, Truth and Goodness are in~lr1~c.11
syntax as a f a i t accompli, it is n o longer reason:~l,lc*to consider his dent and jealous ladier, each with her o w n particular 4 1 > 1 ~ ( , ~01
(.

music by the traditional standards. Fresh ones arc needed.22 ..


;~ciivity . w e must clearly differentiate their distinct ~.ol(.\11
arc 1 0lay the basis of a valid aesthetic judgement; ; ~ n t lir wll~~ltl
l >

T o this one might wonder: but are not thc principles and standards l)(* IKrverse t o auocatc music to any except thc fint: '
by which we judge music and the other arts basically the same as
those by which we govern our lives, and by which we structure our
tliea~of the world?
128 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 129
These are outstandingly twisted sentiments as they stand. But Routh 11111.~1( 1;111. Christopher Small, is certain that in twentieth-century

has not yet finished: IIIII.,I(,we see 'the shape of a society t o which it a ~ ~ i r c s ' .It's
~' a
..I,, ~c-rywe may be familiar with in advance from the works of
Let us be quite clear about this from the outset. The sense or ( 11.tIrgc Orwell and Aldous Huxley.

faculty with which we judge music is on a different intellectual


level from that with which we decide whether an action or It( )l ,LOVER BEETHOVEN; ROLL OVER MAN
institution is good or bad, or whether a scientific theory, or 1'11 l l ~ cspiritual idealist, man is essential to the process of creating
religion, or philosophical system, is true or false.22 I I I I I ~ . ~on
C two counts: as a composer and as a In compos-
I I I ~ , , only man, and no machine, can discern those elements of
If we reduce that philosophical concept of music to its naked -.llil.i~ual value and beauty which are essential to good music; and in
essentials we are left with: 'The sense or faculty with which we Iwrli)rming, it is only the heart, head and hand of man which are
judge music is on a different intellectual level from that with which I .~p;tbleof infusing into the tones those subtle nuances and touches
we decide ... good or bad .. . true or false.' 1 ,I ilcep sublimity which makes each performance unique and worth

Thus, we are invited to embrace a doctrine of aesthetics in which whilc. The contemporary 'sound artists' left, early on, much of the
not only have morality and spirituality becn discarded as un- ~wrformingto their computers and synthesizers. But beyond this,
necessary, but no firm standards of any forni whatsoever remain. 1l1c.y have not been slow in realizing the further possibility, which is
The wavering, subjective mortal will has ousted, or attempted to .I rcduaionist-materialist's dream: why not let the machines get on
oust, the universal laws of immutable. t ) c ; ~ u i Ya
~ . more radical still with all the composing as well?
than the make-it-up-as-we-gc~-:~Io~ig nior;~lisis is the philosophy As early as 19S6, Lejaren Hiller and Leonard Isaacson of the
implicit in indeterminate music, in whic4i 1101 cSvrnmortal will, but I lniversity of Illinois programmed their computer to compose by
mere chance, rules unrivnllcd. Tlnls, tllc'rc rcm:iins no scope for the wlecting notes from a chromatic scale with a range of two and a half
making of value judgmrnts at nll, sincx. wr ;trr c;~llcdto accept and octaves. The program had the machine select notes at random, but
applaud whatchvcr so~inclh turn up. J)hn C:tgc, i ~ l d e t e r m i n a c ~ ' ~ 1,rjccting those notes which did not combine well melodically accor-
godfather-supremo, informs us that: tling to the traditional rules of key, and so forth.34
The following year, Max Mathews and John Pierce, upon atten-
Value judgrncnts are destructive to our proper I)~lsir~css,
which is cling a concert, decided that a computer could do better. The two
curiosity and awarenrss. H o w are you going to ~iscthis situation wcre colleagues at Bell Laboratories, New Jersey and had soon
if you are there? That is the question.33 invented a computer which, thcy believed, could reproduce any
sound able to come out of a loudspeaker. Within a year, their
And again, Cagc snaps at us: computer had become the first in thc world actually t o generate the
sound of, er ... 'music'."
W h y do you waste your time and mine by tryiug t o make value Despite the 1916 composing computer of Hiller and Isaacson, the
judgments? Don't you know that when you grt ;I value judg- I i t l(. of 'the world's first composing machine' is also claimed for thc
ment that's all you have?33 (.l(.(t ~icalengineering creation of Salvatore Martirano, who is also at
I 11c I l l~iversityof Illinois, deep in Ray Bradbury country. T h c 'Sill-
In conclusion, let us stress once morc that the flowcr reveals that Mitr Construction' is certainly more complex than rhe Hillrr-
which always was contained in the seed. In ordrr to get to grips Is:~;icsonprogramme, howcvcr: by activating various cornhin:~ti o ~ ~ ) i
with the real nature of the 'new music' it is necessary to discern of 2 0 I switches the computer is drrected to create vnri;~ricb~~\ OII
where the composers are trying to lead us. And when Cage speaks I)asic mclodic themes. I t can also emit its own artistic. crr.:ilit)rl\
of discarding value judgmcnts in relation to music, we can be sure ~hrot~gli 24 independently controlled speakers.'4
that he envisions an exactly similar fate for the value judgments by Mc:~nwliile. Max Mathews, the same r1ectric;il t ' i i j : i ~ ~ c ' < ' ~II.OIII
which we live and relate to our fellow man. The contemporary l{(.II l..;~hor:itories,is continuing his efforts t o ilo I V - I I ( ~ I 111.111 111o-;c'
130 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEIY MUSIC' 131
htunan beings at that concert in 19 7 . N o w also Bell's director of 111 L ~ C defunct.
. I I I I ~ ~ ~ I I ;and ~ I f thc world does nor txkc up such
acoustic and behavioural research, he works with machines such as n g c s ,give answcr, then the K . 1:. Ykin11c.r Aurotiomic
I ~ . ~ l l ( ~ r ~;rnd
the Crumar synthesizer to program and create new sounds. ( )~c.l~c.stra may as well be correct in their procIamation.
Mathews admits that computers may never writc thc equivalent of a
Bach cantata. Rather, ' . . . they will write something very different, I ,MI'm SEATS
but somcthing present and furirrc generations find just as satisfy \ V ( . I I , L ~ J ~ ,then. briefly surveyed the cold, barrcn landscdipc. oC tlic
ing'.'" ( N o doubt another case for the old clectrodc on the forearm ' I I I . ~ nn~~sic'.
~ T h e question W C must now seek to answcr is: Wli;it
.. .) 11.1.~ r l ~ ceffect o f this music bcen upon twentieth-ccntury m a n ? Wow
And if computers are to compose and perform our music for us I I . I V C ihc music's characteristics. such as everything from ati,nality
from now on, then it would, of course, be unthinkable t o deny them . r ~ r t l serialism to indeterminacy and Skip LaPlantc's cardbo,~rdrug

thc right t o run the music classroom. Should it for some reason be I 111)c.s, influenced life patterns?
considered necessary to continue to teach music to human bcings, I,;itcr in this book xrr shall notc that whenever. during the coursc
then it would obviously be ridiculous to leave the task t o a mere I 11 history, a traditional, classical style of music has bcen supplanted

mortal. Hence, thc Systems Dcvclopment Corporation of Santa I I a~ rcvolt~tionof musical materialism, such revolutions hdvc tcnded
Monica has come to thc rescue in conjunction with thc t\iurlitzer I O succeed by means of the same gcncral tactic. By introducing a

Corporation. In an article entitled 'Teaching Music by Computer', (11c:~pcrand more boisterous form of art. the revolutions have won
we read: I~)piilarity with the massrs. Almost overnight it scems, virtually the
c , ~ ~ t ipopulacerc hegins listcning to and craving for thc new, cheaper
T h e new computerized music ex will have a class of \oilncis. And the traditional, more dtrnanding music becomes all but
youngsters simultaneously in! pianos connected to a Ii)rgotten.
computer. T h e classroom is silcr~t. LIII.OIIMII licrtdphones cach Thc revolution o f the 'ncw music', however, has taken on a diffe-
child hears only his own p l ; ~ y i n;111d ~ 1 1 1 il~s~r~~c:tions
~ or musical writ shape. In this instnncc, the strcanl of classical music has becn lcd
notes gcncratcd h\; r l ~ c colnl)utcr. D i f l r c l . ~ ~c,onibinations of ,tstray down a w a y w ; ~ r dpith into rcalrns of cokd-hcarted abstraction
musical notes ;ire gcmc.r:~~cd i l l rcsponsc to c;~clisr c~dcnt'sactivities and mentalism. Seriouh Wcstcrn music has bcen led to its death, and
. . . Each chilcl c x n control his own progranl t o ;I tl(,,q~.cc... '' ~ h fount c of genuine crrat ivity and beauty has all but dricd up.
T h e result of this p;irt ici11:tr revsolution. therefore, is that there is
As wrc might cxpca, the music-teaching computrr ~tcscrihedabovc is scarcely any serioirs contcl-npor,isy nir~sicwhich thc music-lover who
hut a v;~rianton the standard designs for a~mpirctr-;~ssistcd instruc- possesses the slightrsc i o ~ ;01 ~ spiritir;tl ;tttunemrnt can enjoy. A
tion which resulted from the mechanical 'tc;~cl~ingmachines' century ago, concert halls wt.r.c. Lllcci with audienccs who had come
dt-;eloped by K . F. Skinner at Harvard in thc IOTOs. Skinner's t o listen to thc latcst work of' rhc composers of the romantic cra;
1984-like drcirm was to see all teachers, with thcir :lbility t o be toJxy W C have few, if AI- 1" )\C'S5 0 f serious music who arc
genirinely compassio~latcand to care individt~ally I ~ ) I . cach child in worih mentioning. I f wt. I istcn at all to a contcmpor;ir):
their care, rcplaccd b y consoles and flashing liphts. Absolute values work, then W C are biddl-n 1 cl;t Ollrs(.Ives to the latest cr;t7~'11
have never meant any more t o Skinncr than thcy do to thc 'new c l I:.LI ion of a Stockhauscn I ) I . I :,~gc..
musicians', we should rtlso note, as was reflcctcrl in the vcry title of t * , ~ c c with
d such a pro:q.lc.c-l, thc public have 'voted with 111cir
his book in which he set forth his idcas on lrow to reform 'human feet'. During the writing c r f l l l i \ vcry chapter, in 1 9 8 2 , Tolin 1:.1,1:1.,
organisms' and civilization by way o f mechanic;tl [caching machines thtn ;rgcd 7 0 , arrived in 1,ondon to pcrfornl his latrst work, t I l c . I I I l r ,
and other conditioning mcthods. T h e title of this famous o f w l i i ~ l ione does not c.vt.11care t o remember. And r~c;~llc.l . ,I~T~J,I
bchaviourist book might also be taken as a most accurate description rcntly, ciid many others, h.)r midst the political a n d ;~rtisric.1 , I ~ ~ I I . I 01I
of the music of behaviourist 'sound artists': Rcyotzd Freedom atzd Greitt Britain. this 1c;idizg figltrc among all ' S ~ I L I I .I I~~ ~I I ~ ~ I w.I.. ~ . '
D i g n i ~ . ~ B o tSkinncr
h and the 'sound artists' havc hurled the forced to accept as avenue the Almeida, admittedly a Is:lr~ior~01 I I I ( . : I V : ~ I ~ I
challcngc t o us. such notions as freedom and dignity t o garde, but ha rdly comparable in sizc to :I I;~rj:r rnr~\il II:III.
132 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC'
O f the effect of the 'new music' upon civilization w e can rill . , I I C . ~ a music, a minority of twentieth-century cornposcrs have

therefore say that, actually, its direct effect is not so very great. Few S IIIII): ~ ~ n a c i o u stol ~ the more traditional approach to music.
non-musicians listen t o o r even know of the work of today's 'sound l:~.lii~ing to succumb to the whirlpools of anarchy around thcrn, they
artists'. True, electronic and anarchistic music crops up with I I . I V ~ . In-oduced. even in this century, music of unique and lasting
disconcerting frequency on cinematic sound-tracks which are heard ss. I refer, of course, to composers such as Sibelius. Kach-
by millions; and the philosophy behind the 'new music' has no if. Shostakovich and Khatchaturian, and to thc major
doubt filtered, unnoticed, into many areas of life. But for the most th-century English composers.
part, in the attempt to shift music into their own chosen I ncse modern traditionalists have retained a more conservativc

direction, the 'new musicians' have lost virtually all popular support. .IIICII~;isicallytonal position whilst neverthelcss experimenting and
The most unfortunate result of their 'revolution' is that, since it has ~ , v l ~ l v i ntheir g art along many lines. Almost t o a man, the modern
supposedly 'advanced beyond' the more traditional styles, little I I .~tlitionalistshave maintained the viewpoint which is anathema to

music of true beauty and inspiration is currently o n offer. 1111- 'sound artist' - that music does exert an influence over the

Yet there still remains t o us the towering and vastly varied array 1 11.1r;rcter of man, and that the artist therefore has the solemn respon-
of works produced by the composers of the eighteenth and ..lllility of composing only that which purifies and spiritualizes man
nineteenth centuries. And it is these works to which music-lovers . I I I ~ society.~ W h e n they have not explicitly expressed such scnti-
continue t o flock; it is these sublime creations of art which continue Illc.nts. the altruistic orientation of their music has nevertheless
to fill the great music halls of the world. Indeed, the music of ..liokc.n for itself. And nowhere is this more s o than in the works of
Handel, Bach, Beethovcn. Chopin and others has actually never I I I ( . nod ern English composers.
been more widely listened to than today, with the modern England had, in the nineteenth century, been devoid of good
availability of radios and hi-fi scts. W e therefore certainly must not tomposers to the extent that the Germans sarcastically referred to
suppose that muISlC such as Bee
' - thoven's influenced only the I II(. nat ion as 'the land without music'. Yet England in particular
mentalities of the pcoplc of his o wn day. Indeed, many of his
a WJS. I nI the twentieth-century, to be blessed with a flourishing of
masterpieces wcrc: xcarccl.y knownL in Europe during his o w n 11;~tive 1musical beauty, and even, at times, sheer genius. O n e thinks

lifetime. T o takc U ...., L .. .. - - magnificent


I,L-~-IIIUVCII
..- -
late string quartets as I I O L only of Elgar, Delius, Holst and Vaughan M7illiams, but of
examples, not all o f thrsr were performed even once while he lived, orhcrs such as Cyril Scott, Arnold Bax, John Ireland and Michael
and they wcrc. played only infrequently for nearly a hundred years 'I'ippett.
after his dcatli. l'hercfore people have only really had the oppor- The works of Ralph Vaughan Willianis ( 1 8 7 2 - 1 9 8 ) combine
tunity to filn1ili;iriz.c themselves with these stupendous creations ~ ~ tradition s t with new musical forms, an unmistakable
during our own century - a fact of perhaps deep significance. 'linglishness' and a wonderfi~lly poctic lyricism, a deep love of
1l;trure and what is at timcs a so;iring mysticism. Among his greatest
worlcs are In The Fen Cotrill~y,Norfolk Rhapsodies, Towards The
TWENTIETH-CENTURY TRADITIONALISTS I It~Xtlown Region, the unfc-)rgcttablc fantasias, the song cycle 011
The music of t h r cl;~>sicaland romantic cras contains a beauty which I4'1~1lorkEdge, the s ympli~) I lies, and the superb piece The L r v k
is eternal and inini~ii;tblr,and thcrefore. in the spiritual scnsc, is : I ~ I ~ * I I ~ / I ~It~ ~ . is interesti~ry; to note that throughout V ; I I I ~ ~ ~ . I I I
entirely contemporary. Aesthetically, Bach is ns meaningful and Willi.ims' work, and espcci.illy in Job, the forces of good arc r.c.lu,(.
important t o us today a \ cvcr. and to the works of'such a genius thc :.(.111c.t1 diatonic and ntod;tl music, while unstablc chroni;~( ic.
I I ~ I I ~ . I I

adjective, 'dated', can ncSvc.rapply. tlcni~I I I ~ t.;ites ~I evil.19


Yct, ultimately, we niu.st also begin t o look ahc;ld once more; to ' I ' l l ( . cxreer of Gustav Holst (1 8 7 4 - 1 9 3 4 ) bcga1i unilc-r.I llr ~ . . I Il v

reawaken within ourselves thc confident hope that a genuine New i1il1111~rl~~c.s of the music of IVagner ; ~ n dthe spiritunl tc.xr\ 01 . I I I ~1 l . 1 1 1
Age music is about to dawn; it music of equal or even greatcr sub- I 1 1 t l r . 1 ( I n order better to understand and tr;in.;l:~rr 111r I 11 I!:III.~~

limity as the great works of thc past, and yet possessing a character I.II~!:II.I!:C* of thesc texts, Sanskrit, Holst stiidic~eli~ 1 1 1 ~ l l . l l 1~' lI ' I~l r . * . r -
and effcct which is entirely new. And as a laying of thc foundations I L O ~ I I i ~ ~ I l ~ ~ ( led ~ ~ i tco. cHolst's
s composirlg 01' , I 1 1 1 1 1 1 1 1 1 1 ~ 1 I I I ~ I I ~ I I . I ~
I r.1 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE 'NEW MUSIC' 135

Itynins from the Rig Veda, as wcll as the operas Sita and Savitri. l 1 l rll~llc,ll;~ryminstrels. The troubadours' songs, outwardly about
Much later, towards the end of his life, he composcd that which he ,I. , I - . # , I c.ouragc and of a high form of romancc, had deliberately
8

believed to be his greatest work, the orchestral piece, Egdon Heath. I # #11 1111~>1:1nted with deep spiritual allegory which only the initiated
But between these two phases his mystical leanings had deepened t~~iult.t'.tood. But the minstrels were the Middlc Ages' equivalent o f
and widened, and there had appeared from his pen the t w o works 1110. I I I l ~i or folk-rock musician: they dressed and livcd as hippies.

for which he is n o w chiefly known. The Hymn of Jestls, a highly i I l l I I lll~tsicwas pessimistic and cynical, their numbers grew constan-

original and exalted choral work, is based upon an apocryphal 111; . I I I ~ IillcY met togcther irl gigantic gatherings or 'fcsts' (as thcy
Gnostic tcxt which Holst translated, while the popular suite The ,I t u 1 1 I t I l ~ c called today). The minstrels very powerfully affected the
Planets resulted from an intcrest in astrology. T h c scvcn parts of The II* climate of their day. In China, Lii Bu Ve, the author of Spring
P1atzef.r dcmonstratc all of Holst's mastcry of rhythm, harmuny, ~ t t r l1';111, struck out at thc vulgar music of the tyrants Hia and Yin
melody, meaning and mysticism, along with a dazzling choice of 1 1 1 wor~iswhich could equally apply to the musical 'revolutions' of

orchestration. I I I , ~ ;igc. incl~tdingour own. They arc words well worth keeping in

Vaughan Williams, Holst, Elgar and others have demonstrated I I I I I I C ~tluring the course of this chapter:

clearly that a refusal to renounce the foundation stones of past tradi-


tion and the immutable principles o f true aesthetics nevertheless 'I'llcy deemed the loud sounds of big drums, bells, stoncs, pipcs
leaves opcn a vast scope for artistic exploration. For the purification . I I I ~flutes bcautiful and thought that mass effccts wcrc worth

and redirection of the tonal arts, the young composers of today rvllilc. They aimed at ncrv and strange timbres, at ncvcr heard of
would d o wcll t o bcgin with thc signposts left to us by the I I , I ! ~ ~ , at plays never seen before. They tried to outdo one another

twentieth-century English cornposcrs. It is perhaps in their work, . ~ n overstepped


d the limits.
more than in anything clsc crc;~tcdin this century, that is to be
found that art which i.; fullv Jcscrving of the titlc, N c w Agc music. None of this, then, is at all new. I t has all been seen before. The
And the key to rhcii- ,trtistic succcss? A commcnt by Vaughan I111t1,reak of musical revolution in the seeking of ever-greater
Williams, spoken in ~~cl'crcncc to Sibclius, providcs thc archetypal r-xcesses of anarchy and novel 'effects' is actually no more of a 'new'
English music of this pcriod: ' . grerlt
pattern of all thc ~i~11ific:tnt .. I~I~r.nomenon than the very struggle between good and evil itself.
nzusic is .written, I ht*l/r~'c,
t ~ o by
t brfak.i?zAthe tradition, but by adding to
it '.

* It is for this rch:ison that wc cannot bring oursc?vcs to write the


phrasc 'ncw music' without recourse to quotation marks: not only
d o many peoplc clttcry whether the humanistic tones o f n ~ o d e r ncom-
posers are music :it ;ill, but it is also open to question just h o w 'new'
the 'new mrlsic's' h;i.;ic essence of musical anarchy and materialism
can be said t o hc. \hrlicthcr one thinks of the 'seric~ur'stream of con-
temporary music known its the 'ncw music', or o f the morc popular
rock music, the fact is th;it nothing of their basic clements are really
all that new at all. Rack in ancient Greece, the rcvolutionary 'music
of the future' was publicly ;Ittacked and ridiculed by the writcr of
comedies, Pherecratcs, who presented thc Muse as a violatcd virgin.
In the Middle Ages, thc traditional music of thc troubadours - an
esoteric group of artists - was overwhelmed by the coming of thc
MUSIC, MAN AND SOCIETY 137
~ I I U H I ~ l l ebody of man, so is the body affccicd - a very real and
, . . .-.
I t l veritic ation of the aphorism, as irr mruii, so in ltfi!
I ~ I y\rc;
I( c.-,c;tr( chers hav-e discovered that consonant ,IIILI clisso~i;~nt chords,
~t intervaIls, and other features of music ,111 c.xrr.1 ;L l~rofound
1 1 1 1 I e.t.c-I

~- - - I I I ~ I I ' S pulse and respiration - up011 111ri1.


r . I l r ~LIPOII
- - m

~.;~l.c'; ~ n dupon
r~lrc~llcr their rhythm is constant, or interruplc.el ; t ~ l t l~ I I I I I J ) ~Hloc-)d
.
1 1 1 rssure is lowered by sustained chords and raisrd I j y c:risp, I . C ~ ) C ; ~ I ~ L I

I IIICF.
3. I t has been found that the tension of thc I;cryl~s is ,~l'lc.crcxlI)y
Assessment : ~~~c.lodies, becoming, for instance, tightened tl~trin!; ;I clescr~ncli~~g
Music, Man and Society writs of chords. Since the larynx is very sensitivc.ly inl'lt~cttccdh y the
l
~ ~ n g o i nstream g of man's emotions a n d thougllt prorcssscs. its rc*;lc-
I I n the one corner: the ancients and traditionalists; the conviction I i~bnsto music are probably indicative of whal is I~;tsir;tlly;in c.1-lix.1
that music affects character and society, and that therefore the artist 01 music upon the psyche. W e can see, then, t h ; ~ tmusic ;ill;.cts r l ~ c .
l
has a duty to be responsibly moral and co nstructivt-, not immoral I)ody in t w o distinct ways: directly, as the effcct of ' 011 III~.

~l and destructive. I n the other corner: the rnaterialis~ ts, disclaiming c,r.lls and organs, and indirectly, by affecting the el wl~ic.l~

1
1,
responsibility and the need for valuc judgm,cnts, pay]ing no heed to
the outcome of their sounds. This sccond camp contains not only the
radical avant-garde, but also the entire mass of the much more
popular and culturally signific~untjazz and rock musicians.
W h o , then, is corrrct? Upon the answer c o d d depend the entire
~ l ~ cinn turn influence numerous bodily processes.
c4'fect of tones upon the larynx indicates, melodics causc a c o n a ~ ; i ~ ~ t
u g a of tensions and relaxations t o occur within many parts (if t l l ~
I)ody. If the musician is playing his instrument, then he and liis
instrument can also be said to be 'playng' the bodies and minds of'
~~lirc-(~~

future of music and civili7,ation. I t is time for a detailed appraisal of ~ l l caudience.


l
this crucial issuc. Do life patterns follow mrrsic patterns or do they not? In his studies on the effects of sound stimuh upon the skelc~al
This chapter rnuat l x an arena from which only one of the two ~nuscles,D r Tartchanoff discovered that:
I1 opposing philoscipl~~r.s can emerge intact.
H o w valid wcrc llic beliefs of the ancients? W h a t modern, scien- 1) Music exercises a powerfill influence on muscular activity,
I which increases or diminishes according to the character of
tific evidencc is thcrc in support of their concept of music's objective
power? Let us exitmine in turn, in this chapter, the questions of the melodies employed.
music's possible influence upon the physical body, upon the 2) W h e n music is sad or of ;l slow rhythm, and in the minor key,
emotions, upon thc mind, and upon society at large. the capacity of muscul:tr work decreases t o the point o f ceasing
entirely, if the musdc has I~ecnfatigued from previous work.
I MUSIC AND THE PHYSICAL BODY The general conclusion is 111;tt sounds are dynamogenic o r that
1 I T o the question, 'lloes music afkct man's physical body?' modern muscular energy increases with the intensity and pitch of the
. .
research replies iin the c11zar affirmative. There ir scarcely a single sound stimuli. Isolated tones, scales, motifs and simple tonal
fanction of the bod'y ~ ' ~ h iC,iznnot
h be affected mustlizl tones. T h e roots sequences have all been found t o have an e n e r ~ i n geffect upon
~i
I of the auditory nr:r'vcs arc more widely distributed and possess more the muscles. j8
1
l
1
'l
extensive connections r11;tn those of any other nerves in the body (a
I fact which may be of dccp inner ~ i ~ n i f i c a n c c ) .Invcstigation
~' has A further possible effect of music upon the body is described by Rol)
1' shown that music affects digestion, internal secretions, circulation, Larson, the one-time rock guitarist who gave up his playing
becoming a Christian. Larson writes :
II~I.)II

nutrition and respiration. Evcn the neural networks of the brain


I have been found to be sensitive to harmonic principles.
1 According to the nature of the music which plays its vibrations Drs Earl W . Flosdorf and Leslie A. Chambers ~ O I I I I L Iin ,i \c.ric.s
138 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC, MAN AND SOCIETY 139
of experiments that shrill sounds projected into a liquid media \I'lrcrl~c*rrhythm stirs us up or soothes us d o w n sc.c.111~ to dcpcnd
coagulated proteins. A recent teenage fad was that of taking soft 1'111 ~ ~ . ~upon r i lh o~w its frequency of beats relates t o t h ( . 111 )1.111;11 hcart-
eggs to rock concerts and placing them at the foot of the stage. 1 1 r - . 1 [ 0 1 ' 6>-80beats per minute. A tempo at about the s,tnlc, p;~c'c its
Midway through the concert the eggs could be eaten hard-boiled ~ l ~ normal r . heartbeat soothes us, as if our body think^^ 1 0 it\c.lf: '/\h,
as a result of the music. Amazingly few rock fans wondcred what I ~ I . I I ' \ right, v ~ e ' r eboth together in unison.' I n fa(1, 1 1 v 1 1 1 1 1)11t yollr
that same music might d o t o their b0dies.j" 1 1 . 1 1 r t l over your heart while listening t o such m~l.iic,y o i l will (ilid

t 1 l . 1 1 rlic hcart tends quickly t o correct any discrep;~llc.yi 1 1 i t \ 1(.1111)0.


N o t the most appetizing of thoughts. Anyone for hard-boiled punk .III(Icomes into rhythm with the music. K ~ I V I ~ IWIIIC.II I I I ih
rocker? a.la~wcrthan the heartbeat. however, builds suspens1 !:l1 t l l ( *

And on the subjcct of modern popular music, with ~ t sgreat I r c l r l y is getting ready for the music's sudden speed-1 l 0 Ill(,
emphasis on fast, loud and syncopated rhythm, it is worth remem- 11[)rm;11rate of the heart. ('Any moment n o w . . . ..-. , . I O I I I ( , I ~ ~
bcrlng that rhythm in m u s ~ cexerts a vcry st rong i n f llence ~ ove.r the ~ i o w. . .'). At the other end of the scale, fast rhythms i,li.;t. tlrr Ilc.;rlt
heartbeat, tending t o bring it somc,what int o confor,mity wit1I the Irc.;~trate, and therefore emotional excitement, right 111'. , ~ I I ) ' U IC.III \C'
rhythm of the music itself. Since many young people 1 l ' .
usten t.~o nours
1
~ r this r ~for himself, as there's certainly nothing subtlc ; t .l ) r ) l i t. i t . COIIIII
of rock music pcr week, one shudder5 t o imagine what effect t h ~ s I I I ~number of heartbeats over a minute of silent s I ch;iir,
must havc upon their health ancl life\p,~n;iherc is no doubt that 111. if listening t o avcragcly paced music. Then swit I l ( * f:l51

while the music is being listcned t o , the hcart also beats unnaturally 171usicand, after a minute or two, count your heart1 illi1111t
. .
fast and strongly {lions arc: also rcflectcd in syn- .'l,i~;llll.
copation~,o r unn ' the heartbeats. Jagged jazz and Since fast rhythm releases into the bloodstream chcmic:~ls wl1icl1
rock r h p h m s ha^ tally d e nlonstrated t o caust the c-ucite the organism, such music can literally be said to givc a 'kick'.
beating of the h r ; i ~ i I O rohc I L ~---L- ~ C I I C C L rhythm. Rescarch has
-L

When a young person is used to listening t o fast rock music ior ; I


discovered rock I I ~ L I S ~ LI.O I>c I.):id for digestion; it is also dangerous 1111niberof hours per day, such kicks literally become a form of
while driving. Fi~rthel.,si11c.crock raises the blood pressure, it is bad .i~ldiction,and a sense of emptiness is experienced if for some reastn
for cases of prc-cxisril-lg hypertension. And since the heartbeat in I I I ~music cannot be listened t o for a polonged period of time.
turn affects one'\ 111ooc1 rtnd emotions, these too become subject t o Although no research has yet been conducted on the subject t o thc
the inflilcrlcc o I ~,oc,krhythms when thcy are heard, tension and ,111thor's knowledge, it also socms likely that the heart-ratc of such
inharmony of [h(. 111i11clbcing increased. Indeed, rhythm affects not I'cople is faster than that r,f othcr people even throughout the day,
only orlr bodics. niinds arid emotic,ns, but even our subconsc,ious. 1~1bilethty art not listenitZ<Q, I0 //l(, ,v~rrsicitself: If so, this would have
Mrho h.1:, not sudcJcnly rea.lizcd that his leg was movil ig to the beat sobering implications for the pl1y5ical and emotional health.
h

of somc lx~ckgr( ) I ~ n dmusic: while t1hc conscious mitltlI was ent:irely In part, the effect W 11ich diffcrcnt rhythms have upon us
directed clscwl~crci I . I I ; I V be determined b y thc first r l ~ y t l ~ which m we ever hear. This is
Thosc rhythms which are more harmonious ; ~ n dhealthy havc IIIII lothe her's heartbeat, hcarcl 11s continuously over thc months
been found, dcpc-ntling on their tcmpos, to 1~ vcry effective wl~illlwe spcnd in the wnrnh. In ~111experiment conducted by Dr
stimulants or sed;~tivc.s,;tnd they are of course much Illore beneficial I.(.(* S;~lk,a recording was I,l,~yedof a normal heartbeat T o r ,
in the long run th;m ~ o x i caddictive
, chemicals such :IS Valium. Julius ~ i ( - w l r o ~in. ~a ~hospital s nurscrby. M o s t of the newborns were sootllc~l
Portnvy tells us : r r I ,II*I.~>. Then D r Salk put o n the accelerated heartbeat of an rxcitc.cl

I T C I ~ ~ O I I'I'he . t w o r e c o r d i r ~ ~wcre
s both at the snmc volurnc,. 1,111
music can definircly changc metabolism, affect rnuscular snergy, I I I ( - sccor~d was plnycd every single one of the infants , I wc )kr,
raise or lower blood prcrsllrc, and influence dipcstion. I t may be most I 1 1 t l ~ c mtcfnse and some crying.""
able tu d o all these things more successfully and pleasantly than A 1
i t r.rl1lc.r off-beat and less common effect of music i \ t 1 1 ( ,
any other stimulants that produce those changes in our bodies." ~ n y s t c ~ i~~n)e~l o~dsymalady known as musicoarnit rpilcp\y. Sonlr oi
I [ \ vitlillls 11;1vcbeen tormented t o thc point of r.trn1nri1tiri,q s~~iciclc
140 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC, MAN AND SOCIETY 141
or of muder. Seventy-six cases of this malady have been docu- II I h(. cars of a rock fan happen to have so far stood up t o the bat-
mented, but there are no doubt many other sufferers who simply do 11 I~II!:, it is nonetheless certain that his body has been internally
not realize the source of their problem and have received no specific I ~ ~red. I . IT o quote from Bob Larson once more, who, having once
treatment. In each documented case the sufferer experienced seizures 1 1 1 1.11 :I rock musician, is now a campaigner against the music:

which were brought on by certain kinds of music, though the causa-


tive music was different in different cases. I ' l l ( . hormone epinephrine is shot into thc blood during stress or
One instance involved a 39-year-old British woman who always . ~ ~ ~ s ior c t the
y simulated experience of submitting oneself to an
felt anxious and sweaty when certain tunes were played in places . ~ l r ~ ~ o r nvolume
ial of music. When this happens, the heart beats
such as the supermarket or at the local pub. At first she did not ~.r~)iclly, the blood vesscls constrict, the pupils dilate, the skin
connect the music to the symptoms. She knew only that at these I ~ . ~ l rand s , often the stomach, intestines and oesophagus are seized
places her thinking would often grow cloudy, and her lips, eyelids Iry spasms. When the volume is prolonged there are heart flutters.
and fingcrs would twitch convulsively. Then she would lose con- A three-year study of university students by investigators at
sciousness. Only at length did she connect the seizures with the ( ;rrmany*s Max Plank Institute showed that 70 decibels of noise
background music. The woman was examined by neurologists Peter t.1 )nsistently caused vascular constriction - particularly dangerous
Newman and Michael Saunders who attempted to induce a seizure if' the coronary arteries already are narrowed b y arterio-
under controlled conditions. Various kinds of music were tried, such sclerosis.3 9 p 44
as music from Gilbert and Sullivsn, H;~ndcl's Messiah and
Beethoven's Ninth Symphony. but wirh no rcsult. Only when a /\ntl rhat's 'only' 70 decibels; we must remember that the volume at
single by the Dooleys was played, ' l ' I ' l l i l ~ k 1'111 (;onna Fall in Love IIII* .ivcrage dance hall reaches much higher.
With You*, did an attack c.)ccur.'l1(I3y IIU- sound of the singularly 111 conclusion, we can say that insofar as the ~hysicalbody is con-
original title it would proh;thly II;IVI* 11;1i1 111(- s:tnribeffect o n quite a tr.rncd, the notion that music has no effect upon man, or that all
few of us !) 11111sic is harmless, is absolutely i l l crror.
But if only 76 proplc h;tvc bccn fijund t o huf'f'cr Ilom musicogenic
epilepsy, the same cannot bc siaid of othcr unIi)r~rlrr;~tc aspects of MUSTC AND I'I,ANTS: S O M E PRF.T,IMINARY FINDINGS
some typcs of music. Take one of the most basic cl(-rlrcntsof modern \AlI1;11 01' 111r.r - I I t v I * . 01 I I I I J ~ ~ I I I ~~ , ~ I I II ~ I I - ~ I I I I I I . I II ~I I ~ ~<:cst;~irlly ? the
music - its sheer volume. Sound is measured in ~lrc.il)c.ls.and experts ~Icn17r.11~, r l I 1 1 1 ~ . ,1111111.11 I , . I I I I * ~110 ~ I I1 I1 0I1~ \r1'111 i111l~crviot14 to the
believe that human health is endangered by any sor~lltli t 1 90 decibels IrlIl~lrllr 1 1 1 (.IIII(.~. I I , I I 1111
~ I ~ I I I I I * . 1 1 1 ~ 1 1I v , I ~ ~ , I I I II I ) I I ~ \ . In o n c experi-
or above. It has been found that at dance halls I I I ~.lvc.rage decibel 111t-111( I I I I I ~ I I L l)y. ~1v.y1C C I~~ t r l a r ! ~ ~ ~ . t - , I, . I I ~ , W ~ - I . ( '!:ivc'n thc frcc run of
rate in the middle of the dance hall is a little undo. 1 I0 decibels. In I W , 1 ,,I.II;II.;I[V I ~ I Ico1111t+t
~ I v t l 15, I,,, k.1I I L ~ I I w,rCn l ,c.il~g'piped through'
front of the band the sound often reaches 120 dcc.il~c.1~. Remember i l l 1 1 1 r..lcIl 01' tlicn~- 13:kt 11 1 1 1 1 1 1 otlr., 1 1 1 c li illto IIIC other. Though the
that coagulating protein? Should the reader, i1po1.1speaking to a I W ~ 1 I ) r ~ c were
s idcn1ic;tl . 1 1 1 1 1 ,111 I I I ~ I c.onclitions (.I except the music
regular disco-goer, find that the reply conics s ~ ~ m c w h ainar- t w1.1.c. r.cl\l;~I, the rats ;III < I M - I I I I I I V I I 1i11win the Bach box. T o test
ticulately, it may be because the disco-goer's britins ;Ire still calcificd Il~rtli(.r lhc purity 01- : I I ~ r..ci)r.~.irncnt;tlconditions. the music
from the night before. 11r.r ~;~cIr~;tst into the twr, I H I Y ~ . ~ w.I*+ . c.l~;~nged around; and gradually
O r perhaps the person just can't hear you. 'T'llc Environmental I 11c r;rlf :III moved into t h v I 11 11r.l- I )ox. Such an experiment does not,
Protection Agency in America has discovered 1l1;1t current genera- ()1' C ~ I I I * F C *mean
, that the cl-i:~I 111-c.speferred or 'comprehended' Bach
tions of youth suffer from hearing problems normally associated o n thr wme level that ii Ilrlrllan being can, but the result does
with fifty- to sixty-year olds." Time magazine has further reported ilrJicntr that at some levcl. r l ~ cdegree of pleasure or pain which the
that permanent loss of hearing among rock fans is a much more ~.;~ts cxpc:rienced in the two boxes was tipped in favour of the master
--
common complaint than is generally realized.43(So now it becomes ( 11' Baroque.

clear. That's why disco music has to be played so loud: the higher Other experiments have found that certain types of music cause
the volume, the more the hearing degenerates, and the higher the 1 l c . 1 1 ~ to lay more eggs and cows to give more milk. (Stockhausen
volume . ..)
1.42 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC, MAN AND SOCIB'rY 143

once visited a site at which battery hens were laying more eggs to I 11 1 1 1 .I group which had no sounds broadca" "11, but not as much
the strains of The Blue Danube. Recalling the incident later, he com- I, 1111. 13randenburg group proper. This suggests that while the
mented that his own music would have given the hens diarrhoea!) I I I I I I V I ~ ~ I I ; ~tones
~ of Bach's music exert a certain regenerative
There are also long-standing traditions from various parts of the ~~,ll~lt.rlcc. upon plant life, the effect is great" if the frequencies are
world that singing and instrumental music causes farm animals to I,l.~v.rl i l l the precise and beautiful rhythmic, melodic and harmonic
thrive. ! ~ I ~ I I . I . \ in which Bach actually placed them. Investigations of a
In order to produce the most precise and unambiguous results I ~ I I I ~ 1';lshion
. I ~ have also been conducted upon bacteria. These have
from experiments, however, scientists often revert to the study of I t l - 4 ' r l i11~1ndto die when certain freq~enci's are played t o them,
the more primitive forms of life. In the investigation of the effects of 11,11111. ~Iicy multiply in response to others,
music upon life, a number of preliminary experiments have been con- A n intensive series of studies carried out by Dorothy Retallack of
ducted with plants. Paradoxical as it may seem, music's effect upon I r , . t ~ ~Colorado, ~r, demonstrated the effects of different kinds of
the more primitive vegetable kingdom is one of the most convincing I I I I I ' . ~ ~ on a variety of household plants. The experiments were con-

methods of all for proving that music does affect life, including I I e lI11.cI under strict scientific conditions, and the plants were kept

human life. For experiments conducted with humans, and even, to ( ~ ' I Iltin large closed cabinets on wheels in wlyicly li#l1t, temperature

some extent, with animals, have the extra factor of the mind to .III,l ; l i r were automatically regulated. Thrcr IIINIYS ;I dity of acid
contend with.'This means that while men or animals may be demon- I , l , l<, l ~ l v e dthrough a loudspeaker at the siilc. 0 1 l l l l ' cithinct, was

strated to have been affected by tones. the effect may not have been l , lllllLl to Stunt and damage squash plants, pllil~tlc.llcll'( ;lllcl corn in
a direct or objective one. Rather, thr effect upon the body may have I I I I ~ I ~ Ifour ' weeks.
been caused by the mind's subjective reaction to the music heard. In M l.s Ketallack played the of thv I W O ~~~~~~~1.r.111 I)rllv('l-
the case of plant-music rc.se;irch, however, psychological factors I ,lcliO stations to two groups of
'1'11f' 1 ' . 1 1 1 1 1 > ' I l . l l i l l l l ~ WCI'C
cannot really be said 1.0bc present. If music can be shown to affect li I M N (a rock KLIR S ~ I I I II,IOV.IIA I * J . I I I ( N'I'll(. I),
plants, then such ctffccts I-i;~veto be due to the objective influence of I ) I ~ N I J Y I * Posf rrpor1 ('c1 :
the tones directly tlpon thc cells and processes of the life-form.
And sucil results have been forthcoming. While plant-music
researc,h is still I:o ;I large degree an unexplored and beckoning field
for resc:archers, :come preliminary investigations have turned up some
pretty ..-,.--I-:,..
L L I ~ ~ I I I L , I Sfindings.
L~~~~S
T w o qt~itcindependent series of cxperiments, one conducted in
the Sovict I.!liion and the other in Canada, have each discovered
that seeds r)f whcat can be made to grow faster whcn treated with
tones. Thc Canadian sound-treated wheat sccdlin~s,in a carefully III ,IIII)I~,(T cxpcrin1r111,1 1 ~ I I ~ I I I ~
1 1 . ~ 1 111 1 lI11.1.cweeks. Dorothy
controlled labor:itory environment, grew no less than three times as I~r.~,~ll.lt k pl;~yedthe r ~ l l l b < i t 1 1 1 l ,i1 1 / I - ~ ~ ] I ( . I ~ I I ~ l l dVaniUa Fudge to

large as untrch;~tc.~l r l r l l . ~ : I . o I I ~ > of beans. c d l ~ l . l - . t ~( I I L I ~ ~ t~0 1 ~ , )morning glory 2nd


.ones.4' Thc Soviet seedlings wcre dosed with ' 1 1W ~

ultrasonic tones
4 . e result that they grrminatcd fastcr, were l I I ~ ~ - I I - :, ;, l l ~ illso ( O I I I I . I I I I I I ~ I .I,-?.ttf;llll-g;(rdeatonal music to a

more frost-resist yielded more grain." These are obviously , ~ + , I I I I L I j:ro~~p; and, as :I I ~ I I I I I I I , I i l ; l y r "()thing ~~ to a third goup.
findings of greal 1 for practical application in the world. \.t'itllin 1c11days, thc p l . ~ n ~ crrl>tr\~.cl . ~ I JLed Zeppelin and Vanilla

Another serica 01 ~xperimentstreated plants with (to?) Bach's I:t~~l!:c wcre all leaning , I W , I ~Iioln thc speaker. After three weeks
brilliant Brandenburg Concertos, with which, ;tt an early stage in llicy wcrc stunted and clyillg. The beans exposed to the 'new music'
this book, I mentioned my own experience. The Brandenburgs Icancd I degrees from r llc speaker and were f ~ u n dto have middle-
made geraniums grow faster. As an intercsting side-experiment, \izrd roots. The plants lcft in silence had the longest roots and grew
other geraniums had not the concertos themselves, but only their lllc highest. Further, it was discovered 'hilt plants to which placid,
dominant frequencies broadcast to them. This group grew faster ,lcvc)tionalmusic was played not only g r e ~two inches taller than
THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC, MAN AND SOCIETY 145

plants left in silence, but also leaned towards the speaker. I I I I )orothy Retallack's own words: 'If rock music has an adverse
Such plant-music studies are crucial for the reason we have S Ir l g I ,,,I plants, is the rock music listened to so long and so often by
already stated: assuming that they are well-controlled and the results 1111 yo~~ngcr generation partly responsible for their erratic, ch:iotic
accurate, they are able to prove something which experiments with I)!I ~ . ~ tjur?' f i ( And: 'Could the discordant sounds we hear thesc days
humans or animals are unlikely to: that the effects of music are objec- 111 1111.rc.;tson humanity is growing n ~ u r o t i c ? ' ~ ~
tive, and not dependent upon the subjective preconditioning of the I ) I 'l'. C. Singh, head of the Botany Department at Annanialia
psyche. Let us recall that besides the ancients' belief that music I lr~~\fcrsity, India, has also conducted research into the effects of
affects the body, emotions and mind of man, they also claimed that I I I I I , ~ on ~ ~ plants. H e discovered not only that constant exposurc to

music's power was objective, not subjective. That is, they claimed S I . ~ ~ . l c . : t lmusic caused $ants to grow a t twice their normal spced,

that different types of music are inherently good or inherently bad; that 1 1 1 1 1 .~lso went on to find what seemed t o be one of the main causes
certain combinations of tones are objectively life-enhancing and 111 l l ~ i saccelerated growth. The sound waves of a musical instru-
evolutionary in nature, while others are unhealthy and dangerous. I I L ~ . I I ~ , Dr Singh found, cause increased motion in cellular
Should the ancients' belief be true (and Mrs Retallack's work 1 1 t l ~~oplasm. As a further test, a tuning fork was sounded six feet
suggests this to be the case), then it would be a fact of vital I t v . 1 ~from a ~ l a n t and , this also caused streaming movements in its
significance. N o longer could modern musicians possibly claim that l )loplasm. (Protoplasm is the basic material of which all plant -
music is a matter of 'taste', or that the musician should be allowed to IIIII ;~nimaland human - life is made up.) ALI sorts of intriguing
perform anything he chooses. Moreover, those types of music which 1 q l t ions for further study occur to one here. Would the protoplasm

are objectively good or objectivcly bad might not always be found 1 1 1 . Iound to stream at a different rate when tuning forks of different

to conform to people's own subjective likes and dislikes. Since all I O I I C - Sare sounded? Would there be a distinction between major and
q p e s of music are liked hy some individuals and disliked by others, l1lilior notes? D o certain instruments inhibit growth, irrespective of
it stands to reason t11;lt tlicre must be instances whcre objectively w l l . ~ r they play? In D r Singh's experiments, the violin was found to

bad music is netrerthclcss 'liked' by a certain misguided segment of 11,. one of the most life-enhancing instruments of all. Altogether, life-
society. P!ant-n iuhic rcs carch, then, in supporting the ancient r.~lll;tncingcharacteristics as a result of music were shown in balsam,
,.
wisdom teachin& ,111 &l-
C..-
LAIC objective power of music, apparently -,il!:;Ir cane, onions, garlic, sweet potatoes and other plants
disprov C% in olic. swcac.pthe entire contemporary hedonistic, anarchic I,r-;i'lp~.'~,~'
viewpo int on rh c art. In short, it stems to offer to us a scientific Yct the most interesting and significant of all of D r
basis from w 1n ~ 1c ,;L~ ipermanent and inflexible aesthetics of music can I;illgh's findings was that later generations of the seeds of musically
be constructed. Permanent and inflexible because true aesthetic ..Iirntrlated plants carried on thc improved traits of greater size, more
principles ; u ~I I O ~ subjective, but, as we noted in the previous Ir..~vc.s,and other characteristics. &litsic had changed the plants'
chapter, arr ~univcrsal.Good music is still good music cven if there is t l~lo~nosomes! Presumably thc s;tmr cfftct can result in the negative
no human lis~c-ncr.'There is still a life-giving forcc within it. ..I.II,U(., lrom bad music. Tllr possil,lc significance of this finding to

The question of what constitutes good or bad music can be 1111. l11111ian kingdom is evident. ancl not a little concerning.
answered in just cight words : good music gives lifc ; had music gives
death. There is more to life and death than thc two sides of the M I ISIC,, MIND AND EMOTION
grave: evety rnomerrr of' music to which we subjrlrt orrrselves may be \I, t ~ c ~ . r l ;tnd open to practic;il usage are music's psychologic;~l
enhancing or t a k i q czrlwv our Ilfe-energies and cllrri!y of consciousness, I I ~ I ~ ~ I ~ + I I Cthat
. C . ~ the art has bccn applied throughout the ages in r ~rtlrl
increment by increment. t;rorn the point of view of the ancient Chinese 1 1 ) I ) I - I I I ~ : ,11)0utemotional and mental effects. From the earlicst tin1c.5,

sage, the phenomenon of individuals today 'liking' or 'enjoying' bad Ii\lic-r~ricm,harvesters and other workers have Sung in uni.;c)ri I I I
and destructive music, wliilc not being able to cnjoy or understand I ~l'drrI( inspire themselves to work at an optimum c;~p:~c.ir y . W ill1
genuinely good music, would bc exnlained by the fact that such ~ h colr~illg
r of the radio, we might note, this basic pr;~cricI. , l i t 1 1 i o r
individuals have become 't11nc.d into' the wrong tonal patterns, tr.,l.;r*. 11111 was simply adjusted: scientific rc.\c.;~r-c,lrc.r~. 11.1vc.
simultaneously losing their attuncrnent wit1h Reality and universal tl~~~t~ovrrv<l 111,1t melodious, cheery music on thr f:~ctt b1.v f It 11 I ) c l o . . r
principles. I , ~ t rivir ~ l y ~ ~.o~~sidcrably.
~ ~
l 40 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC, MAN AND SOCIETY 147
Paradoxically, one form of music which has long been used to I , G I lll<.ludethat the experiences of lifc pl;iy ;in cxtrcmc.l important
practical effect has the dual result of inspiring one group of ~ e o p l e I ~ J I~ .I the I shaping of charactcr.
whilst striking fcar into another. This is martial music, used since the 'I'wo factors are concerned with the f o r m ; ~ t i ~(11 ) n c t r l c . ' \ c.Ii:~r;~ctcr.
dawn of history with often dcvastating results on the battiefield. So 111,. first is cxpcrience, which can aIso hc c,;~llrtlI~.;~I,II~II!; i n ~ I i c
efficacious have bands of drummers. trumpeters, and such like ~ , , I I I (sense . ~ I of the w o r d ; the second f:zctor con.;i\l\ r t i I I I ( , i~llliitc
proved t o be in warfare that the defeated opponcnts, recognizing I r , 1 1 1 , with which we are born. and which pL r 1 0 Ije
that the victors' martial music played a large role in defeating them, , ~ ~ . c l r . ic;llly
l inherited. It is agreed that ~ ; I L . I IOI.!, is
have often adopted an identical o r similar music for themselves - i r11.i.11lc1~ important. All that psychologic~st l o 1 1 t l 1 ;I,~I.(.(. 1111011 ;ISC
even though the particular form and style of music has often been I 11,.caact percentages t o which each f;ir.lor pl:~ysits I).WI i l l I I I V Ii)r
quite alien tn their own cultural background! T o refer to one such I I I . I I ~ I I I of ~ the total character. I n the casc oI' onc- ; I ~ ~ ~ I I . I ~. . II I~. II I ; I ~ . I I . ~
instance, the early Crusaders, having been defeated by the Saracens, I I , 1 1 1 , that of one's IQ, psychological s~t~tlic.t II,II,(.III,II, ; l l c * c l III;II
adopted the arabic martial tones for themselves, with the rcsult that 1 slwric.nce accounts for a good proportion 111' c ) \ i r i l l 1 cllil:c.nct..
victories once more came their way. I n our o w n day, sincc warfare I u . ~ c ~ what r l ~ proportion the studies havc :trriv~.rl; I [ I I ; I ~ ~ l t . l ) ( . ~ l ~ l c ' t l
itself has altered in form, there n o longer exists a role for battlefield I I , I I I I I factors such as the type of data analysccl. Howcvc.~., c*.;~i~n;llc*s
musicians; but the expanded usage of patriotic and inspiring songs I t 11 11ir extent t o which environment determines I Q 0111 l 3
of freedom and honour could still prove t o be of great benefit t o the 1 1 I 5 5 per cent.j8 I t would be reasonable enough to :I )m this
sometimes demoralized o r apathetic forces of the Western AUiancc. I I I , I I the actual proportion involved is roughly one t :o r l ~ r r
billeted on the European Front or in America. I W I I thirds is the result of heredity and other innate f;icrors.
Thc psychologicrtl influcnccs o f music are almost infinitely varied. 'I'hca logical sequence of connections which w e have dcvcloprd i5
In particular, man has al w:iys turncd t o the bcauty of good music as 1 1 1 1 1 % : music is an experience; experience moulds about a third of' ~ \ I I .

a source of balm and joyous uplift. Shakcspcare knew that good I I I I . I I character, judging from psychological studies; therefore s o ~ ~ l c *
music : 1~~11~1ictn of this proportion of our character traits is the result of the
1111l\icwe hear. W e find oursclves spanning several thousands o f
..
. can minister to minds diseased, VI..II.~, and standing hand-in-hand with Confucius! Music mottlds
Pluck from thc mcniory a rootcd sorrow, , l~,~rliiter,
Raze out the written troubles of the brain, I{;tsically, it still all boils d o w n to As in music, so in life,
And w ~ t hits swect, oblivious ~ n t i d o t c , \Y~rlcningthis aphorism, w e find that all psychologists d o indeed
Cleanse thc full bosom of all Ferilous stuff .,!:It.c that A.r in EXPERIENCE, so in Life. Are the parcnts
Which wClgh.; llpon the heart. I I I I I - I , ~in~ ~art? ~ ~ Then the child too might be expected to become

I ~ ~ ~ c - r r sin t e dart. Are the fricncls rowdy? Then the child too might
W h o can cIoi1l71 that music influences our emotions? It is surely true I 1.1111 I o become more rowdy. Docs rhc child watch proudly strutting
that music is only listened t o in the first place bccausc it makes usfeel I 11 1,. nlusicians o n the screen i TfIcn hc to o may proudly strut. In

something. Rut now this is very interesting, for if music gives us a 1r111v ;iftm study, children h ; ~ v chc*cn found t o copy adult behaviour
feelings, then tlic\c fcdings - of uplift, joy, cncrgy. melancholy. irl114 11 rlley have seen eitlicr livc.. u r "11 -- ~elevision.For example.
violence, sensu:tlity, c;~lm,devotion, and so forth - can certainly be I ! . , I I I ~.I I Iand I Huston conducr cd an experiment in which children
said t o be Pxprrienci~r.And thc expericnccs which we have in life are a ~ 1 - I . I Illvided into t w o groups. Each group was able t o sec an : ~ ~ l r ~ l r

vitally important factr~ri l l ihc moulding of our ch,ir,icter. ! l , ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ! : 1111.o~gh a variety of t~nusualand striking actions wliilc I I I ~
Psychologists have disvotcd a great deal of study into discovering q I I I ~ ~ I~licmselves
I~.TI wcrc busy with a discrimination prol>lt.ni. tl;1~11
just what it is that detcrrnines our character - how intelligent we /:I#~ I I ~01'I children was able to see a different set of acrii)ll.; I q I hr
are, what our particular skills are. whether we are civilized in our I I I ( I , , I ~;1~1~1lts; . I I ~ the adult might talk t o himself o r knot li ;I >nl;~ll
behaviour or rebellious and destructive, and so on. N o t a single I I I I ) I I , . I c11111 off a box. Later, the children of each gr.ot~pwc.~,c.s1-c.n 1 0
serious psychological project or expcriment on this topic has failed I I I I I I . I I I . 1111. I j ; ~ r t i c ~ lactions
ar they had been ahlc t o oI~.;c.r\~r..'"'
4X THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC. MAN AND SOCIETY 149
These were children of the same age as those who, in millions of 8 .1111iot
distinguish those colours even though their eyes nrc perfectly
homes in Britain, each week watch Top of the Pops on television. On the other hand, some societirs, possrssing tcrrns not
1111l.rr1a1.
Not having seen this programme for many years, I happened to lwrscnt in our own language, are thereby enablcd co distinguish that
l
switch on a television set recently - and witnessed what this which we could not hope to. Since their snowy world iz :tlnlost
programme and its music have become. Near-naked men and r-~~tirely made up visually of white and light-grey, Eskimos possess
l women danced sensuously in the midst of an occult which tlozrns of names for dozens of minutely different shades nf grey to
l
l
had been drawn on the floor. The men wore animal masks with whitc. These shades all look about the same to us, even though OIII.
antlers and horns. The music and its lyrics (as far as these could be rycs are as good as the Eskimos'. I n having a word for cach sliattr,
discerned) were complementary in their lustfulness and violence. 1111. Eskimos are able to specifically conceptualize, rcfcr t o ,

Onc almost wishes that one did not know of studies such as those of ~,t.rncmber,and hence perceive and recognize them. Elsewhere, tlic
Bandura and Huston . . .
l
I I Innu60 peoples have no problem whatsoever in distinguishing
1
In denying the fact that music and the behaviour of musicians llrtween ninety-two varieties of rice, since they have names for each
tend to shape people's character and behaviour, the materialist I 11' the ninety-two varieties."
I
I
11 musicians are by implication attempting to refute the entire body of I)sychologists call the ability of a referential word to enhance
1 carefully documented psychological research conducted and I I I ; I ~ ' Sperceptual and conceptual abilities codabiltg. The words of a
Ill
established over the last several dccades by hundrcds of responsible 1.111guage clarify and encode concepts and phenomena for our minds
il researchers. Not only music, but all forms of experience mould the . I I I ~ memories. The process is very marked during childhood, the
way in which we think and bchavc. To t;~kc.the example of televi- I I~ild'sintellectual abil.ities increasing in close accordance with his or

I i sion, which in modern tinies has also c0111r I 0 llold a powerful sway
I I~cr mastery of language. It is as though words provide the
I m
over society: according to the N;ction;il Vic wcrs' and Listeners' \l>ccifically-shapedchalices into which our otherwise vague and fluid
I Association of Grcat Britain, thcrc I l o w rais~ n o less than six ~lloughtscan be poured.
hundred pieces of scientific study which h;~v strated that It seems highly likely that different W e s of mustc, tn giving to us
there is a link between televised and social violr rvrrious kinds of emotional experiences - romantic love, lust, religious
I m
Experiences aff'cct our charactrr throughour our rlvcs, but their /;rlings, patriotic fervour, rebellion, etc. - also encode such feelings and
l
influence is particularly strong during childhood ; i r l t l adolescence, d)rir various hues. A style of music which we have never before
when the personality is still taking shape and is niorc. rn;~lleable.Not Ilcxrd, and now hear for the first time, may open our minds t o an
for nothing is schooling conducted during thesc yr,lrs. Music too, entirely novel feeling or way of looking at the world. A stirring.
then, can be expected to be particularly powcsfill in r llr nioulding of triotic tic song during wartime can encode, unify and intensify the
character during childhood and the teenage years. ~lloughtsof an entire nation. And in combining words with music,
I I I I ; I I ~ concepts
~ can be encodcd ;IS ncver before. The word 'Lord'
MUSIC AS AN ENCODER I I I . I ~ not move or mean anything t o thc non-religious person, but in

The strength of music's effect upon man can l>(. inferred from 11c:lring it sung in paeons oF rising, fugal praise he can realize and
detailed studies conducted by psychologists into 111~-c'ffects of other It-rl its power and glory for thr first timc.
environmental factors which influence man. Lanhql;~gcis one such Music has often encoded cntirc movements of human life whit l 1
environmental factor, and one particularly similar t o music in that it wc.11. virtually non-existcnt rtntil the musical referent madfa i 1 5

also involves sound, pitch and rhythm. Thcrr. ;lrc unmistakable .~lyw..~r.tnce. The Beatln' early singles began the creation of ;In canti1.c'
indications that one's native language does mould cl~aracterand the t~~l~-c.ulture by encoding it in music. A few years later, tllr ;III)IIIII
way in which we perceive the world around us. Kcsearchers have ,$:I I'rlrper did the same again.
discovcred that when a society does not possess ;I word for some- Ic 11 not possible that music, like language, gives os ;I I'I-:III~~.WI)Ili

thing, that something frequcntly becomes incapable of being con- r t i c.111t trional experiences and mental concepts whicl~I c1111 I 1 + o l ~ . ~ l i ( .
ceived of or identified by them. Some African trihcs do not contain IIOW wc. view the world? It is not only possihlc, 1>11r i t II.I*. 1 0 111r.
within their language the words for certain colours; hence they U .IW! A r ~ i l it may well be that music, likr 01 1 1 1 ~ 1 I)I.I, . I . I I I I I , I ~
I 10 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC, MAN AND SOCIETY ljl
t-xl)cricnccs,can affect us in exceedingly specific ways, moulding our ~~l)\crve that he had a strong predilection fr~rthc repetition of
way of thought in direct relation t o the specific elements of the u.inglc chords, for two or more bar phrases, and for sequences,- viz.:
music. I IIC. rciteration of a phrase in a different position or on a diffcrcnt
In his book. Music, Its Secret Influence Throughout the Ages, Cyril tlcgrce of the scale. Thus, apart from its emotional contcnt,
Scott stated his belief that the music of each great composer of the I l;~ndel's music was pre-eminently formal in chnr;tctcr, conse-
past played a vital role in very specifically altering the minds and cl~tcntlyit was formal in effect. If, however, we conibinc its
hearts of the people of the day, and thus paving the way for civiliza- 1.111otionalqualities with its formalism, and to repetition ;ind
tion as we know it today.' For example, Handel was born into a ~nusicalimitativeness - for sequence is but imitativeness - add
period during which morality and piety in England were at a low ,i:r:tndeur, the net result is the glorification of repetition and
ebb. Yet the effects of Handel's music, and especially his devotional inlitativeness; and if we translate all this from the planc of music
works, according to Scott inspired a reawakening of true religious to that of human conduct, we get love of outward ceremony and
feeling, while Handel's very formal style brought about the for- .~~lhcrence to convention.
malism, and even over-formalism, of the Victorian era.
Scott cites two typical tributes to the awe and reverence which M USIC AS A COMMUNICATOR AND MULTIPLIER OF
Handel's Messiah invokes. Thc first is from the Qudrterb Review, Y'I'ATES OF CONSCIOUSNESS
which runs : \IBIIIC philosophers - and even the occasional musician - havc
I .ltc.gorically denied that music contains any meaning whatsoever,
W e feel, on returning from 11c;lring the Messiah, as if we had ~lr.~.l;tring its sounds to be purely abstract. Yet the emotional content
shaken off some of our dirt .tnrl dross, as if the world were not so 01 n~iwicseems so obvious to most of us that we simply accept its
much with us; our hcarts ,trc clcvated, and yet subdued, as if the c.xist.cnce a priori. There is surely no doubt that music actually
glow of some action, or the grace of some noble principle, had t)~~vcys very real and sometimes vcry specific emotional statcs from
passed over us. WC arc conscious of having indulged in an 1111. musician or composer to thc listencr. For this reason, thinkers
enthusiasm which cannot lead us astray, of t a ~ t i n ga pleasure II,I\TC* from time t o time postulated that music is a form of language.
which is not of the forbidden tree, for it is the only one which is \'(.I in fact music is both less, and more, than any language of
distinctly promised to be translated with us from earth to heaven. words. Words are highly specific: it would be difficult to com-
11111r1icate in pure tone form that, 'Jack callcd: he will mect you at
The second q ~ ~ o t ; ~ t iiso nfrom D r Gregory's biography of the Rev {:I.Tpm by the bridge on thc A47. Rring your report.' But on the
Robert HRU,;incl reads: rlrllcr hand, while words n1;1~bc specific on the mental level, they
11.11~1 to be little more than conveyors of information. Though some
M r Hall was present in TYestminster Abbey at Handel's com- t.l~~otion is contained in all spokc~nwords, words nevertheless tend
memoration. Thc King, George 111, and his family were there in 11, l,(. mere symbols of reality; o n l y symbols, what is more, of real
attendance. A t onc part of the performancc of t11c Messiah (the I I I I I V I . icelings. Music, howcvcr. conveys the very emotional essencc

Hallelujah chori~s)the King stood up, a sign:tl for the whole 111 ~c..tlit~ behind the information. 'Iic> listen t o Handcl's Messiah is
audience to rivc; IIC was shedding tears. Nothing, said Robert t l t , r 10 &bate intellectually ;thou1 rcligion; it is to feel and bcconlt.

Hall, had cvcr ;~ffc.ctc.Jhim more strongly; it sccrncd like a great 1 1 r l r . wit11 that surging inncr f1;tnlc of devotion. In this sensc, music i ~ ;

act of national asscni to the fundamental truths o f rcligion. 1 1 1 1 11-1. 1l1.1na language. It is thr language of languages. I t can h(. ...lit1
111:11 111' 311 the arts, there is none other that more faithfully cclllrrc.\l.t
Concerning Handel's style, Scott himself writes regarding what he I 111. ~ I I I Istate ~ . I .of the artist; none other that more powrri;;llv Illllvr.i.
sees as having been its subsequent effect upon Enslish society with .111tl 11.111gesthe
( consciousness.
the coming of the Victorian era: Y 1.1i t music can so move and transform thc inncr I'I.~.I~II!~~, . I I I L I I 11(-
I I I I I C I - I~c.l~:~viour of man, what exactly is it t h : ~( I~~ ~ I V I I I I I I I\ PI ~~ I . I I
Those who have closely exntnined Handcl's technique will 1.110 I ;tny !:ivc.n piece of music has upon prcq~l~.i \2'11,11.1 1 1 1 1 1 , . I 1 1 1 . 1 1
15,' 'II'HE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC. M A N ,
. I I Iy.A,
~ ~ i h rhc origin of the emotional effects of music? I ~ I I ~ I ~ ;iwareof the comrn~~ni~.;crivc 1 I I )II;II ,111. ' I ' l ~ r o u ~this h
Is i t 11ot the state of consciousness of the musician? Surely the I 4~ r ~ ~ r ~ ~ u n i cpowcr, 1 01
a t i v e thc cn~ori o ~ l . i l.,I.II I , I I ~ *,111 i51 (.;(l1 Ilc trans-
Iowcsi common denominator which determines the precise nature of Ir.l.rrcl 10 a hundred, or even t o [ c a l l 1 1 1 i 1 l i o 1 1 ,I ill i ~ r . i t ~ ; I I oI f~ all
;tny nii~sicalwork is the mental and emotional state of thc composer ! : I . I ~ I . ~ Shave thereby seldom I-)c.c~i ignor:~n~ /;IS[ l c.nl~;cnc.ccl
and/or performer. It Is the essence of thls stale which eizters into us, . ~ l ~ i lto i t direct
~ the minds ;inJ ; I I ~ , I ~01I , <I I ,I ~ I I . I I I ( - I I I I I ~ , , 11;is1)cc-11
rending to mould and shape our olov cotzscioz4stzess in10 conformig with I II(. prime motive behind rhcir ; I I , I . ' I ' l l ( % ~ . ~ ~ l ) i c I. c I )I I I I C N I O I ~ O ( ~ o I f
itself: Through music, portions of the consciousness of the musician ~ l ~ ~ ~ s i cisi aone n s which should not II(. iy,~~orc.tl.
become assimilated by the audience. T o spcll it out so bluntly is A most revealing statement is ncrril)~~rc.tl 1 1 ) M icdc I;~~:l;r'r.\l)okrn

almost too shocking. Yet if W C accept that music does fulfil such a (Illring the 1 9 6 0 s . A t that time, n
function, transferring elements of the consciousness of the musician c c.rt;iin that this lead singer of thc
into the listener. then the moral implications for the use and misuse long-haired, thick-lipped, thick-hi
of the tonal arts can no longer bc dcnied. 1,c.rncmberfrom the time). As I write, it i h now I wi.nly yc..~r.~ 1111, ,111~1
W e have secn that thinkers down through the agcs have warned 1I1c dust has settled, so t o speak. The hair is still rl~c~.c., . I I I ~111~.~ r l ~ i cI<
of thc social dangers attached t o the misuse of tonal art. But there is lips. But it is doubtful that Mick Jaggcr ever w.1.; . t l l 111.11 111it.k-
also the positive sidc. W h e n used correctly, music is perhaps une- I~caded,or quite such a layabout. A former studcnr 01 rhc. I .onclon
qualled in its power t o instil in man the 17c;tuty of true morality and School of Economics, Jagger, along with his group 211d;ill 111c. o111(.1,
those higher, inspired purposes fc)r wliicl1 o i ~ rli\ics are intended. rock bands, has in his way worked extremely hard ;ct t l ~ cl)rolilc.r,~~
Thomas Fielden, thc n1usici;~n;lntl wrircr, 1'(.1t tllis most strongly. H e ing of his music, message and lifestyle. In the '6Os, while ;III I 11(.t l ~ l \ r
askcd : was still up in the air, an awful lot was spoken and W rittcn ;LIN ~ I I II IIC
music of rock artists, but almost nothing about thcir m'otivcs.
Which is t o bc r~scfcr~~c.cl? 'I'll(, ii11!:o , 1 1 1 t l I I I C \ l ~ o i ~ t i n geasily
, Obviously money was and still is one prime motivc. - /( TL LI I C rdollill!;
. .
excited Philisti oltl ~II,II .; and thinks is Stones' 1 9 8 1 tour, carefully planned by Jagger to be a nionry-
the criterion fr rious, humble spinner, gathered in forty million US dollars, breaking all previous
student, sittin? ;ic.l~ieveskill, rccords for such a tour.) But there was, and is, another motivc.
perhaps himsctlf t o l)ccornc a ma,stcr, ancl i l l . I I I ~ c.;~sct o have a Jagger was the one who, on thcit occasion during the '6Os, spelled it
dwelling on I-';~rrlassus,whose lowcst slopes C.,IIII.IOI be reached out absolutely clearly. Said I I C : ' W e are moving after the minds, and
without cl'fi)rt i W h o shall deny that character is c~~!;cmdcred,that so are most of the new proup.;.'
exa1t;ition ;ind triumph, as well as the tenclcr rl~in!:\ of the spirit, M a n y would argue tli mspect, the Stones had succeeded
can rc;~chgreater heights, through this a r t 01 I I I I I S ~ Cwhich . has to a remarkable degree c\ that decade was out.
a

always inspired nicn to achievcmenr, ancl L . ~ ~ . ~ , ~ ~ g thcir rl~cned T h e rock star, David ( as i~lsoconfided in an interview:
minds t o finc and noble thinking?30
I figurcd the only thing I O t l o hr,is t o swlpe thelr klds I stlll thlnk
MOTIVES FOR MUSIC IL'S the only thing CO (10 Ily \.lying that, I'm not tallung ,~bour
For argument's s;tkc we have tendcd t o assumr 111116, I-;lr in this book I'm just t ; l l l < ~,iI)out
L~cinap~lng, ~ ~ ~ : changlng their value sy5tcnl\,
that hedonistic ;irtists p r f o r m their anarchistic n1115icbecause they which removes them f r r ) 1l1c11
~~~ world very effectively ' '
d o not believe that music influences people. Ant1 yrt the morc one
looks into the subject, tllc morc it is discovered ~ I I . I Ieven the perfor- Sonlc~i~ilesthe effects 0 1 rock upon the audience h ~ ~ vIrl-11 c
m e n of violent contcn1por;Lry music do believe I l l ; c t their music has g hardly been u n k n o w ~;I[~ I O C I<
in~mrcliate.Violence and ~ . i o ~ i nhave
an effcct o n their listeners. That is, they d o not perform such music concerts, but according ro John Phillips of the group, LII(.M o ~ ~ ~ ~ . ~ : ,
out of the belief that it is harniless, but out of .I deliberate desirc and the Papas, 'by carrfully controlling the sequence ol' I I I ~ I I I I I I ~ '
which in former days w n ~ l l donly have been called evil. ;my rock group can create audience hysteri;l c o n ~ c i o ~ ~. I I\I lL I~
T h e fact is that all types of musicians, good and bad, tend t o be deliberately. 'IVc know how t o do it,' he s ; ~ i d 'Anyl)t
. ) c l k110w6,
I \.I THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC, MAN AND SOCIETY 115

IIOW to d o it.' And according t o the Saturday Evening Post of 2 5 111 c-cclcd, I know I have not lived it1 vain.' And in Monteverdi's
March, 1967. M r Phillips and his colleagues were not at all w l lvtlu. 'The end of all good music is t o affect thc soul.'
satisfied t o allow his words t o rest unproven. Prior t o a concert they 110 musicians affect those who listen t-o tlieir nlusici Is niusic a
were to perform in Phoenix, Arizona, they decided to put their ~ ~ l ~ . ~ l for
i o r ithe
i communication and multiplic;~tionof states of con-
theory t o the test. And during the concert, by making use of a b3t IIIIISII~SS? If our answer be yes, then w e must thcrcf.orc ; ~ l s oal'firni
certain combination of rhythms, they actually did create a riot I l l . ~ t lnorality in music matters. The morality of thr mrrsiricln m:ll I curs.
among the audience. I , vc-n quite apart from such blatent examples as thnsc ()1'rc )cl<m~lsic
T h e Rolling Stones were the protagonists in a similar story. q 1~~~ ~ t c dabove, music must always have a moral effcct. Eit h c ~ovrrt- l y,
When. during the 1969 Altamont rock festival, they performed the I 11- in subtle ways which are communicated from subconscii~l~\ t o
song, Sympathy for the Devil, the Hell's Angels 'bodyguards' went ~.~~l)conscious. musicians always express through their pcrforrn;~t~c,c*s
on a rampage, attacking the audience with such violence that people rul~:~tever level of psychological harmony o r inharmnny thcy 11;lvc.
were severely injured and even killed. Afterwards, Mick Jagger did rvirhin themselves. This is inevitable. Even the slightest inner II;II~,I:-
not seem too concerned about the incident. H e and the other group 1 1 1 ) n~anifestingthrough the slightest shake of the performing li;~ntl

members even refuscd to attend court in order to identify the I 11. t hrough the minutest weakness in composition becomes registi~rrll

murderer or murderers who - prrhaps bccause of this - went free. I I I M )l1 our own ~i~bconscious as w e listen. N o matter h o w onc might
However, one thing Mick Jaggcr did havc t o say: 'Something like I I-y, it is impossible not t o express in one's music the reality of one's
that happens every time I play that song.' llwn inner state of being, even if only in subtle ways. This afCccis
Music for 'moving after the minds'; music for the instigation of others, the attainment or weaknesses of the performer or composer
mass violence ... ~ c ~ ~ dtionbecome g the attainment or weakness of the hearers. Music
The motives for music were not always so. Hence: Beethoven, ~llc-reforehas influences as varied a n d diverse as the minds of the
submerged in the bliss of reverence of G o d , sacrificing his entire life ~rlltsicians themselves. As D r H o w a r d Hanson, Director of thc
t o the mission of transferring such states of being abrvad throughout Il;~stman School of Music at the University of Rochester, has
the world. In the margin of the manuscript of his Mirsa Solemnis he .,Ixted :
penned: 'From rlic heart, nlay it reach other hearts.'
Thus: the tc~wcrilig figure of Wagner, of whom Paul Henry Music can be soothing or invigorating, ennobling o r vulgarizing,
L i n g has writtcn : philosophical o r orgiastic. I t has powers of evil as well as for

Never sincc Orpheus has there been a musician whose music


affected so vit;tlly the life ;tnd art of generations ...
Waglier MUSIC THERAPY: THE UNIVERSAL CURE?
himsclf w;~ntcdt o be more than a great musician; the new music I{c.rnovc thc magnet from bcnc;~th;I shcct of paper, and iron filings,
hr crca~cll w;ls for him merely the path t o the con~plete ,l. they had brcn placed on tc)p ol' LIIC ' papclr, become scattered 21nd
r e o r g a n i z : ~ ~ ioofl ~
life in his own spirit.'' tllaotic. losing the pattern i ~ ~ 5rd ' I them by magnetism.
~ p oupor
I<c.turnthe magnet beneath ~ I I ( * I I I ;LI
. )cl the f o:mer
~ pattern is renewccl.
Therefore: Sihelil~u.whose innate national pride rcrnained undaun- I ,ikcwise was music in ancicn~r imc:, Lu c ~ l c v c cto l be able t o rcncw t lic
ted by the occupation of his native Finland by the Russians, and clivinc harmony and rhythm 01' man's body, emotions and mind. 1\11
w h o therefore ought t o capture and fan the fl:tmes of national l;)rms of sickness and disc;tsc, mental o r physical, were repnrtlrcl . I # ,
freedom through his magnificent work, Ftnlrr?zdia. T h e piece I ) c i ~ ~ultimately
g musical prl~blcms.T h e sick man had lost l ~ i sI I I I I ~ I
succeeded so instantly and .ably in its task that the occupy- Il;crlnc~ny;he had allowcd dissonance t o enter the symphony 111 111,.
ing forces were compelled i :ly t o ban it. Iwinp. H e was n o longcr in tune with the univcrsc ;1n1l I.lrvs.
i l k .

J. S. Bach wrote that hc LcJlllrosedfor thc spiritual uplifting of 'I'hcrefore outward, auctible music was used in ordcr t o I.~..I~I!:II 111.111
man, and to the glory of Grid. Franz Lehar during his final days. with Universal Ssound.
stated: 'I wanted to conquer people's hearts, and if I havc I'rimitivc soci eties ofte n placed a greater c.nlpli;~\i\ 111.1!:ic.ll
~ u 4 -ra
P, C;. TF. 2 3'- FP5 2
53K . 8.
5 2. 2 SF243
'W
0 3n m * z y -
0 3 "rn F0 r,
g 5 -m " q o &
r a p 3 = S ,z *
2" "S$ X 5 5
Bs z g 2l .. .2 a,.0--. 2 ".FT
-.F
F.
n
- 0
- 2 2. 22 - 2 ? $ ,
- d

7
g.. 2 3.es c.
F:, L $ '-- .
- "
:: $V: L-
d
--
'c . " c.
$ C.= -
3-5 7 m
3- =2<c c' :4<:.
?
c, I S -I.
-.. '; 7 c Z
E +,g
S =$ = - ? n* 2 E.2
" D C?,. W
0.y F & $E ' O
z.v 2 a a g .;: $
s s a r mF, B "El$%::
a22 L 3-5 3 $8 F.
E 0 , 0~ K'-- 0 2.
: . V : 2 2.- 0 2 2
5 $'cl 2 L $
5 JGy -
0 " C = r7
= f - % = - -
T
- ---.- -- 2-7=--.
< : a e r ; --=,=
2.w.3
= = -
T r -. -. - -
'W
sc: 3 <L5 . 5 5 , -7 -
?
.-=.W
- -o-cc
= - S
2- 2. X E . F
3 4 3 . 2. -
g.4 gas g - R 2- "
7 S-,- &-c
5 T.
a w n
P ,&,c -I"
FJ v
- z a g Et -. h 9
I \l1 '1'1 11; SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC, MAN ANTI SOCIETY

lI I l l w f ~ ~ l l y I~owcvcr,
. music therapy will grow in grass-roots pop- immediate and physical forms of'trc;ttmrnt ;trc ncrt.ss;try. I3ut it may
I I I . I I I I y I I rexson
~ of its sheer efficacy, which needs to be demon- well be that a more gener;ilizrrl tlsr 01' 111c. c.t~r;lrivcpowc.r\ o i sc~r~ncl
I . I I r.11 I,y greater numbers of experienced modern-day practitioners. woidd prevent such illncsscs f'rc~ni ; ~ l j l ) c . : ~ l . i r ~ ! : in rIi(. l i ~ , . ; ~ l ) l ; ~ ~ r ,
A*. n111sictherapist Jean Maas has said : Indeed, what makes music thcr;cpy p;lt.~ic-r~l;lrly ,~~rr.lc,~ivc- i*, r III. l',~r.t
that it heals the cause bchintl rlisca;~\(*,I . : I I ~ I ~ . I -r l r . i l ~ I I I ~ . I , I . I ~L , I I J ) J ) I ( - s : ; ~ I I ~ :
Music is the greatest power I have ever experienced. I doubt if the symptoms as do most f'or111~ 1 1 1 I I I I I I ~ ( ~ I , I I I I ~ , I ~ III (I ; I I 1 1 ~ , I III I O I I I .

anything else equals its power to act upon the human organism. According to all the evii1rnt.c. ~>rc.v.nr r.(l l ) v I . ~ ) I I I . I I I J > I $1 IT-^ I I I I I \ ~ L ,
therapy, good music dors inrlrctl ;117171.,11. 1 1 1 11.11 I I ~ I I I I I ~ I11i.111"~ * III+~II):,
Long ago, Novalis stated that every illness is a musical problem. bringing him back into morc I I ~ ; I I I I I ~I ~ , I I I . I , I I ~ T 1 1 1 I I I I I I I ~ : I I I , I I - ~ ~ ~ I I ! :
Thus far, modern experience has not proved him wrong. In the and action, even as was claimrtl 131, I I I I - wl\c. I I I . I I I I I I ~ I I I Iy \\'v II.IV(.
literature of music therapy, reports can be found of success t o a lesser said that the worst kinds of physic;~l; l i l n ~ c - ~ W l~~I .I . III ~I I - . ~ . . I I I . . I ~ I I + . I I ~ ~

or greater degree in the treatment of hysteria, depression, anxiety, fully manifested, require physical rrc;tl mc.nr : v c . 1 will I I I I 1.1, r I ,111 * * . I v.
nervousness, worry and fears, tension, insomnia, high blood ultimately, what the power of aco~~stics ~ i i i ~ : I IlI ~ I 11 . I { 1 I I I ~ I ~ ~ I I * :' . I I 11
pressure, headaches, asthma, brain damage, cancer tendency, heart may well be that the power of sound. oncc ;I I 1 r . t l l r l *.I I I - I I ~1. I I I 1 1 1 1 .
weakness, Parkinson's disease, tuberculosis, and a widc-ranging host past, is yet to be a major science of the futurc.
of other mental and p h j nnits. E v r n thc most unlikely
problems have been helped 1 I)y musi C'S c11r;ltilf e effects. The MUSIC AND THE STRUCTURE OF SOCIETY
behavioural scientist Johanncb ~11c.1ltk;cnreyr)rrcu1 - 1uiat .
debilitated Having established that music exerts a dcfinitc i111luc.n~ c. 1 1 1 r t 111 t11.1 1 1
youngsters and the mentnlly rct;~rclrdp;~ssquict [lights when tape- as an individual, the question of whether or not mu. ,.I ,I 11.1 V

recorded cradle songs ;II-(* I ~ l ; ~ y r i I>rcl-


l . wrrr i11g decreasing in as a whole is mcrcly one of extrapolation. The indiv l r . 11.1..l1

incidence by no less tli;~nlwc~-tllir~l.; ,Incl .;lcrpillg I>ills not being component of society. All civilizations are houses cc I 1 1111 1 11
found necessary any niorc..I n the bricks that are people. If the characters of a sizeablr prt 1 1 7 o r - I 11 111
Recently thcrc h;~vcI~rrlimajor ;~clvnncr..;i11 111ruse of musical of the individuals within a society become changcd, tlrc.11 111.11
instruments to hclp the hanclic;tpped. O n the t';~c(.01 i t , 111ostinstru- society will definitely undergo a degree of similar changes.
ments would sec111 t o I,c hcyond the ability of' rh(. .irvcrely han- The evidence strongly suggests that music's effect upon 111r.
dicapped to play, hut with imagination this has I I I 11 I,~*c ~ v r dtoo vast individual is similar t o that of other perceptual/learning expcricnr~rs
a problem. Instr~~mcnts can be adapted t o the inrlivitl~~;~l nccds of the such as the acquisition of languapc. As we have already noted, thrrc
handicapped pcrforrner; or else, special glovcc or rc.~c.ntion straps exist definite similarities l ~ r t w c ~the n influences of language ;~ntl
can be used to hclp the person hold or perfonn 1111. In\crument. A music upon society. For ex;~rnplr.170th act as encoders of intellecttr;~l
guitarist with no right arm with which to pl11ck 1111, strings might concel~ t ors emotional feelin~s.:I nd witho ut the key word or piccc
r
learn, for ~ n s t a ~ ~to
c cplay
, the guitar with an :~tt:~cll~~~c.nt connected orr music, it is possible for concrprs anal reelings to be unknown ;tnd
to his right foot. With such individual adapr:~rio~ls, triany handi- alien to entire societies. Onr. human faculty which secms 1-0Ire.
capped people havc taken to music with profountl concentration. affccted by both languagr ;EIILI rlrusic is that of, intriguingly rncwj:l I ,
The result has bccn that not only have they found I l~rniselveswith a the awarness and perception 01' time. Regarding lanpuagr, sot i.11
genuine interest and well developed ability, but r l i , ~the ~ mental and psycllc~logistsand anthrt ; have noted a number of ins1.111( r+t

physical effort necessary in order t o learn to pl;ly. 11.1ppily engaged of p r imitive


~ peoples in 1 Lrts of thc:. world who hnvc I c n ' I I I
in for lung hours, has proved exceptionally effective in the develop- no ter nis by which to ref passage o f time - no wortls 511111 I<.
ment of sensory-motor co-ordination, helping rlic disabled to 'hours'. 'months', ' y e s t c r ~ l ; or
~ ~'soon'.
' O n e rcsult of this i. I 11.11 I 1 1 1 ' ~
move. '9,60,61 are unable t o handle thr concepts of past and f i ~ t ~ ~ r(cI I.I.. I I ~ I I . 1 1 1
Is music a universal curative agent? On the one hand, the clearly conceptualize or discuss the passing of tinic, IIII.)~ l 1 v 1 . 111 .I
practical mind must concede that in cases of the worst kinds of vague kind of eternal now, and the structure of tlwir c , ~ ~11.1( y ,11111 11..
physical ailment, when these arc already fully manifested, more activities reflects little or no sense of progrrus5, 01. r - v r . ~ 1~1 1 I 11,
Cvents.
I00 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC, MAN AND SOCIETY 16 1

l'his close relationship between language and the conceptualiza- ilsclf within. But having conccclcd lliis point, it niust ;ilso be
ion of time is closely paralleled in the relationship between people's .~l'firmedthat, as Cyril Scott indic-;itrcl. ;i sluily .ol' Iiistory clearly
music and their conceptualization of time. In the modern Western I-c.vcals that changes in nitaic. h;tvc 1c11tlct1to I~rc-c~cilc outer,
world the movement and rhythm of most music is very clearly 'I~istorical' events. I n other words, n~usic.tloc:s ; ~ l s osyt~~l~olic;illy
thought out, written down and adhered to. Musical works may be I-licode lifestyles a n d ideologies whic,l~c10 rot yrl cxisl in 1 1 1 ~olttcr
consciously divided into definite movements ; I I I L ~scctions. There is a lil'c, but which come t o exist due prc.cisc.l I ( : I 11;:; 1.1 ivc. c l l ~ : l l i ty o f
sense of progrcss from beginning to cnd. I,ikcwisc w c grapple with r l ~ art.
c
time in very precise, intellectual terms. I>;iyx ;Ire divided into hours One of the few modern writcrs wlio i l o ( ~1101 (Irl~ytl1;11 11111sic. is
and minutes. The time of day, date, nionlll ;incl year of many -15 important for the shaping of Socicty ;IS i Ior I I I V 41;11>itig

historical events are exactly recorded. T h r lu1t11~. et;iys and weeks of of music is John Shepherd, o n e o f t h c fotu 1 ) I ,I ~ , c - t , ( - ~l),~ )OIL
t

our lives are often well planned out i t 1 .lclv;~ncr.\VC are strongly c,nlitled Whose Music?A Sociolog y of M IISI I+;VL Sl1rl~I~(.rcl
rpn'

aware of each day's progression frolir t ~ ~ o t . l ~10i n 11i~ht. ~: Moreover,


w e tend t o live with the feeling t l l ; ~O~I I I I i v n ,II.(-taking us some-
where; with thc sense of progress o v c . ~I i111r~ow;~l-cls ;I p a l . .
Music is .. a n open mode that, through its C'SSUII i i ~ l *,I
l ~I 11t.111r.11
All this is not necessarily tlic c.;lscbi l l 111~.I I I I I \ I ( . .IIICI t11c intellectual nature is singularly suited to reveal the dynamic slrr~c.tt~rir~,t: 01
framework of other cultures. n ; l l i ~ ~ rI *I IsI ~I ~ ~i;1115 ~ L 1 1 0 11ot write their social life, a structuring of which the 'material' LII~IIIS o ~ l l yOII(.
music down, and therefore ( l t r I I O I I l j : ~ t l l y .~cIllc.r*c. I O ;t rc-pertoire of aspect. Music is consummatory ... because social ti~c~;~ninp, ~,;III

inviolable classics. Rr~thcr,1111-irIov(. r c V I I I I ~ I I,viw C (t11ough within arise and only continue t o exist through symbolic cotittiit~nic;~lio~~
certain definite rulcs). originating in consciousness - communication of wliie.li t1111~;it
Building upon this, ( ~ : l ~ ~ . i \ l o ~Stll;lll ~ l ~ l '1~1 ..1 ~ ~I car c'nrly 111;idea very forms a part.G3
interesting obscrvatioll ; I ~ I O I I I 1111.1 1 1 1 1 \ i c . I I I ~ I 111r. ~lc.oj~I(. of Rali: that
the musicians ;ire not e,ot~c.c.l-nc'cl, ; I \ W C ;ll.cn ~ , \ r c ~ r w l l l . l ~ ~in ~ ithe
~~gly 111 the same way that the time-sense of the Balinese seems to 1l;rvr
West, with thr ii1r;tl ol' Iiro~:rr~\. since- t l ~ c - i l . V V I - y a)ll~.cl>t of time I w n patterned after the time-structure of their music, John Shephcnl
itself is not l i t i c . ; ~ ~11111
. (,i~.e.~~l;lr.
Morrover, ;11ii11 1 1 0 * ~ 1, I I I ~ , ~ I . I ; I I ~ ~ : points to the spatial, temporal and structural similarities between tlic
Western music of different historical periods and the societies of
This rirc111;11i t y 01 I ~ I I I Cis rcvc;~lednot only 111 rllr 11111sic
but also tliose same periods. Certainly it is true that in medieval plainchant
in many ol-rht. ri111;tl>;uid social customs of I?,;lI; .. . the individual was submerged in the overall structure of the music.
Thc c;~lcncl;lr-.;irlrilarly reflects the circul;~riry 01 111cBalinese cvcn as medieval man tended to lack individuality within thc
scnsc of time. I t rncasures, not the elapsinl: oI I ~ I I I C but
. , the -.rl.ucture of society. Today, individual expression in music is
char;lctcristics OS r l ~ cvarious parts of time cyclc~~:'! l~;tr;~llrled by individual expression in life.
Are notational and tonal systems also associated with thc
Such sin1il;tririca 1)c.l wibcn music patterns ancl 1i1c Ixttterns are *,I I 11' I lire of society? Shephcrd suggcsts that this is the case, and that

unlikely t o bc wholly duc to the nature of thc C - I I I I I I ~ C ' in general 1 1 V l l . ~ l i l encodes the industrial world-view. H e writes that:

dictating the pattel,ns 01' its music. Each must infl~~c.r~c(, the other to
some degree. O n t l ~ conc hand, it would be u n r c ; t I ~ ~to ~ i csuppose ~llr. ;trchitectonicism of tlic ronal structure articulates thc wclrlJ
that civilization, as ; I I I environmental factor (;ttiil itlcluding that WIIW of industrial man, I'or it is a structure having one crnlr;~l
civilization's already-cxisting music), does not h;tvc. an influence vic.wp)int (that of the kcy-note) that is the focus o f ;I sin!:lr.,
upon the course of thc music of the present morncnl. as this music 1111ilic.d sound-sense i n t ~ o l v i na ~high degree of d i ~ t a n r i n ~ 11
: . is, I I I
comes forth. Yet civilization, in influencing music, is itselfaffected by c )r 11c.1words, a centre-oriented structure with margins ...
music. W h a t w e have here is a classic chicken-or-egg situation I I is, nioreover, a dialectic correlate of thr s1>;lti ; l l i \ r . l l I I I I I ( -
(which came first?). I n encoding this o r that world-view, music . I ~ * Iit.lll;~t~dby tonality that industrial man, i l l Iwc O I I I I I I , ~ :
must t o some cxtent be merely reacting t o the culture it already finds ~l~c.rc-;~singly objective and self-conscious, is ;11)1c I ( I *.I .111tI 1 1 . 1 ~ 1i
I,,' THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC, MAN AND SOCIETY
.tlitl .
objectify the passage of time .. B y bringing the corporeal bolized form. This was an in1port;inl notion to the Communist
Ix~lscof music into such contitmal high relief - and thereby dictators who emerged as victors of' the Octohcr Revolution. Their
altering and negating its original 'timeless' and hypnotic concern was t o keep the masses in ordrr, ancl to prcvcnt a n y i o r ~ no f
characteristics - the rhythmic structure of tonality helps to c,ounter-uprising.Thus, as one ;lsprcr o f t h i ~conrrrn it was nc-ccssary
maintain industrial man's intense and constant awareness both of for them to formulate a definite I-mlicy tow;~r,cl\11ic ;t~.ts,in 01.c1t.1.to
the passage of time, and of his own c o n s ~ i o u s n c s s . ~ ~ rnsure that the arts did not b e c o ~ ~;I~IcI1rc;11
' I I ) I 1lr.ir r11li~r:;lii1>. /\c.~.c IF
ding to dialectical materinlism, Ilowrvl.r, . I ~ Isl~o~rltl fc,lli~rupoli~ic;tl-
Shepherd therefore emerges as one of the few modern thinkers to cconornic events, and therrfi~rc co111t1 111. Iidr Ii,rv I 11 I,c,lir ic';~l
suggest in print a n at least partially cre:trivc. role for music. interference. N o influence l to 171.
Elsewhere in even the same book, howrvcr, thia possibility, with its possible, since art (from 8Ii1 i(,;tI-
vast implications, is generally avoided. Virclcn iind Wishart, for economic events (society) . i t .111(1
example, interpret Shepherd's line of rr:tsoning ;[S hcing merely that die other arts, the Soviet dictators bclicvr~!t l l ; ~ t 1111 t l i l i W lI i ~ ~ ~ i ' t v r ~ t
(and I have placed their key choice of wcrl~l\in italics), 'medieval tion was necessary; that their political and ccc~rir,111it r l l t r v r n - , wl I I I I I I
music articulated an idealisation o f it.; s o c i : . ~ ~ 'that, ; 'tonality be sufficient. Initially, therefore, a liberal view tc rw;~l.<l\ I !I(* . I I . I w.1,;
*,
expressed musically the nationaliscd ;tncl c.cntr;tliscd hierarchy that adopted.63
was actually emerging througliotlt c ~ c o ~ ~ c r ~~)olitical ~ r i c , and cultural As seems to be the case in so many activities o f S ~ w i r..I ~ ic-~v,
life'; and that, 'the transforlnation;~lgc-11c.r;ilivc. r~llcsfor tonality however. this 'liberal' outlook was admittedly sul~jcttI O . I r.(.~.l.~il~
were thus established as a miisic;~lr ~ n . o ) ~ t p , r r r r r )t~or tl~l ~~ emergence
c of degree of double-talk from the beginning. For e x ; ~ ~ n ~ llr.(.I . . 11 1 1
a new general sense and organis;~ticrn(11 1111.I I I I I I ~ ; I ~world.'62 W h a t acknowledged that 'every artist takes it as his right to crt';ttc- lr-r*c.ly.
can be seen herc is rhc opposition i l l I > c . c ~ l j l r " \ owl1 lllinds t o the i~ccordingto his ideal, whether it is good o r not' yet then conti~ir~c~cl:
realization of just how powcrfi~l ;111cI I I I I ~ ) I I I ~ , I I ~111usic I is. The
association between structures in niusic. . r ~ l c I , S I ~ I I ~ . I I I ~in~ ' Ssociety But of course we are Communists. W e must not drop otir l1:111iI\
would seem to be undeniable, but whcn i t L 4 ) I I I I ~ . S 1 1 1 111cpersonal into our laps and allow the chaos t o ferment as it choose.;. W r
intetpretation of this fact. the tendency is to II(.~.I)IIII. ; I I 11:;tst rather must try consciously t o guide this development and mould ;tnd
vague, if not completely reductionistic. determine the results.
Yet while it may not be difficult for the arnlc.11.1ir.~~llilosopher to
discount the independent, creative role of music- 111 .~l'l(.c.ti~ig society, Trotsky too felt the need 'to dcstroy any tendency in art ... which
it can prove impossible for the practical philosopl~r.~. ' i l l 111cfield' to threatens the r e v o l ~ t i o n ' . ~ ~
d o so. And, even more amusingly, when an ; I I . I I11.1ir I ~ philosopher T o the Soviet authorities clawic;il tnusic was perfectly acceptablt
becomes suddenly confronted with the real worlcl, 111.is often com- since, as John Shepherd has poi~~tcct out:
pelled t o alter his outlook. A good examplc of' wl1.1111;tppenswhen
the materialist philosophy of music comes up .~!!.~instreality is traditionally tonal c1assic;il nt~lsicboth encodes and articulates tltc
afforded by the story of music under thc rr,qililr of the Soviet structure of a centralised political-economic system, and so w;15
dictatorship. According to strict dialectical m;lli.l.i.tlisln, man does c*~ltirelyappropriate t o the 'nrw' order of things in Russia. G ivcr I
not shape civilization, but civilization shapes ni:ln, In the words of Illis affinity, it was h;irclly likely that music articulating o1111.1-
Marx, 'it is not the consciousness of men th;tt tlcrcrmines their co~rlpetingstructures wottld be tolerated. This goes a large I X I ~ I 1 1 1
cxistence but, on the contrary, their social existtnc,~tlctermines their LIIC way t o explaining w h y t h e morbid f r u s t r ; ~ ~ i l ) r1 l1 1
consciousness'. W o r d s which R. F. Skinner wo~rltl11:tvcbeen proud l'c11;iikovsky and the neurotic eroticism of Scri;il)ir~ wc.1 1.
of. As such a materialist vicwpoint has it, then, men are merely tolvr;tted, while the clearer, more vigorous langua!:c. 01 1 ' 1 - 1 1 k 1 111i.i~
biological machines which arc programmed by tl~cirenvironment. h;{\ oftcn been
Music, as a creation of the consciousness of individuals, should
therefore exactly reflect the structure of socicty, cxcept in sym- 'I'II(~ w.itb I 1 1 . 1 1 wl~ili.
rhlcrn posed to the Soviet dictstnrsl~i~j
THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC, MAN AND SOCIETY 16 1
I music was n o threat t o their retention of power at the centre
I . ~ h . s i ( . , r l
cvidence that the political (l(f1-wing) II;I~III.C oi 1 1 1 ~W c s r c ' r ~rock ~
r l ~ rCommunist hierarchy, the century in which they actually . .. .. . .
111 industry has been signif'ic;i~~r ly cl I,:I( II('I'SIVCS
lived saw the birth of all kinds of music which were indeed a threat. from the 1 9 j 0 s onwards."' Evt.11 III~II!~, 11 c t , I I1;1r,
Not only the 'new music' proper, but also devotional music and since the 1 9 4 0 s , the Sovic*l\ II;I L ' ( ' ;l1 1 1 1 . 1 I l y 1 1 1 1 I I ( X , I C ; I S ;I
some forms of popular music were utterly incompatible with the means of upsetting thc tii(-n~,ll 'l'. . 1 1
~ I ; I ~ ) I I I I O I \.Yr.q3~c.l.l~ ~ ~ I I , II I,.rvicI I ~ \ .A .
structure of Soviet society and the Commrlnist ideology. Modern Noebel has documcntcd i l l t i t , l ; ~ i l III(. ; I I I I . I I I J ) I ~ . 0 1 Sovir'l rc.l;l~c*cl
music stressed a different form of Iiicr;~rchy. I t also stressed radicals t o set up record comp;r~iic.si l l 1111.M'r-s.~I I P I I I)(.l ) ~ . ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ I ! : : ~ ~ i o ~ ~
individual expression, sometimes t o the poi111o f ;l~iarchy.I n coming of hypnotic and harmful rni~sic:rl rt.r,l)l.cli~~!y. 1'111 1 1 1 1 1 t l i ~ ( . r 1 . .I,; wrI1 .lL,
t o power , Stalin saw immediately th~ctrnll.;ii a real threat t o for the releasing of left-wing ;rntl ; I I I I: I~ ~ ~~ ~ I (I, ( I l<~ . 1 1 1 t 1 I o I l ( I O ~l<
the stability of his regime. Irrespective o f rhc dictates of dialectical
. 1. '
discs. '
matcrlalvm and its theorizations, i h r p-:iclic:il nccds of the real Besides those types of music which l i ; ~ v c s. I 1 1 ; . . 1 1 1 ~ ) 1i11~-!.IIvII I I I ) O I ~
world forced Stalin into a complctc ;tl)o111.1;1( 01'1llc attitude of the society, music can also be a put(:ni r;lllyi~ m)!;3 III~II , .I,. 11.15

Soviet leadership towards the tonal ;rrts. 1 1 1 1 0 2 7 the more avant- frequently been displayed. Music: 1131 ;iCtc811 i t \ 111,. v( IIO. 1111
garde Association of Contemporary M11.>ici , r ~ ~W;IS s ;ibsorbed into the unification of individuals, rrtovcmcnt S, ~.l:r\\c.'. 111i.~.111
the conservative, ideological Russi, F Proletarian unity of purpose lies immense strength, so ;I, I 1 1 1 . .I!:I.~II1 1 I l l r . )I

Musicians. In the following yc.:rrs, .S were kept bringing about of such unity, music has often cli;~~l!:c~tl I l ~ 1r O I I I ..r, ( 1 1
fairly much in place by virtilc o f r h ~ . I of anything history. Songs or musical movements havc ;ct r inlr.5 1 1 1 \ 1 1 t.11 1 . 1 1 1 I I I ,
remotely progressive. As c;11,1~ ; I \ I ' ) . l r ) , 1 1 1 i . I \ I I ~ ~ , I ; I I /\ssociation
I of nations. They have even created nations: it is scldonl ~.r..~li;lc.iI I I 1tl.1v
Proletarian Composers w:ls itscll- rc-l~l;~c-r.tl I ) y I I i v l l lion of Soviet to h o w great an extent the American Revolution W ; I \ , I I I ~ I I * . I ( . I I
Composers, an official organ o f t l l ( . ! : O V ~ . I . I I I I I ( . I I I ' revolution. Eloquent and rousing songs of protcst. l'rccxlo~~~ ,11111

In its basic essentials, the story 01' lItr Sovlr.~cllc.or~ncc~r with the brotherhood first unified and awoke a pcoplc to tlirir drsrillv, 1 1 1 1 '
power of music is simply that ol' rlic C ~ I I I I I I I I clis~.ovcry I I ~ T I , ' that, revolutionary music eventually being precipitated into ;I 1 ~ 1 1 ~. ~ ~ ~l 1 l
despite all of their reductionist thcorizi~lion.I I ~ I T ~clor.5 I ~ I)OSSCSS the revolution, and the United States of America being born.
power to introduce novel modes of conscio~~s~~r.\., ~ I I I I 1 &,I )c.icty, thus

changing the society. T h e only way of prrvc.rlllll!: Illis was t o THE TONAL SIDE OF THE AMERICAN REVOLUTTON
suppress thc novel music itself. Several years before the Arneric;ln W a r of Independence, r c s i \ r . ~ ~I.~ c
It is also important to note that somc forni\ 01 I I I I I . , ~ ~ , ,such as songs began t o appear in print. 'l~licscswept the colonies, bcconliril;
classical, are cfficicnt in the preservation o f (111 I O I III., 01. modern extremely popular, and being actively sung by many.
society, whether Capitalist or Communist. ,11111 ~ ~ l - ~ l , . r leven )ly Though the effect of thc sot.ig5 was t o quickly forgc a hro.~tl
whether good or evil. Conversely, anarchistic ancl ~ I ~ ~ . Iivc . I Imusical
~)I feeling of unity and purposc. nrnong thc colonists, the works a c t ~ l ; l I I ~
'
forms, like plagues o r famines, are destructive to irlrv L ~ 111 I ', ot moclern origin,ated with small. org;~~liztxl ~ninoritiesw h o deliberately usrtl
society. This means that certain typcs of music. w111l1. I )ring the last the m edium of song as ;I rncb;rl1so f furthering their vision for 11tr
thing a politician would want t o see let loose wit11i11 1 ) wn nati(on, l'l~rureof thcir land. For ~ I I ( . nlosl part, these groups consisrc~lof
are exactly what he would want t o sec at large wirl~in.I-.. cllc Cdlllp of
-A--

I;~x.c.~~~nsons and the Sons o( I,il>crty.


the 'enemy'. But ir I order to use music as a wcapo~r~ J this
l I way, it is TIICvital rolc of the I'l-cc,rnasons in the entire story of tlir 1trvol11
obviously essential for the politician t o realize . ~ n ( lI>clieve in the tio11 c,;cnnot be overtstin~.~~c.cl. George Washington, his ( : l i ; r - f r . 1 1 1
.
power of music in .rnc l P
rlrst place. This, Western 1v;lclr.r~havc rarely S ~ a i f ,lllc grcat majority 01' the signatories of the Dci.l.~r.;~l 11 111 I $ 1

donc. However, their hard lesson regarding thc ~iolilical and social Indrp rndence. and almo51 ;rll the early prominent ~ ~ S I I I. +I I I(, .~ > II!: I llr.
power of the art was never forgotten by the Sovic~Communists. In coloni es were Freema5ons. So too, amusingly cnc )r~!:li, rtlrhl.r r 111.
more recent times the Soviet and other Cornmunisi regimes of the l e the Boston Tea Party. The. M . I ~ . I I II II I. >1.1,. I .
'Indi:igl> ~ r s k ~ u n s i bfor
world have kept, or attempted t o keep, a tight rein upon the impor- t cntirc CaLl5c ,1111d core of the Kcvnluticrn.
lay ; ~ thc
tation of rock music into their o w n countries. Yet there exists ; ~ tof pa triotic freedom songs w:~.,O I I ( < ( 1 1 I 111.I I I . II I ~ I
'The p ~ ~ h l i cion
I, ' 'I'l I [I SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC, MAN AND SOCIETY 167
I 111 111. w l ~11i the
~ Masons rallied and awoke a people t o their Iln)~~ounced was a suprrmcly ;~n~bitiorls (Inc.. (;iven thc rcli~tivcl~
101,
. . . . .
n I x r I I I v hI ,111s()I' the political leaders of the emerging nation. such II I I Y importance and minor status during
I., I I . ~ I II <~ I Iopklnson, Thomas Paine and Benjamin FranMin, were 1 1 1 ~1700s. the vision was also unc, c.;~llcd
rl*.l I , I I I I O I I ~L I I ~New World's most popular songwriters, in addition Ior mankind t o 'awake to thc c ; ~ ( l 111:~
10 I I ~ - I I I ~Freemasons. Francis Hopkinson, as well as being 'l rc.(.ilom's flame' would roar ' W i ~ n;I I O I I ~ I 111) I e.vt.11 I I I tlisl ;l111
a ~ t I ( ~ ~ o ~ I as
~ d America's
ged first native composer, was also a .ll~orrs'.As early as 1774, whilr Rrilislt ~~'ocq-riwl.lrb c-x;lt.llrl,t:
1'1 cqrlnasonand a signatory of thc Declaration of Independence. H e I-cvcbngefor the Boston Tea Party, thr N ~ , r ~ p oA9t.r( r / I I I . ) ~I t ~ ~ l ~ l i r q,I l ~ ~ ~ t l
is :~lsowidely believed to have been the designer of the American flag. - . O I I ~ which included the following si;tr~li~~!: -SI.III/.I:
The first patriotic music to be published in the New World ap-
A ray of bright Glory now Rc;~m\i l o m .I~.II.
peared in 1 7 6 8 . John Dickinson's Liberg Song set the pattern for all
Blest dawn of an Empire to risc;
those which followed in the years before the manifestation of the
'he American Ensign now sparkles ;I S t ; ~ r ,
physical revolution itself:
Which shall shortly flame wide rhru' r l ~ Sliit.~~
r
Come join hand in hand brave Americans all,
\(,me years before the onset of the actual W;u o f lnilc~pi.11i1~~111 IIIV (..
And rousc your bold hearts at fair Liberty's call;
I~.~trioticsongsters had already made it plain chat they wc.lcS.IW.II.I.
N o tyrannous acts shall supprcss your just claim,
I I the
~ martial power of tone. One verse, appearing i n t l l e - ljs~totr
O r stain with dishonour Amcrica's name.
of 2 3-26 October, 1769, sombrely warned:
(.'l~r.orzicle
Ifz Freedom we're born rlnd in Freedom r t l e ' l l livc,
Our purses are ready, But when our country's cause the Sword demands,
Steady, Friends, Steady, And sets in fierce array, the warrior bands ;
Not as slaves, bat ns Freemen our mony tcle'II ~ I ~ P P ... Strong martial music, glorious rage inspires,
Wakes the bold wish and fans the rising fires.
All ages shall speak with amaze and applause.
Of the courage we'll shew in support of our I:~ws:
I Illring the war itself, there wns no mistaking the Americ;~ns'
T o die we can bear - but to servc we disdain.
I.~vouritevictory music. Thomas Anburey, a member of the surrcn-
For shame is to Freedom more dreadful than p:~in.
tl(.rrd British army, wrote from intcrnment on 2 7 Novembcr.
I n Freedom we're born ... 1777:

History records that the Liberty Song 'becamt :in ol~5cnssion,being Ydnkee Doodle is now their p;tcan. a favourite of favourites,
sung cvcrywhcre: at political demonstrations. prolcst meetings, I~layedin their army, cstcr.nlcd as warlike as the Grenadier's
patriotic cclcbrations, dedication ceremonies for lil)crty trees, for i\l;~rch- it is the lover's sprll, 111cnurse's lullaby. After our rapid
pure rnjoyment. and also for nuisance value tn r.lll,;lge the British 6sllr,c:c.sses, we held the Ysnkcrs in great contempt, but it was n o t :t
...'h6 I I I I I ( . mortifying to hcar thcrr~ this tune, when their ;Irlliv
Such songs playcd a major role in the early l'ormation of the 111.1rc.llcd down to our surrcndcr.
Americans' sense of nationhood. Esotericists Inay also read
significance into the fact that the songs were sung regularly and It be mentioned th:tt the American patriots were cor~vill~
..Ill ~ l l t l (*c l
widely by large gatherings of people: thus, the tones of freedom and I 11.11 I 11i-ir struggle was divinely supported. In this I lrcy ~ v ( *c .t
resistance were continually and powerfully going forth from 1 7 6 8 ~ ~ l ~ ~ : ~ ~ by l l c the
~ ; ~Freemasons,
ded who had knnwn ;l11 . I ~ I , I I , I : 1 1 1 1 .
onward. Even discounting the esoteric angle, the connection of such ~ l r . \ ~ i10 ~ ~which
v the New World was directed, ;rncl wllo 1c.11 111.11
music to the events which followed is unmistakable. t I t ( + VI-1.y :rn,qcls of God vvere behind their e n d r ; t v o ~ ~f ~: . ~~ . ~. ~ t l ~
1 .IIIBI ~ ~ ~ !

From the beginning, the vision for the future which the songs !;11,1r11in!! I I I C s o 11s of lib(:rty, and helping tc-) I,rill!: 1 1 t 1 I 11 .I 11.11 11 111
I l<!{ THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC. MAN AND SOCIETY 169

W I I I ~1 1 ~ 0 1 1 1 ~ OIIC
1 day illumine the world. Indeed, at times it was as ~~.trion.there is enough to givr one p;iusc. hcforc cic~*laringthe
I 1 1 1 )II!:II I hc very heralds of heaven were whispering their own lyrics /\tnrricans' earnest beliefs to li,~vcI>t'('ti i l l ( OI.I.(V I .
11110 111c receptive ears of the Mason-musicians. D r Joseph Warren's

Nrr,, ~MarsachusettsLiberg Song sounds as much the utterance of a


( ;oJ of Freedom as that of a Boston patriot:

W e led fair F R E E D O M hither, when 10 the Desart smil'd,


Paradise of Pleasure, was open'd in the Wild;
Your Harvest bold AMERICANS ! no Power shall snatch away,
Assert yourselves, yourselves, yourselves, my brave A M E R I C A

Lift up your Heads my Heroes! and swear with proud Disdain,


The Wretch who would enslave you, shall spread his Snares in
vain;
Should EUROPE empty all hcr FORCE, you'd meet them in
Array,
And shout, and shout. ;ind shout, and shout, for brave
A M ERICA.

Thomas Paine's Liber0 Trtt gave pr:iiw t o the trcc of liberty which
would take root, flourish and draw 'thr n ; ~ ~ i o naround
s to seek its
peaceable shore'. The song also ncknowlccl,i:cd lhv existence of
supporting celestials - an acknowl~d~cnicnr i~lrc~iclctl
to be taken no
more symbolically or poetically than litcrall y :

In a chariot of light from the regions of cl:~y,


The Goddess of Liberty came;
Ten thousand celestials directed the way,
And thither conducted the dame,
This fair budding branch, from the gardrn ; ~ l ~ ) v c ,
Where millions with millions agree,
She bro't in her hand, as a plcdgc of her Icrvc~,
Thc plant shc call'd Liberty Tree.

The song was first published in July, 177 1, untlrt. ilie


'Atlanticus'.
Ultimately, such s o n p were voiced by thc v;lrly patriots in the
genuine spirit of prayer and invocation. Their 1:rcemason leaders
believed the nation's destiny t o have been mapped out in advance by
divine agents, requiring only courage, faith, song and application to
bring it forth into manifestation. Considering the subsequent
miraculous birth, victory and unparalleled growth of the new
MUSIC IN INDIA 171

of that t o which the terms rcfer. Cosmic Souncl, Prini;il Vibri~tion,


Il ~ Logos,
r the Music of thc Spliors, t lir W o r d , c:c*l(.sti;tl 11;irmonics.
the O n e Tone - all such conccpls ;ire i~lt.lu\ivc-w i ~ l l i ltllr ~ I-lindu
rrrm, OM.
In the Vedas, India's oldrst scripture+\, wllit.li ; t ~ .1.11 r 1111 )I .111~.irllt
than the Old Testament. the O M i l ) c v l ;la, l1ri11,t;I I I C Ixlsic
11;ituralforce inhcrcnt throitghot~r ; , ~ I I ~ I I O I I I C I I , I 01' N ; I I I I ~ ~ .
;ind from which all other forccs ;trr ~ ~ r ~ ~ v'I'lrr~,11!:11 v t l . 1111. V , I W . I I O I . ~
4. ~ w w e rof the OM, God c r c ~ t r d;111(l \ I ~ \ I . I ~ I I . , I 111. (, v<-13r.
The Ancient Wisdonl : I Iescending in frequency from tlic. rc;~lm\ ( , l 11111-1. I I 1111.

;ircna of time and space, the O M shnlic\ : I I I ( ~~ I - ! : . I I I I ~ I - . l i ~ ~ ~ t ~ i ~ ~ ~ - ( l i . ~ l


Music in India .-energy in such a way as t o caurt. ; I I ( I I I ~ \ I O ~ ~ r . ~ l ~ ~I I cI It I .~ ,~
The syllable O M , which is the imptrirhnhlr Ijfirkmnrr, is the universe. s t i n g physical matter. All that cxists ic tl~c.rr.lrrl~c. I O I I ~r,rvc.rl .I%*
Whaltoever has e-xisted, wbatroerf~rr.~itl\,rt~lrlrl\occershall e.vist fundamentally vibrational in naturc. This ; 1 ~ 1 ~ i I i (111 . < ,I I 1 1 1 1 I~I I
hereafter, is O M . A n d w h a ~ s o ~ ttrrlrt~irrrr/\
~rr I,,/\/, pwcmt a n dfitture, tangible substance, but to all forms of energy, l,il:l~r, 11r.11 , I ~ I I I I I ~ I ~ ~ .
that also is OM. sound - all are stated by the Vedas t o be thc vibrn~ion;^ l It ,I.( 1. ( $ 1 I 111.
OM manifesting a t different frequencies and c o r n l > i ~ l ; t ~ i(o$ 1~ ~11-1. \
Thus begins the Mandrrkyd Il l ~ ; l n i ~ . I l . t ~1 l)II(.
, of India's oldest quencies.
writings. Though the t e r m i n o l o ~nl:ty
~ tlilf(.r,wc. lilld ourselves con- In a variety of ways there exist indisputable simi1nritic.s I)(.I w ~ . ( * I I
fronted here with thc very samc conc-c-pl 01 r l ~ cI'I.~III;I~ Vibration Hinduism and Christianity, and one of these sirnilaritics lic.5 i l l III(.
that we encountered in thc pliilllst t l ~ I ~ 1v,I . t ~ ~ c . i c ' ~ l China.
t In concept of the O M , for one can hardly avoid the conclusion th:~tI I I ~ .
Hinduism, the syllable O M not 0111y ~ . c ~ l ~ r . c ~I llc ~ , ~concept
r ~ r ~ i of OM and the W o r d of Christianity are onc and the same (horror 01
Cosmic Sound but, when uttcred, is 1iclirvc.cI 1 1 ) .tt r l l ; l l l y ;ittune the horrors though this may be t o the Christian fundamentalist!). I r : ~ t . l l
individual to thc celestial Tone itself. ;ire associated with the Creation, and each with the Second Prrson
The Hindu has always tended to be mrwc inw;l1.(Ily~ l l ~ h t i cthan al of the Trinity (Vishnu in Hinduism, and the Son in Christianity).
outwardly industrious. Thus, in India thtrr l'lr.r.11 lcss of a 'To speak of 'the W o r d ' is to rcfer indirectly t o a phenomenon;
tendency t o physically harmonize their civilix;~lrr,~l with universal whereas the OM is that phmomcnon. OM is the W o r d .
principles, as the Chinese did by means of thr l)t~'rr!r:r Ivrnq. Rather, The Vedas place great emphasis upon audible sound, for sound is
the Hindus have placed an even greater cml,ll.l,.i-, tl1;ln did the said to be a manifestation o f the Cosmic Sound itself. The Vedic
ancient Chinese upon the sacred alignment of' r o~~\riolr.\t~css. In this language of Sanskrit diffcrcnti;itcs bctween audible sound and
spiritual endeavour the concept of O M , as thr c - ; t r . ~ l ~sound l~ which Cosmic Sound, calling thc Sorrncr nbata and the latter andhafa.
mirrors the Sound of the O n e Tone, is par;inlotllll Intoning the .4 hata, audible sound, can h r Ilc;~rdby everybody by means of thc
OM, in combination with certain mental and spil i t l1.11 disciplines, is c;iI.\, W]lereas andhata cannor. Flowcver, a?zahata can be heard - 111.
of prime importancc in raja yoga. I n some mcdit:l~~oll techniques the c q ~ t.~
L
~ r t ~ ~-cby e d the advancctl yogi sitting deep in contemplatinn.*
OM is not actually uttered at all, but simply ir~l,~!:inedwith the i<:itlicr than merely consiclrring audible sound t o be thc !fi;*rt 01
inner ear, conscqut.ntly attuning the soul directly W i~ l1 the Soundless vibr:lrion. the ancient writrr.; of' the Vedas went one step l;trlll~.l.
Sound. consicln.in): Cosmic Sountt t o I)c the cause of all vibrational ; I ~ iI v i i(-. ~
ancl f'c brlccs. Lighlt, which consists of vibrations of a much I ~ i ! : l l ( - ~ . 11 1.
OM cluency than thos,e of audil,lc sound, was neverthclcss sr.can.I*. I ~ ~ * I I I ,.II :
W c have used various terms \o far in the courcr of this book in Ii)rtii 01 ....
' Ll:-,.-
>uL,lllrrnLed tonc. The Sanskrit words for thc I wrl \rl,ll 1 4 11
refcrcnce to the Soundless Sound, applying first oric and then li!:l~t ;{r1'1 .S[!rZRI f o r tonr -- indicate in root syllnhlrc Itow ~ . I I I I I ~ . I 111 I
another in order not t o limit. but to expand one's conccptualization I I , I I I I ~ Ct:hc two ~limomcn a wcre o~tlcc known r o I>(-. 'I'lrc- . I ~ I ~ I I I I ~ I I I . I I
I I? THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN INDIA 173
':I' thc end of svara, the word for tone, indicates that tones are
;I[ 1~1111xror
Akbar ordered a fr~~iious
n~usic.i;~~i,
N;tik C;opaul, to sing
51cpped-down, particularized light. I I I ( - rdgn. Akbar's motive in d o i ~ ~s go w ; ~ st o 1)rovc. I>c.yo~lddoi~ht
Music holds a position of vital importance within the Hindu I II;II the raga really did posscss suc.11;r ~ ) o w t * ;oj);1111
~. 11.ic.J 10 vxcrac
cosmo-conception. Since it consists of audible sound, or ahata, it is I~llllself,but Akbar insisted th;it C;ol>;ir~l01 '1'111. 5i11j:r1.1.11md")r~-
viewed as being a manifestation of anahata, which is to say, of the Ilc.gged permission to return home ;incl I i ~ l':~rc.wc-ll
l 1 1 I I l i \ I ; I I I I ~ ~ :illcl
OM. Therefore. music, like all audible sound, contains some of the 1 1 ic-nds. The request was gr;~ntcd;111cIrll) I I I I I I I I . ,11111 11.11 li I : I ~ < ~ I I ~ :

~ i
very power, energy and consciousness of thc Word of God. T o the ( ;opaul six months. When he rcturnctl i~ w;~r,W in1 1.1.. y1.1 cl~-sl>i~r 11ic.
ancient Hindu, as to the Chinese, audiblc sound was thought 1 1 1 l t l and before singing, Gop;tul pl:tc.rcl I l i l l ~ \ ~ . l iI l l 1111. \ ~ I I I I I I . I riv(*~-,
capable not only of influencing the mind ; ~ n dcmotions of man, but I I I V waters reaching up as high ;is I~isnr.c.k. ( ; I , ~ Y ; I II IIO I~ M' ~+ ,w;I*.I ~ I . I I
literally of shaping and changing physical cvcnts taking place within 111ccoldness of the river would 1)roirt.l I I ~ I I I - yc-I 1111 - a ~ ~ o t ~11.10 c n ~ Ilr
,
I the world. Sound accomplished this by gr;ccIually altering the non- ..ling a few notes than the rivcr grcw hot. (;o~>:IIII ( I , I I I I I I I I ~ ' I ~1 1 1 .;~ri!:,
physical vibratory patterns which lay xi thc roor of all objects. . ~ n dthe river began to boil. At this point I I I C . si11~:r.l.111 . I J : I I I I ~ ,
Of all the forms of audible sound, tliosc. c,rc*;itcdby man were 11c.ggedto be excused, but Akbar would 1 1 ~ ~ 1 1I . I O I I ( ~ of i~ 'I'III'I(.IIII.I'
deemed to cxert the most powcrfi~lc.l'fCcr,Ior ~ h csounds of man - N;tik GoPaul resumed the song, upon which viol(-111I ~ . I I I I ~ - . I)IIIL.I
the use of the voice and the pl;iying 01. I I I I I S ;II~ ~ instruments - were a Iorih from his form, consuming him to as he^!^'
very specific and intelligently cont rollrtl I . ( . ~ I .I :)SI ~ vibration. Hence
i they were capable of resulting i l l c l ( . I i ~ l i ~ ,c I~ I I ~ \~)ccific
~ changes in 'I'HE MYSTICAL BASIS OF MUSIC AND SPEECl-I
consciousness and in the physic:~lcvcwl.; of 1111' world. Shiva is said 'I'llc idea at work throughout the Vedic mysticism o f s o ~ ~i..~ 1 ~ I I . ~t I l

to have exclaimed, pointing out INIW II~.;I I O sc*rvc.him: 'I like better ~llusicand the human voice provide a vehicle for thc 111:111il>hl ; I I i l , I I
the music of instruments and voict-s t l r : ~ ~I i lil<c' :I thousand baths o f the energies of Cosmic Sound. According to the souncis protl~~r.c.il,
and prayers.' *;I) will the effect be. Each instrument, possessing its own unit111c

Volume I of the New O.ufordHi.rror?, ?f M I I ~ in11)rnls II us that: I imbre, therefore releases a different form of sound-forcc. l i t 11
c.xample, the three classes of instrument - string, wind and yrrc 11,.
The notion that the power of niusic, csl~c~c.i.~ll~ 1 1 1 1 . il~lonedword, rion - are associated with the Trinity: Brahma, Vishnu and S1iiv.c.
can influence the course of human destiny . t r ~ ( l r,vckrl 11ic order of 'I'l~rpersonages of this Trinity actually represent all manner of t r i u ~ ~ c
the Universe, goes back to the very oltlr\~ ..l11 viving form of ;lspects of Nature which are manifested throughout the universe. At
Indian music, namely, the music of tlir Vt.cl;~\.'l'hc intoned ~ h c i rmost fundamental level, the Trinity represent three primary
formula is the pivot point of the wholr ~ I : I I N I I,111' structure of ,I~ n dsacr,ed forms of cosmic energy, and it is these energies which arc
Vedic offerings and sacrifices. It is the ptrwcSl of' the words I',cleased into the world by means 01' music.
enunciated with the correct intonation, rl1;11 tl(-tcrmines the Acco rding t o Occidental t.sot-c-ric traditions, the Trinity arc
efficiency of the rites: a mistake may ~ 1 c ~ ; t oc.vc,rything.
y The present in music in the form of' 'Il;~rmony , melody and rhythm
priests claim that by their activity they not I I I I I ~11l)l101d the order 'I'liough Indian music has virtu:~ll!/ rio h a rnony, ~ there are sirnil;~~.
of human society, but maintain the stability 1 1 1 111runiverse. By rsl'~rcnceswithin ancient 1ndi:111Io r e t o tlhe role of melody and
:L :-
means of well-conducted ceremonies they I>;I\,(. c olllpelling power rl1y111111. Western esotericism &I.
it mac l r IS the Father-God asprct
.L

over the Gods themselves. The instrunitnr I I I , I I conveys that 01. tllc 'Trinity which relatcs 1 0 harmony; yet not so mucl1 t o
power is the word.'' n y as to interval.; of' pitch differences bctwecn the cliff;.
I ~ a s ~ ~ i oitself
rent Ilotcs of the scale. In other words, the Father aspect rcl:ll I 1 )
It is said that a singing girl, by singing so perfcrtly a certain raga, what 11 called thc 'vertical' axis of music, sintr pi1111
avertcd a famine in Bcngdl by causing the cloutls to shed their ~Iiffercn )t in thenisc.lves take place over t-inir ;it ;III. I ~ I I I , I l y
moisture upon the crrsps hclow.16 Another tr;icii~ionrefers to the ~ l ~ c ~ i ~ s c l~vcc~s ,~ labstrxct
din and unmanifested. In this sc.n\c., I\I-.IIII)I.I
fearsome, magical effects of the Dlpaka ragd, which was said to 01' the tl indu Trinity c;trl indeed b e said t o be prrcc~itin ,111 I I I I P . I ~ .
destroy by fire all who tried to sing it. According to the story, the S l ~ i v ;o~r ,~ h Holy
t Spirit, rcpresent S the presrncc of ( ;I 111 I I I . I I I I ~ ~ . \1.11
I
l
I ) I 'I'lil:, SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN INDIA 175

a11 ~ ~ l . ~ r t . world.
1111 r i , ~ l In music, Shiva is that which gives music 1 ~ ) r ~ i ofo n the Vedas, and which sol(! i l l 13:1~1t.rl),tc.k 1;)rrn in the
tithin the known world of time and space, for Shiva relates West. are not p1 ~ I i ; ~ l o g t ~ ~ : )rigs
m, the movement of music over time. O f these two, 13rahma : their function 1 1 ) c011 I-,ICI.
{;I, is born Vishnu the Son, even as melody is born of the a1 wisdom, but lit( I wist111111 ;~ncl
Ir~t>~cn.rtonnl Cross between rhythms, or 'horizontal' movement over S . I ~L C U energy. Energy was a~w;[y\cc~rl..~t~t.~-t.tl I I I I>(. r - r ~ c - . t \ r - c ~wltc.11

~ilrlc,and harmony, or the 'vertical' difference in pitch. 1 1 1 ~ . magical Sanskrit forrnul:~~ wrrc. vot.~l~;.r.tl. 'I'lii\ I - 1 l ~ 1 . Ij ;I ~I I ~
Indian writers havc always stressed that primacy in music I ~ c I ~ e-d not only thcorctic;llly, I>LII ; t l \ o 1 t 1 . 1 c I I I , 1 1 1 ~ to C I < * * I { C 1111.
I)clongs to the voicc. The voice is thought to be a more potent \piritual states of mind and o f l i t . wliicl~I I I V wrr111..1 1 1 . a . t 11lrrcl
medium for the expression of cosmic forces than are inanimate
instruments. Esoterically, the voice is associated with the Mother- MUSIC AND SPIRITUAlITY
G o d , thus adding a fourth member to the Trinity of string, wind I>ue to the danger of music k i n g niistl\~-clI ) y I I I V 111 I , : I I ~ 11 1 1 1 1 . I I I
8 ( , I

and percussion instruments. There are t w o reasons for this more C-l;tssical Indian music great stress .III(I
potent power of the voice. Firstly, n o other instrument can express \piritual stature of the musician. I n ,111 11

s o perfectly all the delicate subtleties of spiritual feeling that the Indian nlusician o r dancer, the stt .l11

musician seeks to give forth t o othrrs as sound, because only the c.\rablished artist. Invariably the teacher, after thc m,lny yc..~~.. a r I III.,

voicc has a direct bodily connrction wich the intellect itself. own training and association with the music, h;ts ilcvt~lol)c.,l. I l i v r , ~ ~
Secondly, the voice of man is particul:lrly intiniatcly associated with scnse of spiritual awareness and responsibility. The tc;~c.l~c.~. I I1r.1 (.I111 1.
the O M , the voice of G o d . -H- ~ I I ~ I ; I slwcch
II is ;t lesser, stepped-down 1)ecomes both a music teacher and a guru to the stilclr.nr. I t I-. 1 1 1 1 1
aspect of the OM itsclf, si tlce nI;lri is ;I Son o f , ;tnd a part of, G o d *,idered inconceivable for the student t o attempt t o seriously IN'I I I I I , I I I
Himself. Therefore, throul:h tlic trsc of 11;s v I IC.;IIcord s in speech or c~lassical Indian music o r dance before a solid rgroundin!: i l l 1111%
in singing, man is thought ,-.I . . . :.I- P .
L O 11t. .r co-~.rc.:~torW I ~ I ~I o dAccording
. xncient religious texts and their teachings upon the rnystic;~l;Irlwc 1,.
to the symbolic writings of the Aifdr~yrrI lp;~nishncl,the Creation OS music have been mastered. From the outset, the training i., 1)11111
involvcd the formation of a cosmic 'rno~~tll','I:rom the mouth ~lli~sical and spiritual.
proceeded speech, from speech Agni. firr.' Wirl~ilirhc lesser world As early as the third or fourth century BC, the author 01' rllc
of time and space, this same crcative Holy S l ~ i r iIrrrccb ~ or fire, Agni, Kar~zayamastated that a singer should eat sweet fruit and roots in
is said to proceed from the throat of mortal nl;ll). (;roups of sadhus slnall quantities, that he should accept n o money o r other rernuncra-
roam the land of India o r congregate at rcligio~~s irstivals, chanting lion for his art, and that hc shnuld ;tlways sing exactly as taught
bhajans ;tnd yogic mantras for many hours prr it ;I y , ctvcry day o f thc without any attempts to impmvc o r change the master's composi-
year; an d this for the dual purpose of eIevatin!: them srlves in con- lion with flourishes and thc likc. S t ~ c hstandards are not always
sciousne: is and maintaining the equilibrium oi t l ~ rsociety. For Ii~llowed today, yet still the most ;tccomplished arc
thousands of years there has never been an in\l;ln~of time when ;tlways extremely religious inclivi~l~~;~ls. In the past, however, 1ndi;~n
many thousands of holy men were not chxntin/: Sanskrit verses 111usicianswere not only g r c ;t~ 13crli)rmcrs, but also advanced yogis.
within the Indian subcontinent, that evil OI. tliwster might not Wlr;~ttheir music must havc sot~ndedlike, fusing so perfectly t h r :rrt
prevail on earth. oi lone with the peak of sislf-control and the heights of rnystic.,~l
A similar function is attributed t o thc in~oning, over the .I w;trc.ncss, w e can today o r l l v hegin to imagine. Writing o f rllc.,,r.

millennia, of the ancicnt Vedas. T h e Vedas, which are the basic !:rc:~t fiKilres of the past, Rxvi Sllankar states that they had c t r n ~ ~ ) l ( . l ~ .
scriptures of Hinduism, are also revered by thc ;]clherents of other (-ontr~rl over their bodies:
religioris.such as Buddhism and Jainism, and ;trc. among the oldest
religious texts in the world. A point often nlissed by Western kncw all the secrets of Tantra, hatha yot(n. . ~ t ~ tc ll i t II'I I . I I I
readers of the Vedss is that these texts never were primarily I s r l l l n
..c
,,l ..--..l*
r r c c u n power, and they were pure, n.;r.c.~ic .111t1 1 1 1 1 1 1 y q>

intended only t o be read and quietly studied, but were sacred hymns 1'1i*rirl11 as hccn the wonderfui tradition 111 I I I I I I I I I I ' S I ~
which were intoned and sung. The Upanishads, which form a . t t i ~ lc\ , though such miracles may nor Itr 17r.1 I O I 111r # l , o r l c
1 'r, '1'1 I E SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN INDIA 177
U ,111 sbr.~- I 11,- inlnlense impact on the listener and, as many put it, Over thousands of years, ancicnt tr;tclitic~n11;rsbrought forth the
I l ~ ' r\ j ) i ~ . i t ~ l ; ~experience7
I the listener feels.68 I~ijasounds of many of the nlost cx;~ltc.clIx*~ngs,its wcll as thc
elements of earth. air, watcr and fire. I3y pi.rlorn~ir~g j;~l>;r, or
h l ~ ~ \ i;tssists
c the Indian devotee to direct his emotions upward in repetition, with a bija m;~nls;~, wc-. r,rr:itc .I I ~ ; ~ l t l ~ oI,c.son;incc
r~ic
lllvc Ior the Supreme, to still the rebellious mind and bring it to a with the being or elcmcnt wl~o\c.st.min;~l~.o1111(1 111.11 1)ij;r ill

1xli11r of concentration. Music even aids, it is believed, in the raising mantra.


i 11 the 'vibration' or spiritual frequency of the body itself, beginning In a linguistic sensc, bij;ts 11;1vcno IIII..III,II,; i l l ;1nc1of t 1 1 ~ 1 1 1 -
thr process of the transformation of matter into spirit, and conse- selves. But mantra yogis lillly r r a l i ~ c111.1t 111i- S.iltti. or ) ) t l t r . l l l
qirently returning matter to its original state. Thus, as all is O M , the force of the Divinc Hcing, is I ~ ; I ~ S I I I I I I I -1I1~) t l ~ rO I I ~ w110 is.
OM as music calls to the OM as manifested in the soul of man, to chanting the mantra.
draw it back t o the Source of the OM itself. The bija sound for the earth clrmc~nr i,. I ,/\M ( I ~ I I I'1'111. ) IBI~.I
sound for water is VAM. Thc bijn qotlntl IOI. . i i ~ I., Y A M . I * i r ( - i\
NAME AND FORM the sound RAM. Ether, or akasa, has ~ 1 1hij:~ ~ . :,o111ri1 1 l :\ /\I
I The moulding power of sound is attributed not only to music, but As we give these bija mantras, we c;ln : I I I I I I I I . 1 0 l l ~ r . 111111.1
also to the spoken word. According to the Hindu cosmology, the pattern of each plane of God's being.
name of a thing is actually a vital key to understanding its inner Each one of these five sounds ends in the lcttcr M wl~itI r 1111.
l nature. The name of anything is its key-note sound-pattern, the sound of Mother or MA. It is the sound of the H l l M (lrtl~l~n) I 11

expression in audible sound of the higher vibratory patterns which the Mother flame, and it is the sound that ~ r ~ s t ; i l l i xw1t.11 r * ~ 10%
i have created the form itself. This is conil~lctclydistinct from the coming forth from the causal stress into physical m;rt I t-I hi I , I I I ~ I
'I Occidental conception of name, which is tllought to act merely as a is the author of the Mater universe.
label, much like a reference numbcr. To tllc studivd Hindu, a name The first letter of each bija denotes its frequency. Thr. cc.n11..11
is not an arbitrary reference numbcr, I.YIII tllr ,rc~.u;tlmathematical vowel of each is A - the action of Alpha, or the Father pritlriplr.

,l iI
formula of ratio and vibration upon which t c,rr;rrion and sustain-
ment of the form or living being is bascd. 'Tllrrr c,;un only be one
correct name for any person or object, for any otllc'~'11;ime would be
an incorrect formula. T o change one's n;rnir is to change one's
The Father creates, the Mother seals the creation. The tlirrr
letters of each bija form the Trinity - the Trinity that is :~lw;ty.;
necessary to have a s e ~ d . ~ '

personality.$ This is the understanding upon whicl~rhc language of INDIAN MUSIC AND ITS APPRECIATION
Sanskrit is based, in which all phenomena arc n:~liirJaccording to 'Traditional Indian music can hc divided into three general classcs:
their root-formulas. The language is derived froni ;L long-forgotten, classical music (i.e. the r a ~ n ) purely
, sacred music (vocal chants to
unknown source of great occult wisdom. Sanskrit 11;tsalways been deities such as in bhajans),and fidk [nusic. All three are readily avail.
l1 considered to be a holy language, because its snuntls are such a pure
I 1 expression of God, the Geometry of Divinity. li;lch letter and
syllable of the language is mathematically and mystically precise. T o
able to us today in the form o t rrcordings made by some of India's
grcatest artists in these gcnrrs. M(.,rcover, some of India's grcat
;irtists regularly tour in the Wrst. This practice was largely initi;~tetl
I alter the language is absolutely forbidden.
The seed sound of any object, phenomenon or condition is
sitar player, Ravi Sh;~nk;tr , who
' ga.ined great popularity i n
and America among sc~nicof the ycjunger generation ~IIII.~II!:
1l L

11
l
known as its bijrI rnantra. By knowing this srrcl sound, a yogi
believes he can achieve ;I state of absolute knowledge of the thing
itself. Likewise, by a certain use of the mantra, thr thing itself can br
:. 1960s and early 1070s. The b r others Imrat and Vil;~v.ll
r
Nrian, ;lnd Ali Akbar Khan ;ilso tour ~rcr~uently, these bcing : I I I ~ I ~ I I ~ :
thc prc;rtest of India's living musicians. However, it cclulrl Irt. ,II-!:~II.~I
destroyed or changed - or created if it does not yet exist. O n the that i l l order to experirnce the total, committed ; r r r i i t ~ ~ l ~ l ~ 1t 1.1 ~ r .
subject of bija mantras. the American religious leader, Elizabeth Indian music, there exists no replacement for hearing i t i l l ;I-. I \ . I ~ I I I . I I
Clare Prophet, has stated: c-nvironment, as the holy men of the hills chant thcir I I I )~~ - I I I I I , I : I r t 1 1 . 1 l..,
I t,r ;IS the musicians of the local village s p o n t a n c t r ~ y,.1111r.t
~ ~ l ~ .II - 3 ~ ~ r ~ 5 ~ - ~
I IN THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC I N INDIA
I I # I 111c' hounding out of the tones of the hour. This reveals clearly why it is so iniport;~nrt01.111c. I~ldi;lll~ ~ l u s i c itao~ i
Western and Indian classical music have each taken their art t o the I3e of pure consciousness. In Wcstc, i1 music I '
'

l ~ i ~ l ~point
c s t of beauty and sophisticated tonal expression, but each usually 'lost' midst the bocty o i [hl rrc.Ilr\~I.;( ;
11'1sctonc so in a differcnt way. That thc qualities of Western music parts are often clearly laid down I) I l l ( )\(.l,,[ l
(such as its use of harmony) are not often foilnd in Indian music, and however, and particularly in the. rti,qr~,I I I C c.11til.c ' ; I I I I I O ~ , ~ ) I I ~ . I . ~; I. I' I C ~
the qualities of Indian music not frequently t o be found in Western cli~aliryof thc piece depcnds u p o n r l ~ rmu\ic.i.~nI i i l ~ l c t . l I , wllo I)~liltls
music is not a failing of either. Since each 'ire radically distinct up and invents the ex;~ct ~ncloclit. I ~ . ~ I I ( T I I - ~'i4. ) I ( . !!OI-F ; I ~ O I I ~ : .
cvoliltions of the tonal art, each must bc r~.;~c.ctcd and listened t o in I~iterally,the rasa prc5cnts ;I 51~ G I I I I I )C c o ~ ~ \ eI ~I I i\ cI I ~ - ~ +, 1, 1 1 ( l , \ I 11r.1 t , l q s
~t.S o w n M ray, according t o its o w n critcri;~of what the music is :I very obvious examplc o f OLII. sc:lr ( + I I - I ~i l. lI ,1111- I 111cvic ) I I ~ ~I ~ . I \ ) I( . I ,
o rientcd tc,wards achieving T o the unaccr~\to~ncd ear, Indian music that music acts as a comnli~nic;itor;IIICI 1 1 i 1 l l 1 i j 7 l 1 c . 1 i b I ititl(.~. 51.tlr.\.
C*,, >uLiLlu strange and alien, and likc ; m y ~uusic., hcforc one is really
attuned to it, it can even sound rnonot :xactly what THE RAGA
it is not! However, once one has 1 c ~ the music's The raga (or rag) is the basic form of Indiiin cl;lc.;ic;il n i ~ ~ .# (11~1rr.(l,
~i<
many deer and hcautiful i t is ,111 ; I I 1 ~ I I I ( . I I I ~ Iwnich
~L is main- it may always have been sa. There cxists cvidcrlr.r I 11.(( I l ) ( . r;?,r l , l 11 ,l I

tained for life. It even seems nt rimcbs .is r lioil,qI1 tllc Wcsterner who rrlga-like form of music, cxisted as early a s 400 I { ( ' . 'I'IIIIII!:II I I I V
develops a taste for the raga dc,rs I i ; ~ r ~ \ c - l II>c.):in
- t o think and act a instruments of ancient India differed c o n s i d e r ~ l >r'rorn l ~ I I I I I..I. I T I I l \ r b
little in thc manner of an 0ricllt:ll tlrvolc.r.. Ijcx.o~)lingmore subtle today, it seems that the musical forms a n d structures 0 I I I I I W r i1111.r.
and meditative of clharactcr. were similar t o those of today, possibly differing frntrl r o t l ; ~y'c r i y i \
In listening t o Irrdian mu. ;ic. on(. ~.oulclt l o woroc. I I I ; I ~ t o heed the n o more than the ragas of modern India differ betwccn tl~c.r~~~~r.lvr.\
wise words of advi cc froni T'er cl- I I ; I I I I ( . ~ , 1111. ( ; ( ' I I I I ; I I I musician and Srom the north to the south of the subcontinent.
writer, that: Over thousands of years of musical evolution, rhtb Vrrgr I I : I ~
cleveloped into a n art form capable of summoning up the 1111151
For Indian music, as for the pcrk,r~nc.r I I ~ I ~ ~ < ~ I i' l ~ Iis' , I I I L I C ~morc intense spiritual feelings. T h e listencr may experience indcscril~;~l~ly
important that the p~lblic~I3o~ld b p irblr / o I/\/rr~r1,1i/k /he hear/, deep yearnings for something not quite defincd, but which scclilr t o
rathcr than observe the musical d e ~ c l { > ~ ~ m01c ~ 't,l~l ~ ) ~ ) r c c ithe ate' I)c connected with the vcry core of the meaning of lifc. Thew
music critically and dispassionately ... C)IIL,(. r ~nr.11.1s'got the fcel Scclings vary in an infinite variety cif subtle ways, according to [lie
of' Indian music, its monotony suddenly I,r.c.r~nlr..;so colourful .
type
, of rdga performed. rr) rhc dcgrcc of understanding it1 ~ h c .
and full of nuances that its riches start to \ I j i I 1 OV(.I. into deeper listener. and according, of ) tlic spiritual development of thc

dimensions. '" ]wrformer.


O f t he four main dir o f music - harmony, melody,
Among the programme notcs for his 197 f EIII-c 111r.;t1 1 'I'oilr, Pandit m timbre - harntctn? is ;lg.tin, as in China, virtually ncm-
~ , l i ~ t hand
Patekar ;dviscd his audiencc that in listening t o I I I I ~ I , I I I music thcy c.\ti\tc.nt in Indian music. But, :IIICIagain as in China, this 1;lck
should : 1nl)l.c. than made up for in [II;II ~ ~ l c l u d yrhythm , and timhrr ;II.C,
tl(.vr,loped t o an e x t r a o r t l i l ~ : ~ ~sophisticated
~il~ degree. Cl;ls\ic ;(l
Temporarily rclcasc in thought frorli 111c. usual way uf I~itli,tnmelody and rhytlin~o l i ~ ncxcceds anything t h ; ~i3 1 1 1 l,r
thinking and coliccntratc o n the higher. spiri~il.~l ,tspects of lifc. I'orllltl in the mainstream ol' \Ycstcrn music.
A . :., the Western di:ttr~nicscalc with irs scvcri major t ~ r l i r - . , 1lrr.11.
I~Iusicoffers the bcst nicans for such concentr;c~~orl. 11' 111

Placc thc univcrs:~l in front of your con~cmplation, and :lrcb; 1 1 ~ in i Indian music .;even basic notcs, known as .$A, It I ; , 1 i t \ ,
endeavour to Iay aside or t o forget the habit n i looking a t partial M A . I ) A, I I H A and N1. M'hilc the notcs of this 5 ~ . 1 1 <-11-1- . 11111

aspects only . . . I I .
I ) I ( r(ly:liL togt:tI~cr h a r n ~ o n i c a l l ~
thcrc
, is a vcry r-c.l'ir~c,tl. r I I 0 111r

T r y to think your way inside the artist. I n other words, try to 111ij:l11 L + V ~ IsI t y science - to the melodic use nf tlli.: I ~ I I I I.lIr.
.
fccl with him and t o become one with both artist and theme. Moclil'iL.;lrions of the srven basic toncs 01- \/:.t),t i t 1 1 t 1 ' 1 1 . 1 1 1 1 1 . 1 1 ' .
Ia10 '1'II.E SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN INDIA 181

' 1 1 1 1 ' . '..II.II l)', 'extremely flat' and so forth produce a total of 22 Within each raga SA is sounclc~l,11111osl( o ~ ~ t i l ~ l l ; ;IS ~ clronc,
l l l ;I
I I . I ~ ~ III ~I I , . I . V ; I ~ S o r .~hrutist o the octave which are applied in Indian
L
. I I . I ~ all
other tones are t1icrc.io1.c. I~(.;II.(I i l l ~rc.l,~tion 10 tl~is.(Tllr
I I I I I , . I ~ . [J'iing these shrtlris according t o traditional and strictly laid lwominence of S A is thcrcforc rctninisc'c.nt 01 ~ l r i~iil~ort;tnc.c' t 01' t l ~ c
I ~ I I W I Irules gives the basis of the raga system of music. From the I)/~a?zgchung in China.) R c s i ~ l ~I IsI V clrot~r01' ,SA, O I I ~ I I O I ~is :ilso
c.\r.tl)lished szlar-shrutis (tone-intervals). hundreds of different tone 5c.lccted in each raga for spc~c1;11 ~ i ~ ( ~ l o tIl ~i tI~. O I I ~ ~ ,II III <~I .;I I I~re.011~1 ~(.,
(o~~rhinations are organized. Each combination of tones is the basis tone as a secondarily iniport;1111111(~111clic I I O I V] ;.. I ( 11 rd/!9/IIJ\ i t \ owl1
0 1 one raga. That is, each particular raga is based upon a particular 11;ime which statcs the rd,p'.r r111o1io11;lI ~ - I I , I I , , I < I I . I , ' I ' l ~ i c ~111iy,l11l>(.
irlcction of sval--shru~is.The relationship and order in which these ;mything from longing for ;I Iovc-tl on(.. 01. :I I I I ~ Y II II II I1nr'l,111c ~. Iloly

.ones can be played during thc raga arc govcrncd by strict and ;111dhope before dawn, to a mixiurc. oi icly .In(] .I tlr.c I I I 111. t~tc.tlir;l

.ides. It is up to the musician to display the full range of livc thoughts on one's life at the closr o I ~ ~ l ; l y .
~ o t rc~a~ionships
c and ornamentations of which he is capable, and to In India, as in other ancient c u l t ~ ~ r csl~r.cilic-
s, .I.qrt.t 1 % . I r I 1 l 1 1 1 6 ~ i c .II*.I)
d o so movingly and artistically, whilst nevertheless remaining Ilold a variety of cosmological associnrions. A r ~ t l1111tlr.1 I 11r l 11111,111
l
within the partic~rlarlaws of the raga. system it is the different raga forms which I1oIc1 I I I . I I I V ( , I I111.(''(1 I..(
T h e raga system grants the musician freedom of expression within 111usical connotations. As in China thcrc ;trc. ; i s ( ~ c . i . t li c I I I ~ S 111.1w l.r.11
the limitations of a certai inviolable 7?/lrodp.This is a convincingly lni~sicand time cycles: each raga is linked w i t l ~;I ~ ~ , iIt I111.11 . I I 1 1 1 1 ~ 11
(

'I successful solution t o thc problctn whicl~ the music of ancient day, and sometimes with a particular season. 1lv1.111 o t 1 . 1 ~ . 1111.
civilizations always came up agi~inst.T h e ciilcnlnl;~has already been studied Indian would normally consider the playing I ;I r;!r:,/ . I I I 111.
discussed in relation t o China: sincc n111sicW ; x-tant a force wrong time t o be an act of gross ignorance.
in altering phenomena upon carth, it woi~ltl r, dangerous, Aspects of music in India still hold connotations with 1lli11!:\ . l a ,
I l
and perhaps even suicidal in the 1011,~r11n I musicians to various and diverse as the signs of the zodiac, the plancts. rlrc- t l . 1 ~ 8 ,

of the week, the seven heavens, the seasons, the elcmcnts, COIOII~.;,
'I perform whatever they wished. 7'11crrl;)l.i- I I w.15 lmpcrative for
music to be regulatsd, and definitc 1;1ws :cF~l~lir.cl rcgiirding what voices of birds, human complexions, the sexes, tcmpcral~~cnrs,
man's agc. However, it would be unwise to place a grc;lt dc:~l01'
:III(I
;I could and what could not be played. Rut i l ' r l l c . I;Iw.; mc;iot that only
I certain set pieces of permitted music coulcl 131. pc-~*li)rmrd, and n o trust in the objectivity of such connotations as they exist today. Not
new compositions brought forth, then p c ~ ) ~w l co ~ ~ l cI>rcome
l bored only d o they differ betwecn the north and the south, but in both
with hearing the same music over and over, ;Incl I I I V ;irr itself would parts they differ from the connotations indicated in the ancient
therefore decline. T h e immensely successf~~lI t ~ c l i , l n solution was, texts.I6 As Curt Sachs re1;ctes:
then, to apply a system of rules which, while cff'rc 1 i ~ c . determining l ~
what type of music was performed, and even its sl,irilIi:;l ;~tmospherc, Tradition is hopelessly lo\t Fvrry local school has a terminology

!
~ 1
did not actually dictate the notes themselves. S o Ilvnil~lcis the raga
form that the same raga performed by different ;lr~i\ts,or even by
the same artists upon different occasions, can ol'l'cr t~ntirclydistinct
delights and experiences. Artistic expression : ~ n t l invention is
of its own, and when n nortllc.111Inuslaan asociates thc rag2 Sri
I love and evening twilil:Iil, , I rn'ln from the south will rchill\r
him and relate it to gr;~ntlt.ll~
3 pn1. l 6
. I I I L ~ the hourr bctween noon , I I I C ~

,ll!I allowed for, then, yet the necessary barriers Il~,ovidedagainst


anarchy.
O n e tradition has it that originally there wcrc- only seven ragas,
As t o the musical naturcs o f I llc ragas of different hours o f t l ~ r(1.1v .
onc clistinction is clear, howcvcr: 'ragas have most f l ; 1 1 \ i 1 1 1111.

'1
I,:

but this may be the remnant of an ancient referrncc to the associa- quietest hours, extending from midnight t o the hot timr ol I I I C , 1 1 . 1 ~
tion of different ragas to the seven Cosmic Toncc. Today there are and rc.lch a major-like c11;crncter in the cooler time hcl wc-c.~~ ..I\ . I I I C I

~ ten basic raga forms in the north of India and 7 1 h;uic ragas in the
south, each raga form possessing its o w n particular combination of
tones. Yet ragas can differ from each other in cven the minutest of
midnight.'l6
If the most import;tnt feature of Indian I T I I I \ ~ ~1,- I 11, 111,1, , 1 1 1 .
sequcnccs, then the second is certainly its rhy!lrrtl. 01 / , I /
details, and as many as 83 1 ragas have been identified in the south. The td is a rhythmic cycle, cornposcd 01 . I ~ ~ . I ~ I .I I II III II~ I, I . ~t l t
182 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN INDIA 183

beats, or time units, known as mZtrZ. These different rhythmic excited concentration, yet also rcfrcshingly i~rvi~orriicdwith its
cycles have many different numbers of beats, but the most widely slicer, exuberant energy.
used is that comprised of sixteen mztrd', and grouped into four bars: O n e o f the most distinctive and h r ; ~ ~ l r i fIccttlrrs
~ll o I ' ~ h tllusic r is
4-4-4-4. Each t21 o r rhythmic cycle has its o w n name, 4-4-4-4 1lic infinite subtle differences het wccn its nic.loJic I I ( 11 I..;. T11c
being tintiil. Similarly, for instance, the rhythm of ten matriis intervals of Indian music arc on ;I sn~;~ll(.r <livi.;ion oI-III~. \ ( . ; I I ~ r11;111 is
divided into the four bars of 2-3-2-3 is jhaktiil. There are also used for the majority of Wcstcrn work.;. 'l'lri\ r(.\rlIt\ i r l . I tt~1:11 ;II.I
more complex rhythms such as vishnu~ril,which consists of five bars which is extremely rarrficd ancl c t r l r t c ~ t ~ ~ ~ lI11cli;tn; ~ ~ i v c1n115ic;ilso
containing altogether seventeen matras: 2-!-4-4-4." iliffers considerabl;~from that of ( ; I I ~ I I < I . W I I I . I T . I(~; ~ l ~ i ~ ~ r * \ r1111qic
r*
The structure o f the classical rap, o r the order of the different c.nlphasizes the single note to R ni;trkccI clc.!:tc.c., I r ~ c I i . r l l ~ I I I I ~ . *~i ~Cr - c ' s ~ c ' s
sections of its music, is fixed. However, rlic timc spent upon each the intervals between the notes o f thr sc:tlr. '1'111. irlrc~r.v;lllic ( I i . , r . l l ~ t I. i l l
section is left t o the performers. In the first p;irt of the raga a great pitch between t w o notes is not ;in nvoi~lrtl,II.I.;I oI 1011r . I \ 111 I I I I I \ I
degree of improvisation is possihlr. tl1o11!:11 ;1lwnys within the laid- ~nusicsof the world, but is actually the rcgio~i I V I ( 11 wl~ic-IIin,
down rules of the particular pircc. '1411i\ ir rhr ;,12\)rr, in which the ;ictively used in order t o constitute a large propclrfir~n01 I II(- rllr'lc ~ i l
main traits of the raga are gnnc over ; I I I ~>~l.c.s~ril, ~ ornamented and itself. In the performing of instruments, thc tr;lnsirir~nI I . I , I I I ( j n c rlc,lr.
improvised with more liberty ~ h ; l n i!. I~cls\il>lcin the later move- ro another is often a sliding transition, producing wll;~ri\ .#I 1111t.l illrc'*>

ments, which comprise thc rrt,qr 1irr11x-I.1 1 1 11". s ) i n h of India the .l11 indescribable effect of longing o r of devotion. (Jtlivt-rs , 1 1 1 1 1 .l11

raga proper forms the niilior l711lk1 1 1 111r.r - l ~ ~ i r . c :picce, but in the ttlanner of ornamentations also take the pitch awriy [I-I 1111 I ltr ,.I I I, I
north, where in somc respct,t.; 111rrr.,~rc.j:l,r..irc.r tlrvi;itions from the notes of the scale.
music of Indian anticltlirv, rI1c o l j l r c , t - l r i r l l r v / ( , I - virritosity has led t o A similar element of unique beauty is found in 1ntli;rn \ill!!irl!:
the iil2pa taking o n ;I I I I O I ,I,lclrlclllnt
~. r + c t I ~ I I ! : I I ~ . Sotnetimes it is techniques. T h e notes of the song d o not have t o bc sot~tl~l(-tl I I I ,I

longer than all t h ; ~ tL~llc~ws. I I I lwc.r:t.l,. ..l11 11 v i 111osi1 ~ y is not of the fixed way but can be approached, according t o certain definite rlllrs,
r r I Itr ,~;rr.,lt11111c,it- I 11 I I lt(br civilizations,
kind that has oft c11 p ~ ~ v rctl I)y a sliding voice from either above o r below. Within thc slicli~t!!
but is still kept in slll)\c-rvic.ncc t o t11c r111c~01 1111- I,;~~.ticular piece, note, o r glissando, the singer rests at numerous intervals for a rn:lttcr
and allows no c l ~ i ~ ; ~ p ~10 ~ c . c.titcr.
;\ I)r~l.irl~:~ l ~ imeditative, s of micro-seconds at a time. sliding rapidly up and down thc scnlr.
introductory .;rr.tiol~,I'irsl one ;iricl tlicn ;~notll(.r. 1 1 1 1111- IJ;IS~C notes of 'I'his requires great knowledge and skill, for only those intervals
thc raXa :Ire Iirotrl:h~ in. the music grad~r;~lly I l ~ ~ i l t l i ~ ~itself
!; up. It which are among the sbruti of the particular piece of music may bc
serves ;is :l11 cxccllcnt introduction for thc 1istc-nc.l.r o t l ~ cnotes and I ) ; I L I S C ~upon. I n this way an clemcnt o f freedom and an opportunity
flourishcs oI' which thc rags is composed. The not(..; ; ~ r played c in all for invention is always prescnt. Thc niood of the musician leads him
three oct;~vt.s;;rnd at this stage
- the rhythm is Irw I ~ r r ) ~ i o r ~ n c e d . cwntinually t o create and re-crc;~tc~ l i cnrga or other work afresh; yet
Nrxt come.; tht: jor. This too is improviscii. , t r ~ t l~lsuallyperfor- ~ l i cpiece itself, in its theoretic:~lI.r:tmcwork, remains unchanged.
med on only c ~ n cinstrument, but it introdncl,l; I T I O ~ C ' tangibly the I t is obvious then that 1ncIi;rn nus sic and the music of the Wrd;~
elements of rhytllrn. 7'hrn the percussion instrr1111r.111 joins in and the ~lil'fcrconsiderably in thc kinclr o f moods and spiritual atmosphr.l-vs
work 'takcs ofl' in ;I glittering array of varied cxlwc-\sion and subtle n~Ilir.l1they invoke. Both c;In rnprcss sublimity, but each a difTc,r.rv)r
interrelationships hctwccn the notes of the lc;ttlin!; melodic instru- Ii,rm of sublimity; 2nd so o t l tl~roitgheach kind of feeling wlric 11
ment or singer, ;Incl the tabla o r other pcrcllssion instrument(s). I ~ I I S ~can C bestow. T h e t w o r~luric:altraditions lead the mind r r r 111,\v

Much dynamic importancc attaches to each first beat of the ;lion!: different paths of aw;l~-c~nuss. And from the point of' v i r - ~ v 111

rhythmic cycle: w h c r c ~ sthe 5oloist and the percussionist are free to our prcscnt study, this is n nlost significant fact.
explore independent rhythmic nuances throughout the rest of the
cycle, they must be suft'icicntly skilful and rhythmically awarc MUSIC AND INDIAN CrVILIZATION
always to come togethcr oncc more precisely on each first beat. 'I'lic mrlsic of India affords us some interesting indic..trl~~ I I . I r * ! , 1 1 I IIII!'
Finally a climax o r jh& arrives. This is invnriably so brilliant when I I I ~rcl:~tio~lshipbetwc.cn music and civiCzntioll 'I'll(. t 1 1 , t 1 1 1 0 1 1 , t 1 1 ,
performed by experienced musicians as t o leave one breathless with Ilrtwccn Indiita and IIVestern music - the I I I ~ . ~ I I ~ . I I I \ ' , ~ I I ~ ~ ,1 .1 1 1
IH I 'I'HE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MUSIC IN INDIA 185
I f 8,111rl. I I I ~the latter's more solid and formal structures - d o seem to Sometimes Western pop was copiccl to thc cxt.t-nt o f particular
l )T. 111irrc)red in the contrasting 'inner' orientation of the Indian mind Western 'top-ten' songs being liter:1lly rc-rccordcd by Indian pcrfor-
.I 1 1 t l I 11cmore ~racticaland outwardly successful Western mind. Fur- mers, and then broadcast. In othcr cases tltc nCw sour~ilswhich
~l~rrlllore, musical differences between the north and the south of flooded the land were a hybrid of tllc. two ~,IIILIII.~!; - ;I kind o f thrcc-
Illclia may also be mirrored in divergent lifestyles. Certainly the minute pop-raga about tccnagc 'Iovr - , I I I ~ I , I i L c ~ 1 1 l ~ ~ l > r i d s ,
~ ~ o p l of e sthe two regions d o differ, and so does their music, that of inexpressibly ugly. Simultaneously. it1l 1 t1'li;t 11 Ii11t1 ~ I - I ~ I I I S};I-CW
I ~ ~ i~p,
thc south being more faithful a continuation of the music of the past, its output including many of the ~ O J I - I I I I I Sc~.II ltintl of procll~crions
whereas the north, in both its style and its instrumentation, has been which had in the West helped to p ............
~ r , r ~ l \ .IrI IcI~(11111cic
. of' lllvis I'rc-slcy
considerably influenced by the music of Persia and Afghanistan. and the Beatles.
That there are many poverty-stricken areas in India. and par- By the opening of the 1970s, Indinr~p111I I I I I S ~ CI1:ltl .;c-c.~~rrd ;I
ticularly in the north, is known to all. And thus it might be argued similarly strong grip upon the listening 11;1l)i1s I)!' 1111. ~ O I I Ic Ii t~y -;
that the music has failed to render beneficial influences upon the dwelling Indian as had the pop and rock oflh(. W r s ~11p011Wr*~trrlt
people and the land. This, however, is not necessarily the case. W e youth. And, interestingly enough, it is from this pcriotl r In w;~rcl<111:tr
must remember that to the Hindu, Buddhist and Jainist alike, the the civilization and culture of India, the 1:lncI wllicll 11:ts orij;ilis
sole and only purpose in life is to evolve in curlrciou.vzess, little regard lost in the mists of time, has at last begun t o sllow tlisi~t
being paid to the outer life. The mr~sictoo emphasizes this retrospec- tegration. Particularly among the younger gencratiol I r. I hr
tive orientation of the soul. Whilc spiritual cvolution does not beginnings of new hedonistic tendencies, the infiltr: ,,.~tlic.;~l
normally preclude the possession of ni;irrri;~lwealth, it does not politics, and a more materialistic outlook.
require it either. From the point o f virw of the Indian devotee, Coincidence? Possibly. Yet one imagines the wisc-cyrcl, ( l . 0 ~ 5
India is, then, one of the grcatcst rrpositorics o f wealth and success legged yogi, looking down from the Himalayan rnount;tili slopes,
in the world. For its wealth is of thc 11c;tl-I,. ~ n dits success is in the watching the social movements taking place upon the plains I~rlow.
spiritual height to which so many of i t s n;ilivc MIIIIS ;tttain. Weighed Impassive of face, he observes the events of the passing yc;cl.s. And
on the scales of devotion, India is the IYin.;r World nation, and our what is this which, with a slight sigh, he whispers to himself? Let us
own might be said t o be the land that is h;lckw;~rtl. strain to hear. Is it not, perhaps, 'Asin music, so in IEfe'?
Thcre is one other respect in which ;I c*01111cct ion is apparent
between the land of India and its music, ;tnil tl~isis the degree of Notes
change, or lack of change, between the two ovrr. lill~c.The music "It is interesting that the term uttaha~arefers not only to omnipre-
has altered relatively little in at least two ancl :I 11:1l t ll~ousandyears, sent Cosmic Sound, but is also thc name in Sanskrit for the heart
and so has the civilization. Even the colonix;~riol~ 01 India by the chakra. The heart chakra is one of' scven major chukrus or spiritual
British, while bringing about certain changes in t l i c clurcr life such as centres which the yogi believes t o hc located at non-physical levels
improved transport systems, had little influcnc~rsIlpon the Indian of his form. Of the seven, the Ilcart is the most important, and
way of thinking. possesses the most intirnatc link with the heavens. This reminds o n c
Yet what of the more recent past, and r t d ) r r / of the future? 01' the Chinese legend of Wcn of Cheng, who could perform his
Nowadays onc can walk for hours around somr of the cities and wonrlcrful music only after 11c h:td reached that which he souglit ro
villages without hearing a note of traditional rtqtts, bhujans or the c.xl)rrss, which was within Itis heart. The Indian yogi-musici;t~i:~lso
chanting of the Vcdas. There is another kind 01' 111usicto be heard, I)c.li~avrsthat only by purifYiltg and expanding the heart (or ,irt,~llrrtrr)
however. During the 1960s music from the Wrst at last bcgan to il~nb.Lr can he bring forth the music of divinity. As 1111. Ir:lltlr
gain a significant foothold. O r to be more precise, a music began to ilenotcs, the anahata chakra is considered to be the anchorin!: I ~ O I I I I
flourish in India during the Sixties which was not Western music wilhin rnan of the Word of God.
proper, but an Indian adaptation of the new Western rock 'n' rolI.
The general style of British and American 'pop' songs was imitated, 'I' I;ot, this rcason, some Western esotericists cl;tim III;LI 11it I( I L I I I ~ ~ ~

a number of Indian crooners making their appearance on the scene. .II,I. harmf1.1lin thcir effect. They are said to art ;is ' I i r . ~ r . u . ' , 1111- 1 1 ic-lltl.;
III~, 'I'H E SECRET POWER OF MUSIC

111, I I . I I I I I ~ 1111posinga wrong vibrational matrix over the form and


~ individual concerned. This applies not only to
1 1 , I . , I , I I . I o~fI Ithc
II.IIII(.\ 11 'IS 'fatty', but even t o simple abbreviations such as 'Sam'
01 'Mikc'

1.
The Twentieth Century :
Jazz and the Blues - Their Nature and Origin
I,ike human nature itself, music cannot possil>ly I>r t \ c * \ ~ tr.11 I I I 1 1 %
hl,iritual direction. At times it may exhibit n mixt~rrcoi ~ ~ l r l i l t i r ~. ,~ : ~ l r l
clegrading elements, but ultimately all uses of' t o ~ l c; ~ n t l,111 I I I I I ' ~ I I . I ~
lyrics can be classified according to their spiritual d i r r r l i o ~II~>W.II.(I
~,
or downward. I t is unusual for movements in music whit:h c . o l r ~ l ~ ~ n r
truly exalted elements with those of the downward ilir.rct i l l 1 1 1 4 r
maintain their stability for long; almost always one o r 111r' OIIICI-
force gains the upper hand, as can clearly be seen throitglior~t tlir
l~istoryof the art. It is actually a part of the essential naturc ()I'11ir
majority of styles and movements of music that they c i t l ~ t rl i l r
people into an awareness of beauty and sublimity, or that rhry
inculcate, subtly o r overtly, feelings of indiscipline and hedonisnl.
'To put it plainly, music tends to be vf either the darkness o r of thr
light.

TONAL ANARCHTSTS THROUGH THE AGES


I listory records that of the music o f light and that of darkness, only
o n e is usually prominent within ; I I I ~givc~zcivilization. For as long as
sublime and beautiful music prrv,iils, so does the civilization flourish
I)oth spiritually and in rnatcri;~lprosperity. Almost always, whencvt.~.
[ I I C major music of a civiliz;ttiol~Ii;is been of a more primitivr : c r ~ L l
; ~ h : ~ n d o n enature,
d the civili7;rtio1l itself has been barbaric. nncl I I , I ~
\ ~ s ~ ~ gone . ~ l l yinto decline, cvt'ilc~~;tlly ceasing to remain a c i v i l i r ; ~ il I~I ~
; ~ t:11l. W e have already inclicatcd that the classical civiIi7,;lt i q ) I I,, I 14
-.. .
~ n dIndia have dcclincd together with a parallrl - o l I T ( - 1 1
decline iln their nlusic. The same could be drmnn.;t I , I I ri1 1 1 1
)f many cxher pcoples.
- . . -I' - -
L I I C C.;LW 0 1 ancient Greece provides a particul:lrly t l r . . ~ I. l m ~ . ~ ~ ~ ~ l ~ l r -

Grrck music bcgan to decline during the er:l of I'r.r.;t I{+, .. , I I I ~ I I I ~ I I


~1.14-429 BC, this being at a time whcn Grrrk r ivi117.~1u,11 . I I I ~ I rlrr
I HH T H E SECRET POWER OF MUSIC JAZZ AND THE RL.1JF.S 189

I 1 ) I its :~rtswere at their highest level. It was music which led the 'I'l~roughfoolishness they dcccivc.d ~ l ~ r . ~ ~ ~ \ ci lll vt oc thinking
.s that
w,ly illto degeneration. tl~c-rcwas no right or wrong in 11111'iic . 111.tt it wit!; 10 IJC ji~dgcci
As Greek classical music became progressively replete with cheap !;oc,d or bad by the pleasure i t k:;~vr.. Ily rhril- work .Incl tllcir
i~~novation, excessive modulation and decorative shakes, Aristo- r l~coriesthey infected the mnsscs wilh tllc ~irr..;un~pt i o 1 1 t o t l~ink

phanes attempted in his plays to counter the rot with parody and ~l~c.mselves adequate judpcs ... As it w,~.;,t 111. crilc-l-i~)~~ w;~cnot
humour directed against the cheap new music. H e likened the ~ r ~ r ~ sbut
i c , a reputation for proniiscl~ol~>
c,lrvr.rnr\r ,11111.I -;l.)i~.it of
singers with their quivering voices tu zigzagging ants, and called the
instrumentalists ecstatic, effeminate creatures who were so easily
bent that they had to wear stays. (Their wavering music was M r;~nwhile, the music contin~lcd t e , clc.t r-I i o r . t ~c. M car c. t*/r./~tcr,i
produced by bending certain of their instruments, such as the ~r.~>l;~ced true musicians. Uplifting mrlotlir\ :111tl 1 1 1 ~ . Iol.~nc*l-, cli*.c i .
strophae.) In one of Aristophanes' musical plays the Muse stages a I~linrdstyles were replaced by the novrl~y-ritltlt.11,i l l - ~ ~ l l l ~ . t . l l i ~ i . ~ I
personal protest against the modern wave of innovators who twist a., ttinds of exhibitionist 'stars'. Greek mitsic- I I ~ ~ - : I I > I ~ I- 1.11r. .~ntl
her on the rock with their inharmonic notes as they modulate. The t~ll'cminate, and the people followed suit. l lonro.,(-utr.~l~~ y w.15
play was a foreboding of musical rebellion. an appeal on behalf of I-.lnlpant,and the nation waned over the years :is ;I nrilir . I I .I r~r1.c 1. .I 11c1
the whole tradition of well-educatcd Athenian citizenship against .I., ;I bastion of culture. Eventually Greece declinctl lot , 1 1 1 ~ 1111 I I I 11t.
uncultured or alien ideas. ..I~:ide and the Roman Empire came to the fore.
The appeal came too latc. Thc ncw music had already set in, I'hroughout the ages peoples have faced the choic-c. I i r - I M I ~ . ~ ' I I
supplanting the more refinccl and disciplined classical styles. One 11111sic of the J. direction and music which encour;igcs 11lr. ( O I I
year later the revolution in tnrlsic manifested tangibly as a violent, 1,-~~iplation of eternal verities. The story of their choices is i l l r i i , l l l y
physical revolution. and rllc downfall of the elite of Athens. I c..i1'ects the story of civilization itself. W h a t is also noticeable is I 1 1 . 1 1

Following the Grcck rcvolution of 404 BC, a deliberate blatancy w l ~ r ndestructive music appears within a civilization, it usual1 y ~1or.s
and toughness distingllisl~cdthe lyrics of the performing rebels who ..(I vcry suddenly. Its onset comes as a veritable wave or blirxkrirg,

came to thc forc ;IS thc musical stars of their time. One famous .1l111ost as though by a deliberate strategy. It attains to a position o f
manifesto hy Timor hcus of Miletus smacks strongly of the mood of IM)wer and of widespread pop~daritywith the masses within just a
Chuck Rcrry : ~ n d of the Beatles when they sang 'Roll Over Irw years or decades; and its influence upon society in general is
Beethovrn', c ; ~ l l i ~fix
i ~ ; Beethovcn and Tchaikovsky to make way t,ltcn similarly sudden, bringing about a swift and negative changc
for the coniin!: ol' rhythm and blues. In similar win, Timotheus 1 1 1 I'hilosophies, politics, morals and lifestyles.

rcpudi;~trd11ir c-nrisc past (also taking care not to miss the oppor-
tunity to court I lir younger generations) : HOOTS
Wcbrr we to scour the globe in search of the mosr aggressively
I do not .;in!: I hr. old things, ~ ~ l ; ~ l r v o land e n t unmistakal>ly rvil music in existence, it is more than
Bccaurr I h(. ncw are the winners. l i k c * l v that nothing would he fount1 :trlywhere t o surpass voodoo in
Zeus thc yo1111gis king today: ;cttributes. Still practisetl in Africa and the Caribhc;iri
~ l ~ r . ' i c b

Once it wa\ Cn )nos ruling. ~ ; ~ i c ' r . i f ' i as


~ ; ~the
l l ~ rhythmic ;lc.companiment to satanic rituals ;~ntl
GOto Hell, old cl;c~neMusic. r)r!:ir.;. voodoo is the quintcssrnce of tonal evil. Often irs vc.l-v
tlc.t.l;~r.c.tl purpose is to inflict harm upon other parts nT Iiff-. I t . .

(One can almost im;tginc it being shouted to the accompaniment of ~tl\ilripl(.rhythms, rathcr th;111itniting into an integrated wl~olt... I I ~ *
electric guitar.) Iirrfclt~~i~c*J in a certain kind of conflict with one anothrtr.
-
Decades later, in his fi~niouswork, Laws, Plato lamented the 1 1 wo111cIbe quite incorrect to consider voodoo to hr '111 ~ I I I II\'(". I

musical revolution and its 'unmusical anarchy'. His words are as 11, ,wcbver.St~ldieshave shown that the mutliple rhyt l ~ n i \ .1rt.l I t 11 111r.tl
I t 1 1 ;I I;lrgc number of percussion instruments, arcb ; I ~ . I I I . I I I ~( ' v 1 1 1 ~ 1 1 ~ ' l v
relevant today as when first written:
8 1,111~ilrx. I t is said by some that certain very .;11I,tIr. I I I I , I I I ~ W I I I ( 11
(*'I
I ')(I THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC JAZZ AND THE H 1.U ES 19 1

~ncorporatedinto voodoo rhythms, while being too subtle for Irr. tcrmed 'jazz'. Bolden was born in New Orlcans in
-.
1868 ( N e w
the car of even the trained Western musician to notice, are actually ()deans at that time still maintiti~~ing irs st; i ~ r gthc ostcns-
the source of much of voodoo's claimed occult power. W h a t is il~lcvoodoo centre of the Unit(-d Ct;~tc.s,I Ily ). H I>cgan
certain is that t o hear this music is to become instantly encompassed 1)l;iying while in his twenties, during 11 c. Wit 11 otlicr
by the sound of its raw, livid power. As for the evil rites t o which ~liitsicians,Bolden would ninrch round 111r51 rrris t r Nrw ~ Orlc;ins,
the music provides the background, the author is informed by I>rrforming as he went. His music was ;I str:~n{!.:~., r x c i t i n ~ ,nc.w ;rnd
authorities of unquestioned repute that human sacrifices continue to revolutionary s0m.d; and it w:rs :i i-rvol~~~ioll wl~ic.l~ II(. litcr;~lly
occur from time t o time in both North Africa and the Caribbean. c;irried into the streets. Frcquc~itlyIlc : ~ n I~is ~ l 11:11ltlw o t ~ l ~rn:~rcli l
During the slave trade, voodoo crosscd the Atlantic in the tllrough and stop over in thc red-ligl~r cIi51rik.1.I\,rl(lrn W;IS ?;:lit1to
persons of those among the blacks who practised it, and took root in 1)c well acquainted with all t h c district's frnr;tlr iolr.~l)i~.~nlc.
the Caribbean, as well as in the United St;~tcs.'T'hough the historical A cornet player, Bolden led a numbcr r ) f h ~ l r x . t . \ \ ; v r - I I . I I I [ ~ \ . I ~ I I ;hs
I
records on the matter are sketchy, the o r i g i ~ ~ ;African-style tl voodoo tlle result of his heavy drinking and of syphilis I\(. I l r . r , ; ~ ~ i ~i11s;tnc. r-

seems to have arrived in the West Inclics n.~orc.-or-lessintact. Laws round 1906. He last performed in 1907. ;incl w;rs t l ~ r ~L I lI I ~ ~ I ~ I ~ I I I ' ~ ~
were passed against the o f st~cli11111sic. ;is early as 1 6 1 9, but to a state institution in the June of that ye;tr. 'l'l~c.~-r Ilr. r l ~ r - t l , i r i

with little effect. Prlor coulc (loo r i ~ t .l I(.stampctd out on the 1031.
American mainlan d. It is I l l I1;it l)}1 1 8 3 5 t)lacks wc~ u l d This 'father' of jazz, hardly heroic o r inspiring in 11;s I I ~ I I ~ : ~ : I ~ ~ I ~ ,
gather in N e w O r leans t o s >(-I-I~ nrtti ;I CtS of voc~ d o o inc , lud- .icbcmsin many respects to have set the pattern for all 11i;tr ~ : I W w.10.1 1 I
ing the blood sacrifice oi .~ninr;ils.M ~ ~ s i r o l ~ ) ~and ; i s t shistorians are l and r e s ~ d tin. The music he had spawncd first . I ~ ~ ( - . ~ I I I I '
in n o doubt that ~ h cd r ~ ~r l~l ynt l ~ l l ~01'\ /\l'ric.:c were carried to :d, naturally enough, in the whorehouses of N c w I)I.II*;~II\.
America and were t l ~ t r ct r . ~ n u r ~ ~ i r.incl~ c i lII.:III:.I;II~LI into the style of lere it spread to the brothels of other cities, and thcnc~c.,c rvc.r,
music which hecnnic ~ I I I , W I ;I*; I j:~r?..S ~ I ~ L j;w%
, ( -: I I I ~ thc blues were trrnc, transferred t o the bars and dance halls.
the paren ts of rock i111~11011, tllis :IISO 1iir:111\t l l . i t tlic.rc. cxists a direct The first actual appearances of the printed word 'jazz' wcrc in
line b f dc ii t l ~ rvoocioo ~ ~ ' r r n i o n i(r) s I Ail it.;^, through jazz, 1 9 17. The Hearst newspapers of 2 1 January. 1917, co~itaincdI his
l 01' ~ I I Cotlicr forms ()l- 1.oc.k ~ ~ i l ~current
to rock allu 1 1 1 1 1 , l ~ ~ c,111 sic lltstice in the column of one Damon Runyan :
1~ o d a y .
T l ~ cI'i rsl clcl-initr documentation of thc. cxisrcncc o f the blues New York. Jan 20. - A Broadway cafe announces, as somerhing
comcbs only Sson~ early during this century, l1111 c%;crlytwentieth- new to the big Bright Asle, the importation from the West of a
cenrury blurs periormcrs mentioned the music :IS 11;Iving existed syncopated riot known as a J;4s R;lrld.
some dcc:ulcs e;~rlicr.The blues seem t o have hrrn I ~ r . r l o s ~ ~at i cleast
d
as early ;is thc 1;tttcr nineteenth century. Ensl;tvrtl pcrhaps even ( )n 5 August of the same year :in ;irt~clc~ p p e a r e dby Mralter K i n g l c y
more in cnnscious~.~ less than Iin body, the Negc 'Sometimes I I)f the New York Sun which wem\ to ~ndicatethat already the music
feel like a mor.l-~crl css child, a long ways frorr .nd 'Nobody 11.itl \pread and stirred up :in Intcrcst The artlcle was headlinrd

knows the troul7lr. I sccn'. Their songs of sac I melancholy 'M'l~c.ncecomes jass? Facts f r o m lhc great authority on the suhjc~.~',
merely served to rc.i~lfi)rcethe repressed and dcpl-crscd condition of continued:
i ~ ~ t l

their physical lives. M;iny Negroes, however, adl~crcdt o the giving


of spirituals, their own p;~rticularform of praisc to G o d , which can V,~riouslyspelled Jas, J;ls.;, Jasz, and J a s n . T h e word ic Alr i t ,111
still be heard today. RUCthe first blues singers took the lamenting III igin. It is commnn i ) n thc Gold Coast of Afric;i ;~nclr r b I llr
qualities of the spiritual and transferred them in1:o song! the subjects 1 1 1 1 1 1 cbrland of the C a p stle ...
of which were human lovers.
From a combination of the blues and ragtime, lazz was born. ' I ' l ~ i r u ~these
h are among tne nrst reports of jazz in 111~ I I I .I 11f. I l r r l h . l ~ I.,
Buddy Bolden is recognizcc1 as havir~g been a t least on e of the f ~rst, l( tw11 t o h . ~ v rbeen established in a number nf \ I : I ~ 111l r r l I I I ' 1 I I
I

and probably the first indivi dual to p lay the m usic that later cam e to 11.11:1I ~ I C, ~ n dthe blues had paved the way 1'1 11 I III-,.cl{*r.r.lr )1~~~~1:
c,

S?
- - -z zr.
--- =-= 5
'X. y

4 P Y
-- z - -
c L,
r 5,
2 0 - n
3 gg+-o
0 - 2
- . Z " T W
3 W * $

CD -,$D
a . qs
W. 3
S S Z
0
-. 3 2
E= Q*-g6 . - 2
2- E.?
L ?
5 - -,
-7;
-.; -" =
-
<T- - c
ij.
+ W
5. 5.
2 3. n z.
n T n
g* 2"-

4 :. -
. - - L.
. - -
S = -F.-- ?
- --- . - -
-- ; - - -
-
-- 5 5 z r .
.
- C
E -.
z . > .% c
1 3 2.
:3% tQs.
S.-Ds
- 3 2
' R.003 O 5
-- 2. 5. 2cl -j 2X
3 ,' C ?
?
'I
- 5- - b
z
W
m
ZN. g$ gq 1$-
m
8 003 7~
.d. %"c?%
2 3 5-1G
4
2 e m S E
,-p 3 9 2
f -
c z.
1
g r J n a
T- PI00
-
-
S?.?.
-.
- --. S
'= z .-D=
1'1 I 'I'HE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC JAZZ AND THE BI,UF,S 19 1
I l ~ 1.111
r 01' I000 girls in the last two years to jazz music. 1.cntral core of the repertoire pumped ovrr thr ;lirw;~vcstoday. Yet it
C ;ills i11 small
towns, as well as in the big cities, in poor homes ;l11 began decades ago. As is the casc ~od;ry,lorir~,g,;ir,cording to the
,11111 rich homes, are victims of the weird, insidious, neurotic music singers, seemed t o be only one half nf ;I n ; ~ t ~ ~ oscill;~iing
r:~ll~
I l l ; ~ taccompanies modern dancing ..." I l ~ other
c half of which was leating:

Writing a few years later, the composer, poet and esotericist, Cyril Leave you, 01' maid,
Scott, had this to say: gonna leave you, 01' maid.
Look out Ju-li', 01' maid,
After the dissemination of Jazz, which was definitely 'put look out Ju-li', 01' maid.
through' by the Dark Forces, a very marked decline in sexual
morals became noticeable. Whereas at one time women were Or, if the protagonist of the song decidrd t o sl;ly, 111. 111.vr.1
I ll~.lt.-,\
content with decorous flirtations, a vast number of them are now clid so under his own conditions:
constantly ~ r e o c c u ~ i ewith d the search for erotic adventures, and
have thus turned sexual passion into a species of hobby. Now, it I'm gonna buy me a bulldog, watch you whilc you slrc.1,.
is just this over-emphasis of the scx-nature, this wrong attitude (I said I'm gonna buy me a bulldog, watch you whilc yc ) I I \ l r . r , l l )
towards it, for which Jazz-music has hccn responsible. The Just to keep those men from making their early mornin' c1.c.r.p.
orgiastic element of its syncopated rllyti~rn,entirely divorced
from any more cx;tllcrl rlnlsic;~l contcnr, l)roduccd a hyper- More sinister themes were also common. But few spe~i.tli7(.tI111
excitement of thc ncarvc*\, I I I L ~ Ioc~sc~ic~cl I hc powers of self-control. rhcm more than Robert Johnson, the 'King of the Dcltn I3l11t.\'.
It gave rise to ;I r~xllil;ar;~tion,
f , t l z c b ;I l'it~cirior~sendurance, an Ilorn in 1914, Johnson's lyrics dealt with, as Frank Tirro ~ I I I , i l ,
insatiability rrsull ill!: i l l ,I tlrlr~rrious v/otirl :111tl I~liysical
reaction. 'rhree recurring themes: the impermanence of human relation\hlp.;.
Whereas the o l t l I;~zliionrrl nirlodior~sil:~r~rr-rn~~sic. inspired the incessant wandering, and irrational terrors. His blur5 :ire 4 ~ 1 1
gentler scntinir~ir:;,];lzx, with its ;irr;ly #)l' 11:11~11, car-splitting rl~roughwith dark foreboding . . ."l One Johnson song, 'MCand t l i v
percussio~~-i~l:.~~~~~ll~c.llts i~~ll;i~ni*d,inioxicn~ccl:tnrl I>nrt;ilized,thus I lCvil Blues' has thew typical lyrics:
causing ;i srr-1);tc.k i l l Man's nature towards 111r instincts of his
racial chil Jlic )c )cl. For Jazz-music at its lirigllr very closely Early this morning when you knocked upon my door
rcscmhlril thr music of primitive savages. A i111~1llc.r result of it Early this morning when you knocked upon my door
was to hr seen in that love of sensationalism wliich I~asso greatly And I said, 'Hello Satan. I belirvc it's time t o go.'
incrrnsctl. As ,l;r/:/. itself was markedly sensation;tl, IIIC public has
incrr;tsingly come to demand 'thrills' in tllc form of 'crook M e and the devil was walking sidc by side
dram;ts' ;lncl I)l;tys, the only dramatic intcrtqt of which is con- Me and the devil was willking sidc by side
nected wit11 c r i ~ ~mystery
~c, and brutality. This nlso itpplies to sen- And I'm going to beat my wom;tn until I get satisfied.
sational fiction: f;)rthe sale and output of this typc is prodigious.' . . . You may bury my bocly clown by the highwayside,
So my old evil spirit can gcr Greyhound bus and ride.
'MYDADDY ROCKS ME WITH ONE STEADY ROLL'
(- THE LYRICAL CONTENT OF THE BLUES) ~ O I ~ in 1938 or 1039. having been either poisc,nr.tl I,y I
I ~ ) I I I ~ ~ died
The perverse elements 01' ihc musical tones of j a n had their parallel wcIlll,ln or shot by her icnlous husband. (Nobody i4 I I I I I I ~ . d a ~ ~ ~ r .
in the lyrics of the majority of Idues songs. For one thing. the subject wl~ic11
matter and direction of consc.iousness contained within the blues ( )!I most common subjects was sexual dc-si~c. I ) I I V I I I I I I V
was as a rule of a low and suffocatingly narrow-minded nature. The -.III!:('I\ ~cllosynuaticturns of phrase, howevcr, rllr .I{ 111.11 1 1 1 1 . . 1 1 1 1 1 1 ~ ~ ~ .
theme of human love in its il~l~erfect aspects - betrayal, mistrust, ,!I 111r ~ e n t l ynot realized by 111c. W I I I I r will r I I ~ . . I It l
physical love devoid of the higher feelings, and so on - is still the 1111-111. laws had found it n~tr\t.1~1~~.1111.1~~~~1111~. 1 1 1 111.
-=g
gC!-: O - ! U
3
" t?*c
" c-.
%-<m
2 Q2
g % W
!3* -. -
2 %* 5
F. E g
R
' 5'09.

U F3--2
.
"2 g
e
U 5' -.
m
Y B y
-.
V
--
c -
- ------
.- -
= Y
-
---- - ..
- -.
> - -. L
m -.
- - F

+
-. *.-+ --c
F6
3. E
m-cD

:
-- -S-. -= S =% Sa W;c Rg
T i C a 3 g
2 wm gm'C1g.qy
2.-
-5 g. 00.. W
+I2 5: 2 %g
< n 3 c r = r t t
2 0 Q.3 C D "

z 0 ,
r- E.2
'. an2 s z,K:"*
-. CD. 0%
C w
%P$&%.$,g.
5 . ? ~ nZ. %~ ,e g
E ?<
7 2
-.h
d & 7
--c e- - CL -&.T
- . - . S c. '
: =.a J
4
5 5
2 j.
-, : : g " ?E *
O r -
o ChF r w O 0%
&g
%, WT T
g" 3.
W;: 2 -$ 3 2
3 0 -!
2 . c 303 ? CD-.
3 go" a -2 $
o - ' C 3 g N " 0
B P-Ci ,a 5 .
3
.sg-zg 2 2
9 a 0 ~2 o~
r, m C: f",m - g
Fro t w . 5r ,
5s2."&Frn
7 2.g v .2?
I -l1\ '1'1 I l i SECRET POWER OF MUSIC JAZZ AND 'I'I-I 1' H I , I I I

I 111 11,1111 $11 I I I I \ I ) l I l ~ cRoosevelt era. This period of jazz is remarkably h1011s;~rrat
therefore points our I Ii;11 i l
, 111111.11
111 hysteria to the phenomena associated with the
;IS I I I ~ S S

I , 11 I,. 111 I I I C ' ~ O S '70s


, and '80s: . . . is precisely at this poinl rll:cl 1 0 , k ' 1 1 1011 ,11111 11111(~11oi 1 1 i c b

rl~odernmusic becomes pntct~ti.1 l l v t l . r ~ ~ ~ :I ,H-I ~- , ' I ' I I I ~ , 1.. 1 > ~ C ; I I I . ; ~ .10.


)l.c,hcstras became as keenly supported as football teams, and 111;tintaina sense of well-bcing , 1 1 1 ~ 1 11111*!11.;11i 0 1 1 , 1 1 I * . I " ; ? ~ .i I, ~~lII11.11
ll~cirindividual stars as admircd as boxing champions. Audiences tli;in is not subjected too nirlcl~1 0 ; I I I I~ l l v l I I I I I , . 1 1 1 11 I I I .I(.(ortl ~ l i l l l
were numbered in thousands, Hollywood beckoned t o the more l~isnatural bodily rhyhtns. '.'
successful bandleaders, magazines conducted annual popularity
polls evoking response from people all over America. Police had \ V i ~ h the coming of ja7.~, l x ~ l s : ~ t i:cr~tl c ~ ~ ~\ ~ T I I . I D \ L I I I I I I I I ~ I Y ; I I I I [ .
sometimes to be called out to control adoring crowds, and the Ivonounced in music as ncvcr I>rt;)t-c.S ~ I I L , ~I ' IV ~ J . I I I l ~ r . . t ~t ,.lit
I 111.1,

I * I \ the off-beat in 414 timc. I t is a dc.lihrl.;~lr r + 01.


, 1 1 1 r 1 1 1 1 1 1 r , t l ~ l ~ 11.11.1
profits soared into five figures, then six, then seven. Jazz now
enjoyed the prestige of its first millionaires .. . I I I I . musician t o disrupt the evcn cliaractcr. I )I- I l i \ ~ , l 1 ~1 1 1y1 1 '1'111.1.111.1.1
Although Louis Armstrong had by now succumbed to the (11 j;lzz syncopation is primarily sexual : r hC hr;rl v ) 1 1 1 r I 1 ( , W I 1rC.111
fleshpots of Hollywood, and his influence as a developing ivir h the rhythm of sexualit) In maln and wo n1;Il~.I l l l I . 1 1 . 1 1 I l . 1 r l 1 1 , l .
' .I(

musician was on the wanc, his effectiveness as a player remained ~r.lr.ntlesspulsation also has a similar effrct. Wl11.n ~ I I ~ ~ , . I I I I I .I1I1 i ~ 1
cnormous. l 9 .&yncopationarc the rhythmic foundations of the lnu.;ic . I I . I (1.111,
II;III, the movements of the dancers can invariably he src.rl t o I)rt r,lnc-
THE EFFECTS OF THE MUSIC vvry sensual and oriented around the loins. Such r l ~ ~ l l ~ .lI (nI zI I . I I I ~
Jazz had now arrived in carncst. Its ;~tihcrcntswere sufficiently dc- \~osscssthe capacity to force the subtle energica I I 1111tl~
, l 1 lwnward into this rcgion of the anatomy, thereforc incrc.;~~in!: I II(.
sensitized to be unaware and ignorant c-jf its continuing effect upon
them. But to the sensitized mind thc h;irsli rhythms of jazz were n*r~~pouring into the bloodstream of sexual hormones.
brutalizing to the consciousness. O n t h c physic;~llcvcl the rhythms Once such biochemical and more subtle forces havc hecome- con.
of jazz, like their parcnt sounds of Afiic:~, literally forced the 1 rr~tratedin the loins, they must find some manner of expression.
listeners to d o something rhythmic with their linlhs. The faster the 'l'l~is may comc through sexual activity shortly afterwards; or
trmpo, the more the emotional tension creatrd. /Is for meter, Alice ~ l ~ l ~ ) ua gmore h general tendcncy during everyday life and during
Monsarrat has commented that : I I ~ (cnsuing. days for thc pcrson to lack control ovcr the sexual
1111~~1lscs. I t is not unknown for rhosc who are the chief produccrs OI
The normal easy meter . .. like that of a w:t117, is 1-2-3, 1-2-3, I llc.sc rhythms, the dntmrr modern music, to actually h a v ~
or a fox trot 1-2-3-4. 1-2-3-4. But with 111c advent of the 11111sic-induced orgasms aftc 11 hours c)f non-Stop drumming."'
twcnticth century, the mcters began to gallop I>rokenlystirrup to I 'I 1cl;ly's drummer differs 13 Iron1 tht shaman in his incessant
a

stirr~ipwith harmonic dissonance and discc~rdi l l the melodic line I~i~:tting out of a rhythm. ;iritl likc,wisc often enters into a form cot'
... the nittcr began t o appcar sorncll~ing likc this: I I-.I llcr while performing.

1 & 2 & 3 4 1 & 2 & 3 4 ... fi:~slierin this book we c o ~ ~ ~ ~ r ~onc ~music i t c das a communic;~~os
A broken metcr in the trcble, played ovcr :In insistently regular .I I 1, I nlultiplier of states of cr ll~xcio~~sness. These comments tI1rt rw
beat in the left h;ind. with gradually increasing rapidity almost to ~ r r ~ ~ . ~ i ~ l t .significance l-;~ble L I ~ O I I 11ic rise of virtuosoship a n d 01 . I l r

the point of frcnzy . . . is capablc of producing the identical disin- 1 1 1 1 1 r - . ~ \ c . ~ l degree of solo-irnp~x)visationin jazz. From tilt. l 'j,'o*.

tegrating and almost l ~ ~ s t e r i ceffect


al on an ~ r ~ a n i s m . ' ~ ~ I I I W , I I . I ~iazz .; audiences, whcrl~c*rin bars or by the sidc o r . I I-(.II ) I $ 1
111.1 V I - S . Mrerc exF)osed to : :act and insistent r c n ~ li ic ~1 7 1 I I I I l ~ r
M a n is, of course, essenti~lly a rhythmical being. Respiration, 1 1 1 1 1 1 ~< , I , I I[ c of th e perform ,ver bdore. T h e IoII!;, ~ I I I ~ 8 JI I V I ~ l. ~ ~

..I 1 1 1 1 I > I - ( " ; ~ I I C C U a highly prcclbr auil detailed strcam 01' 1 I i l l L , l 1 1 I I I ~ . I I I . ~ . ~ .


..l
heartbeat, speech, gait and so forth: all form a part of the unified set
of rhythms, great and small, which is man. Even the cerebral I ) I . I I ~:LII~ Ihigher I~ laws of art 01 of submissi11111 1 1 , I III,I:II,.I
A \,V111
hemisphcres are in a constant state of rhythmical activity. Alice I ~ I , I I I Ilis own self-will, tl1c jazz sc)loist roamctl :I\ 1 1 1 c ' ' l 1 1 1 ~ r a l ' I I I ~ I ~ , .
$1ILI 'I'HE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC JAZZ AND THE BLUES 201
1 1 1 1 11 I 111 I ) I I , ~ I ILIIC fog-bound and sociologically-treacherous valleys of clrstined to result in the rock revolution. The most significant of
I I I ~ . ~l l .o Il yI I;tnd ~ anarchy. T o the sensitized mind, every such solo - tllrse was the popularization of American country music. By retain-
I-
L ~ I I ~ I I I I Irxception displays one or more of the following undesir- I I I ~only ; the more decadent subject matter of' country music, and by
.I 1111.traits : sensuality, physical over-excitement, despair, human I~~aing this with the more racy, blitck-stylr o f 171.;11,i.oilntry niusic
~l~oodiness, lethargy, selfishness, narrow-mindedness, mental disin- I,c.c;tme country-boogie, which in turn led I ( ) rock:il )illy.
lrgr;ition, pride, egocentricity, self-assertion and rebellion. That I)opularized country music's most p r o ~ n i ~ ~c.xl)onznt
r-~ll wits I-l;tnk
some will consider the list controversial is in itself symbolic of the Williams. The tonal side of Willianis' ~ ~ i u s w.ts i c rrl;~tivc-l~ siinplc
sad dilemma which the music poses to our society. For to the . ~ n drelaxed, yet his lyrics oncc more rrllec~ctlr l ~ : i l s,lrllr rllorr;tl,
unspoiled and pristine mind, the truth of the list will be self-evident; ~v.ssimisticoutlook that we have alrc.ady ~~nc~or~nrr.r.c-~l, ;l1111 wl~icll
yet the individual who has succumbed to this music will already w;~ssoon to take root in rock. S o farni1i;tr ;trr wc. t o t l . ~ y will1 rlic-
have forsaken, though he will know it not, his capacity to view the I liuessant playing in the background of s o n p ;tlx jut c~~,yi~lg, t lvsc II;I -
issue objectively. I ion, betrayal and loneliness that it is almost difl'it.ult 10rc ti)c.~is c IIII.
I'crspective into a more objective viewpoint. Yet only I'rolti sllc 11 ,I
OFFSPRINGS OF THE JAZZ RHYTHM:INTO THE ERA viewpoint can it be realized that the communicatiorl OS suc.11s~;~tc.s OS
OF PROTO-ROCK I onsciousness to millions of young listeners must withorrt ilo\ll)~I)(.
O n the commercial front the music now rc;tched a stage which, in I I ) the detriment of future society.
retrospect, can be seen to have becn thc btcpping-stone between Among Williams' hits were 'I'm So Lonesomc 1 Co111i1(
black music and the rock; and roll vas to come. This stage ' I<;lrnblingMan', 'Cold Cold Heart', 'Take These Chains ];I.( I I I I M y
was the flourishing of 1rhythm :I ;, :i music form which I lrart' and 'Weary Blues'. But the string of hits was not 1 1 )
resulted from largely econlornic cou I I I order to be audible in c lmtinue. Almost as though the Power which guides the dcsli~iy01
clubs and bars, the blucs singers hnil 1,c.c-n j;l)i~r!: clcctric, amplifying Ill;in had a symbolic message to communicate to us all, Willi;~tr~\
their music; while the decline in thc 1 7 0 1 1 u l , ~i r ~y 01' I;trgc 'swing' jazz 11c-vcrreached the age of 30. O n 1 January, 195 3, he died of ;l hr;~rr
bands had forced them to reduce thcinsclvrs i l l .;i;l.c. Rhythm and ,111;tckin the back of his chauffeur-driven Cadillac. His Istcs~
'
blues emergcd as a hybrid of the two.' At f'irsr c ~ r l l I>lackslistened N ~ ~ m b e1r hit was still in the charts: 'I'll Never Get Out of 'I'his
to it. It became their most popular forni of rrilrsic. Again the World Alive'.
subject matter was infidelity, perversion, drink ; i l l c l c.rime; again the 'l'he scene, however, was now set.
mood was one of bewildcrrnent and deprrssion; itgain the tones Combining the rhythmic structures of rhythm and blues with
were dissonant. and sometimes of a quite frcnxic*tl1(.111po. c.lrn~entsof country and western music, Bill Haley and the Comets
The new genre brought forth its own stars: (ol~nnyOtis, Nat wrrr the first t o realize the enornmous tonal power and commercial
King Cole, Julia Lee, B. B. King and innurnrr;ll)l'c.o ~ l ~ c rJulia s . Lee lu)s~ibilitiesof what was to l~cconirknown as rock 'n' roll. 'Rock
'sang salacious blues in sleezy gin mills', whilc CI'yl~onicHarris was /\l,~jund the Clock' was rrlc;~.;rJ in 1 9 j 4 , and soon becamc.
'a lord of exccss' who 'lived a life of complete nl;lylic~n... shouting 111c orporated into the film B1trrkhoat.d Jungle (which dealt with thr
the blues with a wild and hard-driving bo;lsll~llness'. Muddy ..~~l)ic.r.tof juvenile delinqi~cncy). The song went on to sell ovc.~.2 0
Waters, the Chic.ago bluesman, and John Lrr I looker of Detroit r 1 1 1 l l l c 1 1 1 discs. The rest is 11is1o1.y.

(one is remindcd of thc ancient concept of t l ~ cname bring the


keynote of the i1111c.rm;in . . . !) each 'cut omino\~sfigures onstage, '1'1 11; MODERN ERA
full of menace and prowling malevolence'. Crcil Grant, who came J.I>.I.I I I i l ~ emeantime, dicl not attempt to compere wirll r l ~ r . * b t ~ l I r I t , t l
from Nashville, went ovcr thc airwaves with a sex message still not I ~ ~ I I I . I I , ~ I of the new rock music. O n the cnntr:iry , I 11r ! p t . ~ ~ ~ 1

comprehended by the wllitc broadcasters when he made the 1 9 5 0 I I . I I ( . . I I I ' ~ ~ increasingly into a stance of ultrn-in~l.llr-~ I I I . I ~ I111 11141

hit 'We're Gonna Rock' ( p r o ~ n ~ ttol ydie a few months later)." r q.t!:,:~-~..~ccd introspection which was by no mc;lllq.I I I ~ . ~ . III I I I II I 14 1 111

Gradually. rhythm and blues began finding a white market. '11c.w I I I I I < ~ C . ' of 1 1 1 ~'~rrious'musical stream. I ; I I I I I I t l ~ i 1 1 , 1 0 1 1 1 1 1
(\

Simultaneously, several other strands came together which were I I I V I I I . I I I . I ~ . I ~1loll-ic1r;ilist


ISI. ;llldirn~('~,1 1 1 ~ 11111- 111 I 111 1111
. l ~ ~ . l THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC JAZZ A N D THE H1,lJES
1111 rll C-i~tu:tliz:~tion of jazz as introduced by Miles Davis and others I ~ r ~ ~ ~ , ~will t ~ , be
i r i if
i ) thc
~ i prcscSntschool of 'hor j:~x./'continucs to
w.15; I I I intriguing one. Yet from the higher perspective, the resultant 4 It.\1r.lol~w;~bated.Much of it is cr;Iss, r;nlcorls :tticI ~ o n ~ ~ ~ i o n ~ l ; i c c
I I I I I S ~ was
C really no less questionable than its predecessors. ~ t t t l to11Ic1 be dismissed without comment if' i t wcrr not f'r~rthe
Since this was now 'jazz for the thinking man' so t o speak, the 1 . 1 1 I i o whcreby, hour aftcr hour, night ;~f'trri~i~:ht, Arncrican
opportunities for cross-fertilization between jazz and other Iblrtnr.; :trc flooded with vast qu;bn~itirsof tl~is~l~.~ti*ri;il, to which
materialistically intellectualized genres were broader. Many of the . I I tl,~np;~niment our youngsters dilncr, pl:~y i t 1 1 it 111ly.
new jazz musicians had at least a working familiarity with the I'~.r.ll;l~>s they have developcrt ; ~ nimmunity t o it-+ l711t if
theories and sounds of the 'new music'. And for their part, the con- I I I ~ .li;~vc
~ not, and if the niass production of this .111r,1l t l r . ~ ~ jis: Ilot
temporary avant-garde became y a more interested in the musical i111.1.tilc~1, WC may find ourselves :I n;~rinno I ' n c . ~ l ~ ow~ li t~~ 11i ~~c.vc.11
elements of jazz. Later, during the late sixties and early seventies, 1111. >kill of the psychiatrist may br h;~rd prrsscd I O( ~ ~ r c . . " '
when rock also reached a stage of 'intellectualization', a similar
cross-fertilization became apparent between jazz and rock. ,\a. with our comparison of the 'ne~ W music' 1h r i t l ~r l ~ c11 11, irnl

Jazz itself, however, was to discover that increased introspection ( :IIIII:I. ;L comparison between jaz z and the classit,;~l Il~tli;~

meant a decreased market. As had earlier been the case among the I , vi-;~ls the same totally opposite natures ar~d spiritu. ) I l h 01'

'new musicians', the more intellectual jazz artists had trouble in com- 111,-two. Should it be the case that music has no effect 11pi1r1I I I , I I I .
bining their subjectivity with an objective perspective of what was (I11.nrl~ilsicof the downward direction would be all wc-ll ;ultl gootl -
or was not valid as art. Soon enough, jazz arrived at its 'modern' 1 1 1 1 1 our discourse thus far seems t o indicate strongly th;~tthis is I I I ~ I
. . '
stage. Now, jus e casc of a few un planned s,plashes of paint I 1 1 1 - c.;tse.
on a canvas, ar n l ) u u of a saxophone or Iodd whine of a What is more, the statements of the wise of long ago rcg;~riling
trumpet was in y scourcd for its meaning by an avid but 111,.;tl)ility of music to influence life patterns was only a part nf their
dwindling body o r c~evotccs,then invariably to be hailed as an 111.licfabout the power of music. Music and sound, they statrd,
expression of genius. Thc saxophonist, Ornette Coleman, I or~ld also affect matter itself. Audible sound, as an earthly vessel for
proclaimed his tl~c~ory t.l~;~t
the performer should be free to create any III(. universal OM, wielded a great energy. An energy which, accor-
sound at ;my ,t:ivc.l~tinic, and went on to perform accordingly, as I I I I I ~ to the kind of music played, could create, preserve or destroy
was only tiio r v i d e l ~from ~ the result. As Bcnny Green, the writer on 1.vc.n material, inanimate conditions. It is a long-standing belief of
ja72, aptly p111i t : 'Colcman's dialectics would be more to the point if 111resoteric schools that in the distant past there once existed former
hc ancl his fi)llowcrs were each satisfied t o play alone in a room.'19 .iJvanced civilizations not dissimilar to our own, but which are lost
Wc 1i;tvr not(d in earlier chapters that the ancients sought to 1 0 historical record. These are sitid to Elave been destroyed by
trcxcl ; I I I , I I I i < , path which combined elements of individual
is-I I'l~ysicalcataclysms which were c: u~sed,in e,ach case, largely through
frccdom with c.crt:iil~definite restraints. Plato was only one of the tllc continued misuse of sound ; ~ nI rrhythm. Is there any truth behind
carliesr ol' III(. 1n:irly commentators who havc pointed out, down huch beliefs, and does music acto;tlly contain such a power t o affect
through thc ccnc~~ric-S, that the only freedom which is aesthetically matter? If so, then the phcni)mcna of jazz, rock, and other such
viable in ;irt is ;I I'rccdom married to self-discipline. Otherwise musics - including, perhaps, thr vrry allowance of their presence in
freedom beconlrs :I recipe for anarchy. And it is in search of ever- o i ~ rniidst - would most urgently necd to be looked at afresh.
greater excesses OS tllc I:~ttcrthat most jazz musicians have directed
themselves over thc I;~sttl~irtyyears. ABOUT ROCK
The author is strongly rcrninded of an essay on music therapy In this book we have touchrd upon rock here and therc olily 111
written by Howard I l ;~llsonin the 1940s, in which Hanson passing, one reason being that the subject of this m~~sic . t l ~ t l 11%.
displayed an acute prophetic insight into what the music he heard wcietary effects is so vast as would require a volunir in it\c.ll. I I I
around him would mean for tllc future. Hanson wrote. ,~ddition.it has been useful to deal with j a u sincc ~ ; I w . . I 1).\1i-111 ( 1 1
rock. displays its voodoo origins more blatentlv: ,111011 11r.i.11
... of what the effect of musi~c upon the
11.16,

I hesitate to think next 11scfu1to discuss the 'new music' since its prola)nc.lit6.. I , v w~ll~tl!:
.'Ib.1 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC
. I I I J.~l)lcto their inner philosophies and aesthetic stand-
more (:learly and intellectually than can the average rock
) i l l [S

.irtist . Yet sufj6ce it to say that all that we have commented on the
new music' or on jazz is at least doubly true of all rock music.
I
ROCK, properly understood, is music warfare waged upon an
unsuspecting society by guitar-gunners who are frequently fdly
aware of what they are about.
More than any other form of the misuse of sound, ~t is rock with
which we must deal today. There is no question but that rock is 6.
intimately related t o the kind of state of consciousness found in vast Assessment :
numbers of young people - young people who are to be the Tllr Physics of the OM
'mature' adults of the future world. Rock has unquestionably
rcJ[i\Urahman, with whom was rbr Worrl. ,.In'/ tkt
[h(,bcginnit~~~
affected the philosophy and lifestyle of millions. It is a global
phenomenon; a pounding, pounding, destructive beat which is heard
~I'IJ)Y/is Brahm~itl.- Vedas
from America and Western Europe to Africa and Asia. Its effect It/ beginnit% I C I ~ I J the Word, and the W o r d was with God, rlnrl
upon the soul is to make nigh-impossible the true inner silence and rhr Word was God. - Gospel according to St John.
peace necessary for the contemplation of eternal verities. Its 'fans'
are addicted, though they know it not, to the 'feelgood', \.l 111rreligions of East and West so strikingly agree: in the hegin~iin~;
. ,-
egocentricity-enhancing, para-hypnotlc ei fects of its insistent beat. l+ I,,rlic Word. But exactly what was - or, to use the Prcsetz~tvnrc of
H o w necessary it is in this age for some to have the courage to be the 1 1 1 1 . Vt+dicquotation, is - the Word? The above scriptures dcscribc i~

ones who are 'different', and to. > c ~ L ~ Lthemselves


"
-
".
.
*+
c
< out from the I , , I I ~ - I I I R a part of God, or Brahman. Further, the quotation from thc.

pack who long ago sold their lives and personalities to this sound i 11".11ing of the gospel of St John continues, pregnant with meaning:
and the anti-Aquarian culture which has sprung up around it !
I adamantly bclieve that rock in all of its forms is a critical 'I'll(* same (the Word) was in the beginning with God. A
ll things
problenl which our civilization must get to grips with in some wcrc made by him; and without him was not any thing made
gcnuincly ciScctive way, and without delay, it if wishes long to I 11:1t was made.

survivr.
\t'r have, in these famous, deeply mystical lines from St John, then,
y5.r :inother example of thc universal ancient belief that God, or a
Note
Illvine Being, created the univcrsr, and did so by means of a
"Thc u\i. of vcilcd lyrics so that only certain sectors of society and v~l)r;ctoryemanation. This sacred vihration is usually referred to in
not others ~ c . , i l iwhat
~ the songs are about, is also a widespread I - . l l , l y Christian texts as the Word ([his meaning of the term having
practicc in rr~oclcrnrock. In rock music both clrug and sexual sym- I1r.r.n forgotten or overlooked I)y most Christians today). In
bolism arc ircqucntly to be heard. I l~riduismthe divine vibration is. ;is we have seen, more usually
irl;.rrccl to as OM. Neverthclcss, the W o r d and the OM are onc
.11nd thc same thing. Morcovc.~,a great variety of other tcrnm
,.~c.rntningfrom the different cultures of ancient times also rcfrr ro
I llis same universal, eternal phenomenon. Cosmic Sound, in fi~crtl
nairll the essence of Consciousness, has been known v;~ricr~~sly
A l l M, A M N , A M E N , AMEEN, O M E N , OMON. 1 A M. l l l l .
l1AHUVAH, the Logos, the Lost Word, and by o111r1-rl;rmi-;
Ilc.\idcs.
'I I(, THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE PHYSICS OF THE OM 207

I I I I H I I ' previous 'assessment' chapter, 'Mlusic, M a n and Society1, 'Thus let it be done! Let the emptiness bc fillcd! Lct tllr w;ttrr
W r 111, ~ k c dat one half of the ancients' claims regarding the power of recede and make a void, let the carth' ;11yxb;ir;incl olitl;
11111sic. - that music affects physical health, character, and society at Ict it be done. Thus they spokc ... Thcn tlic c;trth v ad I l y
I;trgc - and found that the ancients' claims seemed fully justified. hem. So it was, in truth, that the,y crc;~tccl
I tllr c.;~rtl t hey
Yet the power of music and of sound extended a!so to inanimate said, and instantly it was madc.
matter. I n fact, the OM was the origin and cause of all matter in the
universe. Granted, the concept of the OM seems far removed from ( )f the creation of the first human beings wr. .II.I- I , b l t l I 11.11. " l ' l ~ t . ~
our everyday life and experience; and at first sight it appears t o bear ..
wrre not born of woman . Only hy n ~iiir:~' It-, l)y I I I ~ + . I I I \ 01
no relation whatever to what modern science has to tell us about the 111c;intationwere they created and rnitdr hy 11ir (:rr.~rol.,111t. M . I ~ c I ,
origin and nature of matter. But is this really the casei Perhaps we I llc Forefathers, Tepeu and Gucumatz.'
need to examine the subject of the OM in more detail.
'AND GOD SAID ...'
OM AND THE U N I T Y OF CREATIOFr7 MYTHS ( ) i ~very
r familiarity with the account of the Crr;ction p r t - q i . w1lI1i11
~~~
~ l l cdominant religion of our own culture can blind us t o I llr I ~ . I I I I , I
Music is the harmonious voice ol+" r-""r+;ca..m r r v r r ; an echo a t h e invisible lion that in Genesis too the Creation is manifcsrcd II~I.OII,:II 1111.
world; one note of a divine concord which the entire universe is .~gcncyof sound. G o d is describcd as accomplishing c;ic.h \ I I , L c.sa.ivc-
destined one day to sound. - Mazzini Ijliase of the Creation with h k spoken words. The zc~ordiI ~ ) ~ ~ N I U ~ I V , \
m m to enact the Creation:
O f one thing
" we can be certain from the outsct. The idea of a divine
vibration being behind the cause nf rvcrything was no arbitrary,
And God said. Let there be light: and there was light.
idiosyncratic concept of only onc peoplc. Tllc same theory of
cosmogenesis is discovered in pre-rnodcrn ctllt~trcswith surprising
. .. And God said, Let the waters under the hcavrn I)(.
gathered together unto one place, and let the dry land appcxr:
regularity. Often the idea is clothed in tlic rr;ippings of over- and it was so.
simplification or of superstition; but alwitys r11r. basic similarity
remains. Sometimes reference is to the pr11rr;il creation of all
.. . And God said. Let the earth bring forth grass, the herb
yielding seed, and the frult-trce yielding fruit after his k ~ n d ,
substance and all life by the One Sound. At o1l1r.r times there are
whose seed is in itself, lipon the carth: and it was so.
more precise references to the creator-god fornii~~!;cach object and
each living creature by means of a succession oC tlivc.rsified 'words'.
I I I the same manner, according t o G cnesls, W ere created heaven and
The Surnerians believed the gods to havc crc;ucd the universe
c;trth, thje sun, the moon and the st ara, fish, fowl and every living
with their 'mighty, commands'. Similarly, life ancl rn:tttcr was created
c7-eature. God is not described ;IS creating these with his silent
through a sacred word or words spoken by thc f'irst god or gods in rhoughts or desires alone; ncithn ~lncshc fashion the universe with
the myths of the Hebrews, the Celts, the Chintsr, the Egyptians, rnighty hands from on high. Nf), hr .I/JCLZ~.T, describing what should
the American Indians and the Quechua May;i. Ilcscribed in more ~~i;irlif~~st, and manifest it dncs. 'l'lic-rc seems t o be a strong hint to 11s
analytical tcrms, the same idea appears again in the Pythagorean hcse t h ~ the t text contains ;I ~lrrpcrand more than merely littr:~l
concept of the Harmony of the Spheres. which concept retained ~licaning.
considerable influence through the earIy Christian and Medieval Indr.cJ, much of Gencsis miist :n allegorically r n I I(.
eras. (Though first taught in Greece by Pythasoras, the concept of correctly understood. T h c written w v l u l l l g of the accoun~ (..I 11 IN.
the Harmony of the Spheres seems to have stemmed originally from
1.I merely a means of - renclerin g the process and thc. .let r 11 I 11,.
Pythagoras' own many years of travel and discipleship in Egypt and C intelligib~ l et o thc reader. P,ut the essential in!:rl.t l;r.rlt 1 1 1 I I i r
other Middle Eastern regions.) :- -L..- -1
r ~ lr r l a i v,' the use
. ~ ~ - c . o t t I>
-L so11lr form of s o u n d - r ~ n . ~ lI I~I ~, I ~ I I~ ~ ~ ~ l ~
In the Popol-Vuh, containing the crc counts o~f the Ilighcr dimensions of reality, these sounds hein!: r.c-l(.lI 111 \ f ~ ~ i
Quechua Maya, the gods Tepeu and Gucu m the ear-th by
1 1 1 )lirnlly as words of a mortal language.
their commands :
THE PHYSICS OF THE OM 209
.'OM THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC
( :l~r.ist.The early Church Father, Hippolyl IIS, s1:tr c-d I l l ; ~ tMarcus
'I'llere can be no doubt but that, much as the contemporary funda-
I rt rivcd the revelation that:
rurnt;~listChristian would like to believe the Creation account of
(.;enesis to be a simple, literal record of events, this is not in fact the
case. Only from the fifth century AD did the Creation stories of
..
11ir seven heavens . sounded ( ~ ; I c . ~ IO I I I . v ~ ~ w r lwl~ic,l~,
, all
combined together, formed a complctc C I O X O I I I ! ~ ~ . . . 1 1 1 ~ .,YOIINI/
Genesis begin t o be taken as literal historical records; this occurring
whereof being carried down to c;~rrIi.I~rc,;~nir l l ~ rI rr;lle)r, ;III(I
as knowledge of the ancient wisdom within the Christian movement
parent of all things that be on earth.
deteriorated or was forced underground. Before this, we find
Gregory of Nyssa (c. ~ ~ 3 9 describing 0 ) the Genesis Creation as
'Illc philosophy of the early Christilins w.ll- 111 nr,lrI y w,~y.;
'ideas in the form of a story'. The other prominent churchmen of the
~r ~tlistinguishablefrom the ancient wisdom I c~.~c.liiri/:s$11 c 11 II(.I I.~r~tlr.
time also accepted the Creation stories as being allegorical.
111 fact, Pistis Sophia, a Gnostic gospel :uid .In r:lrl~c.rwor h t II.III I 11c
The book is known to be a conglomeration of a number of
Ilook of Revelation, reveals Jesus himself' ;I> Ir;lvinK t 1 1 1 ~ 1 1 1 i o i 1 c111c-
~l
allegorical Creation stories which themselves were derived at least in
vven major Tones, and also the seven sub.ronrs 0 1 c;~i.l~ I llc. se.vc-ll
part from the Middle and Near East. Other writings which have
11i;ljorTones :
survived from these regions also hint at a general knowledge among
the mystics and priests that the Creation was linked with a form of
utterance or sound. The Hindu conccpt of the OM we have already
Do ye seek after the mysteries? N o mystery is niorc rnc.c-llt-l~~ ...
saving only T H E MYSTERY of the seven 1~01~~cl.t ttnr/ /l)rir
looked at. In the BabyIonian account of the Creation, the original
FORTY AND N I N E POWERS, and their numhcr I ~ I V I .;C O ~
state of the universe, hrforr nutter had been pulled together and
and no name is more excellent than all these vowels [text's i1;llic.s l.
solidified, is, as in Genesis, rcfcrrcd to as 'waters', or as an 'ocean'.
A name wherein bc contained all names, all Lights, sntl ;LII
(In all the Creation ~nytlisof antiquity, the concept of primeval
powers, knowing it, if a man quit this body of matter no srnokc,
waters preceding thr formation of the earth can be taken as
no darkness, nor Ruler of the Sphere, or of Fate shall be ablc rcr
references to ;L I ) r i ~ ~ ~ rtlux-like,
~ ; l I , pre-solidified state of matter.) The
earth, we arc old. still bore no name, and did not exist 'when no
hold back the soul that knoweth that namc ...
If he shall L I ~ I C I .
name had I~ccrln;lrrlcd'. The Creation only came forth when it was
that unto the fire, the darkness shall flee away .. .
'called into Iwing'."
EGYPTIAN GENESIS
From rl~cc.osmology of the Jews, in Psalm 19 we read the
'I'urning to Egypt, we discover a science of mysticism and a
follow in^ hc;~utifiill~ poetic lines : lnythology of the Creation as complcx as those of India and China.
71ir hr.~vc.rlsdeclare the glory of God ...
Day unto day uttereth And again we encounter the conccpt of the creative force of sacred
sound. The Egyptian Book o f tht Dead and other sources declarc
spcrc.lr ... 'I'here is no speech nor language, where their voice is - - A

not hr;lrcl. 'l'hrir line is gone out through all the earth, and their quite unambiguously that God. or his lesser, servant-gods, created
words t o lllr rnd of the world. In them hath hc set a tabernacle cverything that is by combining visuitlization with utterances. First
for thr sun.. . thc god would visualize the thing that was to be formed; then hr
would pronounce its name : ;incl it would be.
Still more portic is that supremely evocative question in Job 38: ~ r o mas late as the reign of' Alexander 11, a text dating fro111
'Where wast thou wl~cnthe morning stars sang together?' - which about 3 1 0 ~ still~ has thr god of the Creation declaring:
might have been writrcn hy Pythagoras himself. 'Numerous are the forms I'rom that which proceedeth frorn 111y
The science of tlic ;trchetypal cosmic Tones, as known to the rnorlth.' The god Ra was also called Amen-Ra, with thr 11rrlix
Hindus and early Chincse, we would not normally equate with 'Amen'. The term, Amen, or AMN, was well undrrsrocjtl I r y lllr
Christian doctrine and dogma. Yet elements of the science were I!h~~ptian priesthood, and equated with the Hindu OM ('I'l~r~ v ~ I I ~ I
apparently known to the more mystically-minded among the is still used today of course, for the closing ot' tlrr 1u.1y r - ~ ~I I. !
(:Iiristians.) One papyrus states: 'Ra spakr at r 111. II~.!:IIIIIIII!: (11
Christian movement, and were retained for some centuries after
'11) 'I'HE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE PHYSICS OF THE OM 211

, I ~hade
( '1 I..IIII)II J the earth and heavens to rise out of the waste of IIIIwcr, could themselves invokc and dircct 1 1 1 ~cncrgicx of the
w.11 cr. 11r;ivens.One text has Ra saying:
'l'lia~the archetypal, ocean of Creation, mentioned in so
Irl,tny myths around the world, is not t o be taken literally as having Iiear me now! M y command is t h ~ ;,I1 t n l y c't~iltlrrnIN. I , r o ~ ~ g h ~
hccn water is nowhere made plainer than in Egyptian Creation nigh t o mc [raised in conscinusnr\\ l .if,111,ct I 11r.y r11.i y I , I O I I O I I I I C c*
accounts. In these it is specifically statcd that before there existed words of power which shall hc Trll Illjrln c.111l1, 1 1 1 t l 1 1 1 111c
any forms of living beings there existed Nu, a vast mass of Celestial hcavens
Waters. In this cxisted the germs of all living things that were later
to take form, both gods of the heavens and creatures of the earth; In precisely the same way that ~ l l cgod*; t.rr..~rttl I r y c-orl~l>i~~irl,i;
a
but they existed 'in state of inertness and helplessness'. From out viqualization with speech, so too did thc pric.r;t\ Ilr.lir.vr. i t I ~ ( r - > \ ~ l , l r .
of these Celestial Waters the first god, Khepera, or Ra, emerged 1ii;in to work change within the physic:tl wcb~-ltl.V1-~11.11i7.11 i<) I I
into being by 1 ing his o w n name. Thereafter he btgan t o c,ornbined with certain mantras and invoc:ition\ w:~,,c r l t ~ t . r L l t . l c * i l 1 0
create other fc other gods by the combined process of I)c the vital key t o success in most acts of whitc nt;~!:it.
visualizing them and uttering their names. The gods which had then The Egyptians also had an identical concept t t , 11i;ir ol I l ~ r -1 1 111(111
been created by him were also able t o crcatc through a similar bija mantra. Everything in the universe, having hrrn r.l.c..ltc'Il I)? . I
process, engaging in what wc might call a 'stepping down of the fre- cwtain vibratory pattern o r combination of patterns. 1 ~ 0 1 1 1 ~. 1l l - l l ) 1 1 1 '
quency' of the O n e Vibration. ~llasteredor influenced by the uttering of its ~ o r r e s ~ o n c l i r\ ~I I, :I I ~ ~ I
The Egyptian accounts of ~ h Crc;tlir~n r point to the primeval itter tern. Everything and cvcrybody possessed a ccrtain Irry I l t r t r .
'Waters' as havine bccn :in ~~niliifr.~c.nri:~tt~tI Illass of energy. Into 11;1me, sometimes called the 'secret name' - secret I~cGIII!;~. 1 1 1 1 - :I
these 'Waters' wcrr p o ~ l r i . ~Ill l r ' vi01.:1r i( ,115 of the W o r d , thus prrson t o reveal his secret name would enable others to p i n I M I W C ' I '
sending forth r;~tli:irin!; ctlrrrlich, w11r.11.I s ~ t o ~ is
~ c thrown
* into a over him. Ra, too, possessed a secrct name, the most powert.111o1.;1Il
pond. When i n ;I 11011~1~ l i ro~.igin;ilw:~vcs; ~ r rc*flcctedr back from ~ h words
c of power. W e therefore find Ra declaring in onc tcxt :
the banks, a crisc-t.r(-wing ol' tlic ripples rc.i~~lr\, ;ct~ila much morc
complt.x p t t r r n oi Kc.ornrtric:il f o r n ~ scmcrgc..;. As wxves cross each I am a god and the son of a g n d ; I AM the Mighty One, Son 01
other at :inKlr.;, stlu:~rcs,triangles and othcr fortn, c.111be seen. Thcsc the Mighty One. Nu, my father, conceived my secret nanlc
and more complex shapcl;, on the cosmic Ievr.l, W C I ~to the ancient which giveth me power, and he concealed it in m y heart so that
viewpoin~rlir m;~tricesfor the precipit;ttion of' n1;lttc.r. T h e kcy to no magician might cvcr know it, and, knowing it, be givcn
creatinn in m,lttcr was considered t o be thc. v/r.r\c resulting from power to work evil against me.
'oppo\inK' w;ivcs o f vibration.
Not only t h e Egyptian Creator-God, hut the lesser gods The bija mantra or 'secret narnc' cor~ccptwas widespread in the
w r c nccrcditcd with the knowledge and thc 1 1 s01' ~ words of power, ;tncient world, and is still prrsrnt in some parts of thc world todiiy.
their moi~th.;bring 'skilled in uttering them'. With these words of Every human being is belirvcd t o possess his o w n personal mrlocly.
power thc hicr;truhy of gods could create and tlcs1roy form, heal the Alid hy imitating the sound.; 111' n;tcilrc, many cultures have belicvt<l
diseased and givc lifc to the dead. The God of' gods, Ra, 'spake 111;tl 1,ower was gained ovcr t I I V l>articu!ar spccies of creatrlrrh I 11
crcating words' in nrdcr to bring into being all tlic lesser gods of the phcnt llnenon of nature which W.I\ imitated. No living creatilrtnc.1r113t 1
celestial hierarchy. According to the Egyptians, Ra also gave the r c p r o d ~ ~asc many different S O I I I I ~ Sas could man, due to n~:ir~'m.
secret of certain wnrds of powcs even to the earthly sntilc vocal apparatus and his ;ibility to construct mu.;ii.tl 1 1 1 + . 1 1 1 1
words whereby reptiles, cliscases and other evils could be overcome. merits, l'his gave man enormous power, for if he knew rl~r.Ir.rt I 111 I I
14

This shows that the iiica of the creative power of speech was not kcy~i~>tc-sound of an object hc could reproduce i t ; i r l < l I 1 1 r - I , l > ! !-1 1 1 1
limited t o the mythical crcation of the universe. I t was believed that l~oss'ssionof thc cncrgy with which the object W;+&.c I I , L I ! ~ r1 1 I 0 I I l r

material conditions could bc changed at any time by the utterances ;tl>lct o wicld this in-dwelling force (ormda, b n t i , r i t , ~ ) r r t r r .\rI.l. p t f . r r * , r ,
of the gods. Mortals. t m , knowing how to wield the words of .~ntlso on) was the kcy to all magic. Tllc f1i.11:rJ l.111I 1 1 . I, ~ 1 1 1h11
'I l 'I'HE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC
T H E PHYSICS OF 1'1-1li ()M 213
energy to be an impersonal force which man, if he
I l ! : , ~ r ~ l ( - t l tl1i5
1Mlwer of the Amen, or OM. Both the 111usicof i ~ ~ s t r c ~ n ~;111d c n t the
s
I;III.W IIOW,could control and direct.
ilr~~nan voice, as in the giving of manlr;ts, il~vot.;~tiolr.; ;clid fi;tts,
Ax i l l China and India. Egyptian music was deeply associated
I ould be used for this purpose. The very wortl I;jr uc I I I I I ~ Ii t cc.ll' (bt>rr'l,
W I I I I niysticism and cosn~ology.We have seen in previous chapters
litcrally 'voice') indicated that earthly so~llltlw;~:;; I : , ~ . ~ I Ci . l l c . t l wit11 the
tl~armany cultures believed the pentatonic musical scale, with its
Word.
two auxiliary semitones (constituting what today is called the
Single, sustained notes were intoncd i l l c.x;tcr l y 1111. \ , I I I I ( . W ; I Y I ~ I : I I
diatonic scale), to mirror the seven major Tones of Cosmic Sound.
So too in Egypt. And again, even as other peoples believed each of
I I I C Hindu intones the OM. this being for t11r ~ N I ~ ~01) I. II( \Ilic\:ill/: I.
lllrlcr harmony and union with the C;o~llrt.;ctl.I \ I I I I l ~ ~ ~ l l . c l r lI yI I O I . ~
the Tones t o be produced by one particular divine being (such as the
1l1;t11 anywhere eise throughout thc civili~rtlIiistol-it . r l v . l c ~ r l c l . I I I ( '
Elohim of the Hebrews) - so too the Egyptians. W e may take, for
example, one particularly jovial Creation account. A Gnostic Iigyptian mysteries involved the dclihrratc., sc,ic.nli l i i IIW. I 11 r.1lc.r iSic
v(.rbal formulas.
Egyptian text of unknown date and unknown origin states
Maspero recorded with regard to t l ~ c I!!:yl~ti.t~~r c ~ , c ! : i ~ . r l
allegorically that in the beginning G o d 'laughed' seven times :
t rremony :

H a-Ha-Ha-Ha-Ha-H a-Ha. G o d laughed, and from these


seven laughs seven Gods sprang up which embraced the whole
The human voice is the instrument par t.ucefl~rr~-~~ 01 I I I 111
~ I ~ \ I .incl
enchanter. It is the voice that seeks afar the Invisihlr\ ~ I I I I ~ I I I O I I ~ . L ~ ,
universe: these were thc first Gods.
and makes the necessary objects into reality. Evcry ~ I I ( .I I I I I I C
sounds it emits has a peculiar power which escapes rhc noti~.c.01
Many of the world's religiorts icgrcc with tlcc idea that there are
the common run of mortals, but which is known to and n1:tclc tl-.r.
seven 'first Gods' which arc rllc living c.rtll~odimcntof the first diffe-
rentiati.)n of the One Tone into srvrrl. ' I ' l l c . I-Icbbrews called these
.
of by the adepts .. But as every one [of the pronunciatio~r\. c l l t l
their pitches] has its peculiar force, great care must be taken no1
Gods the Elohim. (And it is wortl~l x ~ i ~ l ~ i0 l1 1i 1g 111;ttin a number of
passages in Genesis, when God is dcscril~ctlrn:~clilcgthe Creation, to change their order or t o substitute one for the other.'"
the English Bible phrase 'Lord God' is actu:~lly;I vtLrypoor transla-
'I'l~cpower of the voice extended not only to the magical ceremony,
tion of this plural Hcbrew word, Elohitn. ' l ' l c ; ~ ~ is, the original
I ~ t l calso to everyday speech. All utterances, it was believed, releascd
Hebrew version has it that the Creation w;ts tlr~cto thc Gods of the
. I certain energy: good or bad, ;recording to the inner state of thc
seven Tones.) These same first Gods, wliir~l~ cunl;cll;ltefrom the
,. . ',l>c;~ker and his use of rhythm, mclc~dyand syntax. The average
principile of- the Trinity, are also a part of H i11tl11t r ; I~iligs;
~ but here,
1r1;11i, ignorant as to the powchr of t11c spoken word, constantly
in Hincduism, W e also have the interesting disl i11r.tiot~between five
4 I-cnted his own limitations of ch;~r;cctcr, his own ill-health, and his
of thenI and twc) others, which surely relates t o I 1 1 fict ~ that two of
1)wn undesirable conditions OS lifc, t l ~ r o l ~ ghis h idle, thoughtless and
the seven notes of the diatonic scale are scrnironc.~.'Seven are the
~n;~licious utterances. Rut a p;cr~ oI' the training of the priesthood
great Gods below the Trimurti,' we are told. 'l:ivi+t1111yare working
;11vo1vcdthe correct and gu;~rrlrtluse of speech at all times. Thr
and two conccalcd. They are Indra, Vayu, Agni. V;truna, Kshiti.'
:;XI rt.11111-centurycabbalist. C ; i ~ l l i o Camillo, recorded that accordin!:
Egyptian hirroglyphs, wherever they show - ;I.; they often do -
11 Iri:, information the Egypt i;cn priesthood, in their perfect ;c11t1
the descending rays of the sun, are actually ill~lhtratingthe descen-
..r it.~rtil'ic~;ill~ proportional usc of everyday speech, caused thc wc)rtl\.
ding Tones or 'rays' of the first Gods as these rays come forth from
w I I ~ I II ~ ~ o n o u n c eto d ,be 'ani n~;ucdby a harmony3.
the One. Invariably the rays are depicted as radiating and descen-
h1111 11 that concerns the Egyptian mysteries is now clo;tkrcl i l l I I I I .
ding lines; often with I~;tr~ds attached t o their lower ends, indicating
I I I ~ \ I \ t r l time. W e can bc sure that little if any of i t s ~ I I I I ~ . I I I I I , . , I
that their purpose is to crcntc and fashion things. They arc always
1 r a . t t llin!:c were written down and have survived. E5pc.l i.rlly 4 l c 1 1 III!:
shown in numbers indicative of the Cosmic Tones: seven, twelve or,
occasibnally, thirteen.
I I W c.;ll-ly tlyn:csti~s,the Land of the Nile's systcm of I I I V * , I I ~I - . I I I . I I I I I
lr~.c!:il.;~lscicncc was probably as highly-dcvcl~~l~c~~l .t.. I 11.11 c 11 ,111 v
The Egyptian priesthood uscd sound as a means of invoking the
lll.l1~11(.. liar ~ X : I I I Ithcre , indications t11:tl t l l r . r l , . r , I r l I I , I I ~111.1 y
~ ~ Care
.' I 4 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE PHYSICS 01:T I 11;. (-)M 215

I II;IVC hccn regulated, as in China and elsewhere, according to the I '111 istianity in which Christ is descrihcd ;IS 'I llr I>l;~yrrof tlic flute'
t~yclcsof time and astrology. The precentor of thc temple regularly I 11 'I IIC leader of the dance'.
chanted the hours," giving forth a release of sound for each new 111 Persia the name of the fabulous hum:[ hirtl is ilerivr~ifro111tllr
1 4 1 1 1 1 , Hum, which is related to O M . And trarlition h;~s it t l i ; ~ tsl~ould
time-cycle. Dio Cassius of the second century AD givcs the fascinat-
~ l l rIluma bird alight for a moment upon thr 11r;itlof' any prrson,
ing titbit of information that the Egyptians pactised in their music a
sidereal scale, from A to G , connected to the movcments of the t l i r . ~it~ is a sign that the person is crr hrcomr ;I 'kin!:'. Irici-
planets. (This again points to the crucial role of Egypt as the real ~l~~rtt;rlly. the root, Hu, is a d i m cc t o rhr Woril of' God;
111t1 this is most interesting, for this samc root is ;~lso:I Il;trt 111'tlic
birthplace of Pythagoras' teachings on the Harmony of the
Spheres.) w(,rd human. In 'human', the man portion cc~rnc-sf'rc~rnthr S;lnskrit
4\1t~na,or 'mind of the ordinary man'. So tlic* trrril 'IIIIIII;I~' is
l l ~llrrcforean eternal reminder of the ancicnt clor~trinr:t1l.11 (;()cl is
1 1 THE WORD MADE FLESH ~ . V ~ Inow I in all men, and can be more fully rc;1li7.cil l ~ ~y 1 1 .I :vrn its
A n d the Word was made flesh, and dwelt among us, (and we beheld hzs Ir\us was also the Christ, demonstrating the uniiic:~ric~n01 111~.
gloty, the glory as of he only begottm o f the ~nther,)full of grace and Iwinciples of earth and heaven as both thc Son of M a n ;ancl t l ~ cSot1
truth. - John 1 :14 I 11 ( h d , so are all men ha-man; God-man.

'I'hoth is the most common Egyptian name by which t lir k:o(t


In many religions the Second Person of thc Trinity is equated with t,:trically corresponding to an Egyptian Second Person o f t l ~ r
the Word of God. This wc find in the New Testament, where 'I'rinity was known. Thoth himself is described as God's clcput y
Christ is a number of times referred t o as the Word. The mystery of whom G o d (in the form of Ra) brought into being by h'1s wortl.
the incarnation of tlir Word is that the imperfection of man and the 'I'lience, as the W o r d of God, Thoth steps down the vihr;ctorv
perfection of God ;trr nhlr to inhabit one and the same form; and frequencies of the One fully to the level of material density, crcatin,;
l '
that the forn~crc;,n I~ccon~c the latter. Thus, though the person, he earth with his word or words. But, like the Christ or the h w a q
Jesus, was h1rrr1 oi wom:tn, the W o r d entered into and was with rlrung principle, the spiritual essence of Thoth could also incarnatc
him. Gnc~sticCIiristi:~nsbelieved that this same W o r d could enter within the extremely righteous and purified man. A number of
i into any nl;tn wlio It~tdsufficiently prepared, purged, and perfected
himself. 3'11r1.1-111:tybe something in the fact that the Latin word
.ICCOUI~ t spez s tk of Thoth as havi ng lived and walk:ed among men.
According to Clement of Alexan dria and other sources, Thoth was
'
lI l '

sonzrs .hrr,;~rnrl ~ c ~ t lthe i English word, son. or Son, and also the :Inothctr namc: for Herme:s Trismlegistus, Ivho was the 'inventor of

I l Frcncli wt rrtl. ning sound. This dual meaning of 'the Word' nus sic' and the author of books of Egyptian chants to the gods.
I - thnr i t w.15 lurid and the Son; both Vibration and Con-
l scio~~s~irss - ere more apparent than in the apocryphal GENESIS NOW
'Poem 01' r l ~ r(;o~,>rlof St John'. This work is almost word-for- It is usual to think of the Creation account in Genesis as being a
word thc . ; : I I ~ I ~ . ;IS the opening of the Biblical Gospel of St John - Jrpiction of events which tr;~nspired (whether literally or
except t l i ; ~t l~l c I l-rllt 'the Word' is in each casc replaced by 'Mind': ;rllcgnrically) aeons ago. Yet wh:tt rnirrges from a study of all othcr
'In the hrpinnit~!; wits Mind ...' myths and doctrines which 5pe;tk of Cosmic Sound is that this
As we havr n o ~ r already, ~l in China the dual Son-Sound concept morlcr~lconception of Geneis 1s quite erroneous. The description of
is evident in thc f';~ctr h;tt the emperor was said t o embody the huang the Crestion is not only mcxnt to be the story of the original forni;~-
chung or 'yeUow Lrll' trlnr. In Hindu scripture Vishnu, the Second tion of the earth; it is also an account, couched in symholoj:~,11tt1
Person of the Trinity, is called 'the Voice' or the 'great Singer', for vcilcd sllusions, of the eternal process of the creation andpr~rc,rr~trttrrn
he is said to have crcatcd the universe with his song. Incarnate of all atoms and all worlds.
within the personage of Krishna, Vishnu enchanted a multitude of According to the ancient wisdom, this procms is rvrr 131 c...rttl .I 11, l
maidens (allegorically representing hum:In souls) by the p1laying of c m-going. Matter is not only created, but also prcsrrvr-tt l III~'.III\
1 l t,fCosmic Sound, and by no other. Indeed, rnatlrr I \ ( : ~ . , ~ 51
I I111rlt1
I
# l
his flute. Closely paralleling this are thc:early ayjocryphal . texts of
'11, T H E SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE PHYSICS OF THE OM 2 17

111 clr.ll\ificd form; matter is the Harmony of the Spheres - I'llrse resemblances between archetypal sound-forms :tnd lifc-forms
l,yst:tllizcd! Putting it the other way around: Cosmic Sound is Ir1.l y not be without their significance.
nl.tlrcr in solution. As the ancients believed: take away the Word, 'Ihc Swiss doctor and scientist, Hans Jenny, has rrccntly 11rldrr-
. t l l t l matter instantly reverts into the invisible energy of the void. I .ckrn Chladni-like experimentation with n morr sophist ic;atcd
'I'hc universe, the earth, and ourselves upon it only exist and continue .ll~~:~ratus, the 'tonoscope'. The vibrating surfncc 01' t11r ronoscopc
to exist because the Word still comes forth. T o the yogi, the OM is 1 .l11 have the volume and pitch of its vibrations contrr~llr~l , I I IIIC
as immediate as the air around him, sounding out in the eternal I tlllch of a dial. Again, it is possible to use various sul3sr ;~llcrrupc it.
present. It beats the rhythm of all hearts, and speaks to the soul ,t(c.ording to which best illustrates the patterns (I!' lltr SOIIII~IYill
having ears to hear. The great mystics of all time have felt the Word (~llcstion.The shapes and effects produced are rhcn c.;~l>ltlrrcl 1111 film.

to be imminent in and around themselves; have known that it was i r m e of the results are strongly reminiscent of v;lricnls p l r r n u ~ ~ ~ r r l ; ~
v .

the elixir of life; that the Creation was not done, neither fulfilled; Iwrscnt in nature. Vibrated paste, for examplc. ;IS pic.tllrrtl i l l onc
that the morning stars still sing together. -ac.sirsof photographic plates, suggests the appcarnncc. o f rnrly sl:t~;~-s
cell division.
THE WORK OF ERNST CHLADNI AND HANS JENNY Other photographs have been taken of liquids suc I t -1% w;trrl.. I p y
Nothing brings a point home better than a graphical, physical Incans of a stroboscope. They capture intricate yct l ~ r ; t ~ t ~ i \f ~~I lI lI l ~
demonstration; and the formative power of sound has been tilrtrical interactions of various amplitudes of waves piissitlg rl~rou~:l~
illustrated by none more clearly than by Ernst Chladni and Hans I llc substances. The viewer has the impression of seeing thc Crrnt ic 111

Jenny. llcclf as when the Word went forth into the Celestial W;LIc-ss. '1'11~
Ernst Chladni, a German plrysicist, Jcvcloped what became Il~riresproduced are in a constant state of flow. Rotary w~tvcsol'lcn
known as Chladni plates around 1800. Thcsc violin-shaped metal rlnerge and set the pattern turning. One experiment resulted in t l ~ r
plates are able to render visible thc kincl of vibrations which are ~wrfectand dynamic shape of the T'ai cbi, which symbolizes tllc
natural to violins. The plates are evenly cc)vercd with sand, and a ~litcrplayof cosmic forces, or theyang-yin polarities underlying ;a11
bow then drawn across certain points on ttlc. rdb:e of the plate. The 11l;anifestation.
result is that the sand moves quickly into thc ~-taltcrnof the waves of This and much more work by Hans Jenny is described in detail
vibration produced on the plate. Plates a f othcr shapes, and con- I l y Jenny himself in Cymatics I and Nothing could be more
structed of other materials, give the same effr-ct; ;tncl anything from t lrarly illustrative of the power of sound to shape otherwise
sand to maple syrup, or from iron filings to p;c\rc, can be used to ~lisorganizedsubstances. Through Jenny's apparatus it is possible
render the vibratory wavcs visible. The study t rf I l1i5 phenomenon is lirrrally to see what one is hearing.
called cymatics. Complex and meaningfill pittterns are even more apparent in
The patterns produced are wonderful to wr i l l their poetic Icnny's sound-affected substances whcn viewed at the microscopic
regularity. They are also dynamic, changing qi~icklywith changes in 1rvc.l. Then are revealed henutili~l and mathemati~dl~-~recise
pitch and resonance. In this manner it is possihlc ro make visible the r~l,tl~~lala-structures looking likc groupings of microscopically-viewed
;c11 I W f1;tkes. The stress-interactic )ns created in substances by their
vibrations produced by specific moments in thr music of particular
works, such as from a Beethoven symphony or it H;~chtoccata. . nl.-..lllc to sound frequencic~;always result in formations replrtr
Lyall Watson, the biologist well-known for his book Supmature w i ~ l i rllcaningful numerologic;~l, proportional and symrnetria~l
and other works. has commented with interest that Chladni's figures tlt~.~lit~c<.
often adopt familiar organic forms:
'rtl E SONG OF THE ATOM
Concentric circles, such as the annual rings in a tree trunk; :l /avtr ~ r called
r Vibrations in Occultism. - H . P . Rl;tv:~~
\It v
alternating lines, such as the stripes on a zebra's back; hexagonal
grids, such as the cells in a honeycomb; radiating wheel spokes, I I O W ~1.c-WC to take the widespread convictinn tl1:11 11lrt.r c - x l * ~.I ~
such as the canals in a jellyfish; vanishing spirals, such as the stipcr-physical vibration, and that it i:: r 11,. ~ . ; I I I ~. ~- t ~ c.1
~lrl~vc~rs;~l, t l lrr

turrets of shellfish - all thcse commonly occur."


111 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE PHYSICS OF T H E OM 219
111 ,111 1ll;lltcr and all sound? Is the concept of the OM in fact of matter, the closer they find themselves to thr tr:ic,l~in#sof anti-
rlol IIIII): I>ut primitive, irrational superstition? O r does it agree with ,et it suff 'ice to remind ourselvcs that the ;IIIJ)~II.CIIL 'solidity1
w l l ; ~tllodern
~ science has to tell us about the nature of matter? :er is an illusion, since all stibstnncc:, ; i r ~Iitr~nrcl o t ~ tof
OS course, the authors of the Upanishads and the twentieth- )ly minutcr atoms; these being scp;tr;~tc.rlI)y clist;~ncrswl~icli-
c,c*nturyphysicists work within the frameworks of two very different I c.I;~tive to their own sizes - are vast. And t l. ;IlotllS
systcms of terminology. The two also exhibit radically distinct ~l~rmselves are not in the least bit solid, I: y;y i l l
;tpproaches t o the gaining of knowledge. And what all this means is lllotion. In cyclicmotion; which is to s ; ~ yi,l l
that while a brief glance may give the appearance that the two paint Scientists Douglas Vogt and Gary Sult;~nIlr,sttll;lr I. 111 I I I ~ I I -Ilook
diametrically opposite pictures of reality, such appearances may be h'rdlity Revealed that all of the physical clrnicntc nl.ll~iCc.\twithin tlir
deceptive. The physicist may have arrived at the very same truths viqible, physical plane of existence by means of ~ I I C i~~trr;ic.~icrl~ of
that were known t o the early Hindus, but without his realizing it. I yclic waveforms - these waveforms not in tilt-n~rclvr.; I,c.illC: lilllil~~l
Let us ask ourselves: If the concept of the OM is valid, how, in 11 1 the physical plane at all, but extending tl~rougllinro I 111.pllycic.;ll
modem scientfic terms, would the OM show itselfz W e must recall: the irt~mhigher levels of reality. This is surely ;is closc. 10 r~ll~hrr-
ancients were adamant that the OM was not audible sound at all. 5t:irnping the ancient viewpoint on matter as contcn1por;iry si.irncr
Therefore we are not looking for 'sound' as such; not sound as we I I luld get.

usually think of it. O r is it? The scientist, Andrew Gladzewski, dirl ionsitlr~-.tl~lt~
But there are further leads. The O M is said to be a high- I,(-searchinto the correlations between such phenomcnn as ;ctonlic
frequency vibration which not only shnpcs, but is, all material sub- 1x1ttern:;, plants, crystals and harmonics in music, upon which onc of
stance. T o examine the possil>lr vnliclity o f this in an unbiased and 11;sconczlusions was that 'Atoms are harmonic resonator^."^ WI~t~rl
scientific manner, it is necessary to ; t ~ kourl;clvcs: Is there any evidence W C con:tpare this statement t o that of Blavatsky - 'Atoms arc c;~llctl
.that atoms or their consritrtent suhatomir pnr/i~-Itsare.forrned by, or are Vibrations in Occultism' - we see how true it is that the barrirrs
related to, any physical energies or ai/itlilirr r,~hichcrrc of a vibratoly ljctween science and esotericism are now crumbling.
nature? It is actually a well-established principle now in atomic physics
It needs also to be taken into c o n s i d r r ; ~ t i tli:~t
~ ~ ~ iby 'vibrational 111;it atoms react and behave as though they had resonance. This
activity' is also meant any activity or encr1:y which is cyclic, wave- rrsonance principle effectively disintegrates the barriers betwecn
like or oscillatory in nature. Then it is rca1ixt.d t11;1t ;ttoms and sub- and music, and promiscs t o provc one of the most fertilc
atomic particles not only contain such encrgic..; : t Jtr'y ;ire themselves I'irlds of research for the theoretical atomic physicist of the near
composed of nothing else but energy in a st;ttc (11 oscillation. Many The principle is ral hlishing the concept that not only
years ago H. P. Blavatsky, in The Secret Do(.lriv~-. wrotc with disar- n, but all subatom: .S, can be theoretically considered
ming candour: 'Atoms are called Vibrations i l l ()c.c~lltisrn.'T o the .... ..-._-gnodes of resonancr. in rrrlrer words, some scientists are begin-
scientifically-minded nineteenth-century rcailrr I%l;lvatsky's state- rrirr,~10 regard the atom as a &rrt/ ,r/'~itlymusical note. T o venture a
ment must havc seemed confusingly - . contradiclory to the 'known Ill,l.ril>lepun. does this not ring ;I IIc.lli Where now, the dichotomy
facts'. Only sincc then have physicists themsclvc~cboved that atoms 11c.1 wc.c.11 the ancient wisdom's conception of matter and that of thr
are indeed vibratiims, being almost alarmingly insubstantial, and not porary p1lysicist ?
at all the tiny gr:iins of matter which the mcchitnistic nineteenth- removed from the knowledge or awareness of the avrr:l/:r.
century physi;ist would have had us believe. the stre,et, academic journals on particle physics h;lvr 101.
In short, there i:, tn the open-minded person a quite amazing <( I I I ~ I . y r;lrs been postulating t11at the basic nature of srtbiitc~mic]>:I I-

similarity between thc discoveries and theorir.5 of modern physics lirlrs, right down to thc quark, is a harmonic one. Morr rri~rlillv.
and the philosophies o i thc ancients. These similarities have been Ij.ipc.rr h;tvc bccn published in such journals on thc suhjt.c~t(11 wl1.11ir
admirably listed and examined in Fritjof Capra's The Tao of I ~ I I I , W I I ;IS 'exotic resonance', which goes even Si~rtlir.~~, . I I I I ~ w l ~ 11~ itl l
Physics," which, since its publication, has become something of a 111c- opinion of many atomic physicists is the niob;r~ ~ r i r r n i ~I,..lrl i r ~ gwc.
minor classic. The deeper physicists explore into the nature 11.1vrt o tlic disc.ovcry and understanding ol thv 1~11intr.v~rr1tl.11 11.t1111.i.
U 11 ~ ~ ~ ; t t t ~ * r . " )
THE PHYSICS OF THE OM 22 1
U '11 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC
.,.~t,(.ltngth;which obviously means, whcn one gcBtsdown t o it, that
I !I 1, ~k which has been greeted with much interest by aware and
I\
, 1 1 1 ~,m1each one and the same thing.
Germans is Wilfried Kruger's Das Universum
[.~40~r*~~ic.;~lly-minded W l ~ c nthis vibratory activity occurs at ;L frcqtrcncy o f around
,\tt~q/'"which, as the title suggests, is more than a little Pythagorean r1o0.000billion waves per second it becomes particul;irly incrrestirlg
111 irs contents. Kriiger has combined a knowledge of musical theory
11111 ;~c.cessibleto us in everyday life, for this is tllc Irr~~11cr1c.y ;~t
with that of atomic physics, and has brought each of these to bear in r v 1 1 1 t . I 1 our eyes have been designed to scnst the vil~s:~tiorlc ;tntl
;In intriguing investigation into the heart of the atom. O n the face of I I .lll~lllit them to our brains in the form of the visl~:ilp r r c c - l ~ ~ i01' or~
it, Kriiger seems literally to have demonstrated that the structure of II,;III; ~ n dcolour. Slight differences in w ; ~ v c l t t > g ~!:ivr
h riw I O 111t
thc atom contains ratios and numbers which resemble t o a degree ,xion of different colours. That light s h o ~ ~ lIrrtl s c i c r ~ ~ ~ l ~ i ~ ; ~ l l y
impossible to account for by chance the harmonic principles of ihed as a wave-frequency once again ; ~ I i ~ ; rr ~~ ~s~ > r l ( . ~\ t. r. ri c n ~ . ~
music. His findings are supported in the volume by a wealth of jy-side with the ancients. The authors of tllr. I l l ~ : r n i \ \ ~ : ~ tw l ~r .
detailed and painstakingIy-prepared notes and diagrams. Among his 11.1vrrecounted, knew that light was a forni o f v i l r r ; ~ ~ i oI ~~c - ilr ,l ! : , I
conclusions are: 'With the harmonic minor scale we face a synthesis r l ~ l l h 0 1 . rarefied form of 'sound'.
between the vertically-oriented forces of the inner atom and the N;~tureherself also indicates the close link I2clwc.c.11so1111t1 .111tl
horizontally-oriented forces binding the molecule together.' II!:~II, the solar-spectrum of colours displaying n nun~hcl I 11 ~ l ~ r
Perhaps the most thought-provoking of Kriiger's findings I~~~rlwr.ties of tones. T h e resemblance is just as thon);h t l ~ ~1,111. .
concerns the secret Pythagorean teaching, the Tetraktys. The . . .
Ill~~.nornenon - light - were a higher state of the othcl,. ~ I I \ I . I \
Tetraktys linked the four musical intervals of the octave, fifth, tone organizes itself naturally into the seven nrlrcs ol 1 1 1 ~ .
fourth a n d second with ratios ;tnd proportions which, according to c scale, so too does the visible solar-spectrum forni rhc \c.vr.n
the Pythagoreans, gcwerned the crc;ction of thc world and of all life. , of the rainbow.
Kruger's research uncovered an unniist;tk;~hlc;tssociation between 11 will be recalled that the significance of the number scvc11 I \ ; I ~
;~cids- which are the
these intervals and the structure of tllr ri~~c~leic 11.11lirional1~ held to be associated with the fact that all o f t l l t
fundamental physical ingredients of orpnic. lil;.. lllllvrrse is formed by, and therefore mirrors in nature, the scven
Donald Andrews is another rescarchtr 1 0 h;~vc:cxplored along 111.l jor (and five minor) cosmic Tones. In fact, all of the mysticill
such lines. His complex theory of the univc-rsc. htts each atom as I I I I I ~ I I ,of~ ~ ~the Creation have their counterparts in the visiblc
emanating one key-note 'sound', as a rninrrtc. r.c-sor~;itor,and con- ,l~lq>crties of light. One, the number o f unity and of the Supreme, is
ceives of collections of atoms (or notes) as forn~inp,~ h chords
c which I ~ ~ ~ l . r -o ~n) rearth
e d in the purc, undiffercntiated white light. T w o , the
are known to the physicist as molecules. C o r i l i t ~ ~ ~the
i ~ r gexpansion l ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ of t . i opposing
ple opposites. is present in the relationship
outward in size, molecules combine to form rllc. v;~ri~)iis objects and 111.1wren white and black, and all o f their intermediary shades of
forms of the world, each object and living I)cir~!: ~llcreforebeing !.I l a y . Three, or the Trinity, ni:~nifesisvisibly in the form of the three
compc~srdof a large number of molccules, o r cllor-11s.which give to y colours. Then. by miririg thr light of these three colours as
the objcct o r being its own individual and conlplrx 'sound'. Hence we 1 , seven colours inclucling white are produced in all: thesc
the title of Andrcws' book, The Symphony ofLzfi~." visible frequencies of the acbvenTones.

THE VOCAL RANGE OF THE ONE SING ER 17I I MYSTICISMOF COLOUR


N o t only suppnsrclly 'solid' matter, but all forrns of energy, are I 11'1111 . I illustrates what h;lppcns when three spotlights of AiTfrrt-~~r
composed of waves : which is to say, vibrations. All of the different l I = rcd, green and purple - are beamed onto a wall i l l S I I I 11 . I
kinds of eIectromagnr~iccsnergy - including radio waves, heat, X- rv.ly r l ~ . l r lhcy overlap The result: one witnesses a s y n l l r ~ l111 1 1 1 1
rays, cosmic rays, visihlc light, infra-red and ultraviolet - are r I \ jlrirt<.\s o f the Creation itself. T h e green and rcatl * - J ~ I I ~ I I ! : ~ ~ ~ C ~
I

composed of a wave-like or vibratory activity, these vibrations U 4 U I I I I v ~ r l r . I I I 1 7 r ~ ~ dyellow;


~ ~ c e green and purple pmt41rrr IIIII~.. . I I I ~..( ~1
travelling through the univcrsc at 186,000 miles per second. The ~ I I \Yl~r.l t - ,111 three overlap, white is the r e u l t . Tilt\. 111 1.1 l1.r I . I * . 1 0
only difference between each of these phenomena is their frequency 8 % lc I~.~i.kw:~r t l , moving from the point of rhr I ~ , I I I I ~( ~ ' 1 .I -., I.I II ~111
of vibration o r wavelength. Each merges into the other at a certain
I I 4
'1'11E SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE PHYSICS OF T H E OM 223
11.14 I, I I , I Ii(. Source. The descent of the creative energies really works ~ I II olour projected onto a screen in front of thc ;luJirncc.. Colour-
111 r l ~ rolqx)site direction: from the One Light springs forth the ~ y colour-counterpoint,
, etc. were all possihlc. Some colour-
I l ~ ~ . ~ * r - i ~the~ - oTrinity:
nc, blue, yellow and pink. (These colours con- ns preferred to play the cl;issics, trans~c~sing them into the
1.1ini11gthe respective qualities of Father, Son and Holy Ghost; or medium; others composed spcci;tl works p;irticulnrly
Will, Wisdom and Love.) Thence, a further differentiation of the a~r--~~~ for; ~ the
l c d light medium. Some :~rtists,1101 wisl~ingto ni:~kc
'I'rinity produces the three other colours, giving a total of seven 1 1 I complete a break from tonal art, consr -yl)o,~~.ils wl~icli
light-frequencies; each corresponding t o one of the seven cosmic 4 - ~ ~ ~ . ~ n ;tones
i t e d and colour-projections I ~ I \ I ~ (, A Y :in
'Tones and t o one of the seven notes of the diatonic scale. t~ll.;ticmedium in its own right, colour-nir~\~r C . ~ I I I I O ~II:IVI- III*VII
~ l i o ~ r t h esuccessful,
r though, for it c:tnnol rt-;~llyIw ,.1ic1 I O 11;tvr
~,l~rvived into the post-war era.)
Figure I :Colour Addition Now, besides the seven colours nsnlcd ;~l>trvc.,l l l r * l . t ' ~ ' Y ~ \ I L ;:I
.,li/:htly different series of seven colours whicli c:ln : ~ l \ oI)(- ~ . ~ l r c.I\- l ~
I rlwesenting the seven Tones. These arc the c o l o ~ ~ Ir,Is r III. I . . I ~ I I I J ~I W ,

N,tture's own gift of chromatic beauty. Thc scvcn C I I ~ O I I I - ~01. 1111-


I .I inbow are violet, indigo, blue, green, yellow, r II.;III!:I. .111tl I-rtl.

I'llcse, and the entire span of the spectrum, are 1wu;llly tlrpit trtl i l l .I
, X I r;iight line, one colour blending into the other from vic IICI . ~ t c 1111.
red at the other. Yet it is more revealing, and cl~>.;rv- Irr I
behind all things, to position the colours ; ~ r r ) t ~ n111(. ~l
ference of a circle. It is then possible to see how t l ~ r%OI;II,
.>l,r-cuumrelates to the circle of the zodiac, which in itsclf is t.rllrr.-,
,.ivc of the total number of twelve Tones.
If the spectrum is placed around only about two-thirds of t l ~ r
I ~vrrallcircumference of the circle, we find that these must indctrl \>c.

111ccorrect positions for each of the colours, for the different s h ~ d c s


; I I Y positioned in such a way as to be exactly opposite their complc-
lrlrntary colours. This is a fact which has long been known, but its
.iipnificance overlooked. U'hcn two colours are complementary. it
Incans that when they are conihincd they have the effect of cancell-
ing each other out, the rcsult o i thc ir~ixturebeing grey. In other
words, any pair of complcmc.n~:~ry cc)lours are the yang and the-yin
:~.;ptctswhich radiate forth from r l i t ccntre on their particular axis o i
I I W circle. In astrology this 11;t.i its direct parallel in the principlr 01
ol'ljosi~~gsigns, which facc c;tch other across the six axes 01- 111(.
votli;~~..
'1'11~. fact that the solar-spcctrum only encompasses aho~rt I W I I
1hirtl5of the circle is also tliought-provoking, and may link W I I11 I l ~ r -
1';lcr r l l ; ~ tthe seven major cosnlic Tones are said to hc n1or.r 1.u' ,I 1 ' 1 1 1
So similar are the properties of tone and of colour that during the . ~ n t lt;lngihlc in their effects throughout the univcrsr I ~ I . I I I r l ~ c . II!,~.
1920s and '30s a number of musicians branched off into an entirely rninor l'cmcs. These five minor Tones (sometirnrs c . ~ I l t . t l ' I ~ I I I ~ .' I I ,I
independent artistic movement of colour-music. For example, key- '5rcrcr' Tones), as represented in colour, wcl111tl , I ( ( ~ I ~ I I I I 1111-
1111

boards were constructed which played, not musical notes, but beams 1-1-nlnininpthird of the circumference. And sin(.(.~ I I I l I~ c - c ~ I vI ~r t r t i l t *.
S
'THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE PHYSICS OF T H E O M 22 5

111isremaining portion of the circle would still be comple-


I . ~ l r r . 1111 a IIIII..Again, this 'circle' is actually only onc. ~ . c . v o l ~ ~of ~ i o;I nspiral.
I~II.III;II.~colours t o the solar-spectral colours opposite them, it is , \ I I I I Ithe I ~ ~360° circuit, the scvcn m;~jor;111dlive. I I I ~ I I ~ I11otc.s
. of
~l~c.rr.Iol.cpossible t o know which colours they are. Opposite the 1 1 1 t . 11l11sica1octave take up their twclvc. posit i o ~ ~,I(,: , orcli11;11cs of (,I)
&

r.ol.tr-spectral colour of green, for instance, is a purplish-red, and 1111. twelve zodiacal signs and tlirir l'oncs. I ~ o l l o ~ v i ~ I ~I I! ~: . sl>ir;~l
c~plwsiteto yellow-green comes a bluish-purple. l I t twn, we descend into lowrr octaves :tnrl C V C I I I II;III y inrt l r l ~ 111;111cl-
c
"l'he total 360' circumference could accurately be called an II)I(.subsonic range of vibration. Abnvc t11c ; 1 1 1 t l i l 1 l c I.;ln,i:c- wc. cnlrr
'octave' of colour. But to put our conception of this colour-zodiac I I I I O the supersonic range. Strictly spc.;~kiri!:, 1111. s t ~ ~ ~ I I iI t. C I L I ~ ~ I I C ~ ~
into a larger perspective, we should note that it is not a closed circle b.l,ir;~l cannot be said to be a part of the ol~*t 1 % I t C . ~ I I I C I Iy~
II.IIII~;I~:III.I
at all, but rather, one 360' turn of a spiral as seen from above. That *.lr~r;il : the latter consists of electroniagnc~ri t v il)r $III.IT;~S
is, the arc of the circle continues around once more, and again and , . l ~ ~ ~vibrations
nd are literally physic;il in LII;II I I I T ~ IIC.. ~ i r .
again, both anti-clockwise and clockwise, but at a lower and a I Iilwcver, all can be seen to be derivcd frc1111V I ~ I ~ : I I I(. I,.vc.l
'l higher plane. The spiral of light-frequencies passes upward into the I 11 mother. Therefore all that there is - 1111 1n;irlc.l.. ,111 tbllt.l!:y

i~
ultra-violet spectrum and downward into the infra-red, passing in ~ntlccdcomposed of nothing more and nothing Icss I 11.111 . vi111.II i t 111.
each case beyond the range of our visual senses. Thus, the visible 'I'he illumined sage has always known this t o I,(. I 1-111..Morc.: II(-
octave of colour is but a note within a larger Octave, which is in ves in all of nature its essentialy rhythmic forincl;~~io~~*.. 'I'II~.
itself only a tiny portion of the entire range of frequencies of the ~g and withering of the flower; the rising and rrl I in!: I )t I 111.
Word. he biorhythms of body, emotions and mind; the W : I X ~ I I / :. 1 1 1 t l
This entire range of vibrations is t h ; ~known ~ in physics as the w;tnlng of the moon; the ebb and flow of the tide; the cyclr.; o! 1 1 1 ~ .
spectrum of electromagnetic waves. I r l I:igurc 2 it can be seen that ..t.,lsons; and the movements of the planets and the stilrs - 1 0 1111:
the known range of this spcctnzrn cxrcncls from the point of zero t~~ystic these all testify of the Word and of the Music of the Slll~c,r l.\

cycles or vibrations per second to ;I l i l t lc. I)c.yoncl 1 02' or a trillion ~ f ~ ~ ~ psince ~ v all
e rmatter
, is but the warp and woof of vil)r,;~rion,
trilion cycles per second. Beyond that point of very high fre-
quencies our instruments are not yct ablc to rnc;tsllrc. The lower fre-
quencies to thesleft include the broad rangc ol' intluctive heat, and
the frequency used to convey electricity alonK 17owe~1. lines. Beyond Ii<qure2 :The Electromagtzetic Wave Spectrum
this come radio waves, and then the infra-rcil ~ ; I I I ~Beyond (I. the
range of visible light are the vibrations modern sc ic'nce has termed FREQUENCY (waves p a second)
l ultraviolet light, X-rays and Gamma rays. Fin;lIly c ~ ~ r nthe e cosmic
i
1
rays which are the highest frequency yrr I;IIOWII along the
103 106 109 I 101' 1o18 1021 1oZ4
electromagnetic spectrum.
I
'
This spectrum of electromagnetism is referrecl I O wen in modern
physics in terms of its 'octaves', for it is by n.uure a range of
-,

'1"'WCr I I
Radio or Heminn
I I I I I I
Ultra
I
Gamma
I I I
Cosmic
vibratory oct;tves, the entire known range cnco1111);1ssing about 70 waves violet rays rays
~~ octaves. It can l>(. sren from Figure 2 that thc r:ingc of visible light
liliesI + f r-
.C4
C

4
-
~1 , takes up only ;I tiny portion of the entire spc-ctrum. Curiously
enough, and as thnrlgh by grand design, of t h c total 70 octaves,
I 1 1 ~ 1 t llion
t heating Infra-
rcd
X-rays
' ,
visible light accounts for lust about exactly one octave. --
- -

I
l I THE IMMINENCE OF THE WORD
I In much the same way that thc. range of visible colour can be placed 4 I.1111gc.r WAVE LENGTHS ~ I I I ~,-II I- W
1 upon one 360' turn of the elcctromagnetic spiral, so too can an
l
octave of audible sound be placed around the circumference of a
I .#I, 'THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE PHYSICS OI:'I'tII!O M 227

111r.~ ~ ~ ~ r i c ~ , t l l y - r nman
i n d econsiders
d everything his eyes can see as 110. Jeep mystery is obvioi~sto ; ~ l l o l > c . l ~ - ~ ~ ~ i ~ l ill ics*tcrIn ~ r s .In the
I)c.i~~g,
quite literally, the W o r d revealing itself. i c o f tht' .Sri'~jl/c'rr/\ilw%t'i/iitq::
w~ rrds of the m ~ ~ scsitic
'L'hc mystic considers his very o w n body and consciousness t o be
;Ir~~;inifestation of the W o r d . H e considers the purified man t o be a Even if o n c has n o idea o f l h r fi~rn11.r(;yolo 1;1111;1ssry, 110
clear, sonorous note in thc symphony of life. And such a man inkling o f the mystical conct.l>ts ~ ~ ~ ~ c l ( . rII>(' l ~ it.rrt-nio~li:~l
~~,t:
therefore has the ability - even thc sacred responsibility - t o invoke chanting, n o understanding of t IN. r r . x t , I 111% n111sic r;~cli:~tc's
and send forth the energy of the W o r d to all life. This he is more than mere exotic charm. Mfith c l 1 1 1 y -,li?:l11. c ~ ( * t . ; ~ l ; i o r ~ ; ~ l
accomplishing even in silent meditation and in quiet prayer. But it is variations, the chant centres :t~.o\~ntl r r l i c . c,in!:Ir nolca - I n 1 1
implemented with an additional force when audible sound itself is what a notc! . . .
enrolled for the task. Wherever harmonious tones are sounding out, W h a t is fascinating about this cl1;1r11 in!! i \ I l t I I ~ i ~ c ' ~its .(-l~
there is the door opened t o higher dimensions of reality; there d o resonant depth, but a special voicc tc.c.l~nic~~~r I ~ I : I.I,I ~ . ( - I I I I I . I I ( - S
the invigorating, resurrecting energies pour into the physical world certain overtones so strongly as t o givr I IIC- ~ I I I ~ Y II.I (I .I ~11.11. * .I 11~' ~(
and radiate forth like a divine ,electricity of lifc. In this is found the monks a r e singing in harmony. Rut thr ~lcrpr.~-. 1 1 1 y \ t i t - links

original meaning and significance behind the bells of churches, between t h e proportions of tlic cosmos, oI' 1l1r IIIIIII,III I ~ r ) c l y
which so truly sound out the OM itself, nlong with dozens of and of t h e harmonic series (each pcrccptil~lcpitc,li i\ co~~nc-c 1rt1
beautiful overtones. Bells and Songs in the v;irious temples and with a particular part of the body - bctwscn sol;cl. l > l t . u ~. I~I I\L ~
shrines of the world wesc oriSil~;~lly 1i)r t l ~ cs ; ~ m cpurpose. And for forehead - which is its seat) are not, a d n i i t c c ~ l lS~~ I I I ( . I ~ I ~ I I ~ ;
the same reason Jo SuTi dc.r-vi.;llr.\ I ) l ; ~ I 111.NIli o r ,.lIyo7a (a double that can b e grasped at the drop of a hat.s4
flute). S o too Jo y0,1:i4 I>Iow I l ~ c ' ,\it~,~:ll ( ; I I I O I ~ or
I I )the Shankha (a
I O . . I I I ~ I 1 1 , I100c1 Forth, the spiritual
shell): to ; t t t u ~ ~1l1t.1115c'lvc.s
(* One particularly interesting aspect of the music, which h:~a :I !:rr:lt
o f t l i t . ) r l t . 'I'~)IIC,'' 1)caring upon its nature and purpose as an earthly reflection 01 1 1 1 ~
Long ;[go IIIC. /\;.l(.tL1 11wc11 0 I3lc1w r l l c . i r c011(.11 s11(.11 trumpets t o OM, is described by Peter Hamel:
invokc t l ~ c . O M . I ( ~ I . I W I I (sl~c.c*iiic.;~lly,
;II ~hc.riw 01' Venus). Even
today, I I I ~ rn~~-,ic. o f 'l'i1)c.r is w r y stroni:ly I t , ~ ~ r t ~ lupon
cJ the O n e peculiarity, which is also found in old Arabic traditions,
princil,lc 01- III(. Onc 'I'OIIC. In thc Wcstcrn .;(wa,rh 'I'il~etan music concerns t h e breathing technique used in playing the instruments.
night .;~.;lrr.c-lyII(. considered nlusic a t all, "Iur 1 4 , tl~~llliss its worth The breathes in through his nose without any break in
I;)r WOLIIJ
I.(+;I'~I)II I)c t o mist;tkc i t 5 ; I ( I I I ; I ~ significancc his playing - a feat which is made possible by the use of the
;~ntlIXII'P( I .:tm;c Anagarika Govinda ercpl;~ilis: mouth as a wind-reservoir. Ap;lrt from a slight darkening of the
tone, the sound can be prolonged without interruption more o r
'I'iltc.l.~rl ~ . i t ~ l . ~11111sic
l is not concerned will1 1 1 1 ~ . i:motions of less indefinitely."
t c ~ ~ ~ ~ v )i r~:~{(ll i v i t l t ~ ; ~butl i t ~with
, the rvrt lu.c.scnt, timdess
c . l t ~ ; t l i lr\
~ ()I'~ ~ ~ ~ i v clife, ~ lwhich our p e s s o ~ ~j c: )ys
r s ;in ~ l and sorrows l-I ARMONIC RATIOS AND PROPORTIONS IN NATURE
d o nor c.ui.;l ... T o bring us in touch wit11 Illis realm is the \'M deep enaagh, aadyori rrr rr~~,rirdrliy; the heart of rzature being r v ~ v -
pilrposc 01' ~ n c - c l iion ~ : ~;is~ well as of Tibetan rir u;11 music, which is rr,/rrremusic, ifyou can only rrvic l) 11. - Thomas Carlyle
built upon ~ I I ( - ilrc.l~c*s~ vibrations that an instrument or a human
voice can procli~cx.:S O I I I I ~ Sthat seem to come from the womb of I';lsr.i~~.~tingly enough, a nunihcr of the most basic of all t h r f:~ct*: . I I I ~ I
the earth or froni 111cclcpth of space like rolling thunder, the - nature disp1;iy ihc very same ratios that arc. I I I I I I I ~1 1~1
mantric sound of n;ttul,c.. which symbolize thc creative vibrations S . Hans Kayser is the author of sevcral hoolib. wl11411
of the universe, the orii:in o f all thingsa3 scientific fashion that the w h o l c - n ~ ~ n ~ lFt.I[ ~ .1 i1 P* I
~ C Sas the octave, the thirtl. i'it'lll . l 1 1 1 1 1 1 r 1 1 1 r 11
I Isuch
I I I I I S ~ C ; I II I ; I ~ ~ ~ ~ -
Few Westerners have lcarncd the full import behind each aspect of r o r r c \ ~ ) o ~ liJo an underlying numerical fr;~rnc.wr !I lc r .r l..! III!: III
Tibetan chanting and instrumental music; but even so, something of 11c-rriistry,; L I I ) I I I ~ Cphysics, crystallography. . I \ I I . o l l r r l l l \ l , .I! 1111r.~
6 1111 r ,
' P I '1'1 I I;. SECRET POWER OF MUSIC
THE PHYSICS OF T H E O M 229
i 1 1 ~ . t l ~ , t l ~botany,
sis,
etc.8'
1\11 I 11 rc~ccntly,the quite well-known musician, Gary Peacock, II~:#,II ;ind krypton are all inert gascs, ;incl ~ ( . r ~ t1101
l 1 0 cng;cgc in
I \ v ~ l ~ i ( . ;reactions.)
~l All this is highly su!:~:c-~~ivr01' lllc I~o.;sik)ility
1111 1.1 I I I ~ ) his
I ~ ~career to delve into the same area, undertaking a
a

I 11.t1I IIC seven rows of elements reprtscnt I lit- ~ . ; I r.!:o~-ic.:;


I ( ) I i-l(.lncnts
i o ~ ~ ~ ~ -studyy c ; ~ofr molecular biology and organ physiology. Among
r v l ~ i 11
t embody the frequencies and proprrl ic-q of (*;1t.11 01 111rsrvcn
Ilia findings was that the relationships in the periodic table of
clcnicnts, from which all matter is formed, resemble the overtone 111.1jorTones. (The number seven ;11so O C C I I ~ Y W,II);III I I ( , 1r111n;tn
structure in music. Peacock says, 'It becomes clearer and clearer t o Ill.lroniy, in such things as the sevcn m;tjor IIO~IIIIIII:II ! : l . ~ ~ l t I : . ;111tl 111r

nie that the actual structure of tone in music and the actual structure oqc.vc.n ventricles o r cavities of the skull.)
of matter are the same.' I n other words: matter is music. Other I'rogressing upward in scale from ;tron~ic(.II.I~II.III,. 1 0 1111.wot.IcI
researchers have found a relationship between sound frequencies and 1 11 c,rystals, w e find that crystals too arc iorn1.1l l C'.II C-!:,)l.i/c.tl ;I(IY 11.-
various physical - even notational - shapes. For example, j40 vs. 1l111y; to seven different types or cryst;tl systc*r115.' I ' l l c . .:rvc.r~C . I . ~ \ I . I I
300 frequency cycles per second displayed on an oscilloscope *y,crrnsarise out of the fact that crystals tcl~tl11 I IwI( )II!: I ( o11c0111
I II scven basic geometrical forms : cubic. rhoml)c ~llr~Ir..~l.
produces a minor seventh shape. . . I I ~ ' Y :III ~I , I:~I.
I I iclinic, monoclinic, trigonal and orthorhoml71c. I'II~I-, r II(*I,~. . I I . C
I n his book, The Power of Limits,86 Gyorgy D o n i has traced in
detail the exact similarities between the proportions and ratios found ,.l.vcn basic forms of crystal, rock a n d mineral. 'I'liic ; I ~ ; I ~ I >I I I , I I I \ 1 1 1
in the various branches of sciencc. Throughout the book these r l ~ c . seven types as being literally the respective cry\l;~lli;l;~~io~i.,,
proportions and ratios arc not spccific;llly pointed out t o be the same wirliin the mineral world, of the seven major frcclr~cncie~ 01 1111.
as those present in music. I7ut o n ;m r;trly page Doczi himself Word. Is the W o r d truly so far removed from our sensory c;cl>:tc,ili(.s
. I I I ~cveryday life, then, or is it simply that w e refuse to sc'ri
explains why. Quite simply, L111 of ~ h tl;u;~ c in his book, which links
physics with biology with astmnonly wi111;~rc.l~itecture a n d so forth, O n the subject of crystals, modern esotericists havc ofrc.11rr.c 0111-
can be explained in terms of music, hut this would open up t o o vast 111c.ndedcrystals, pictures of crystals, and models of the 1no1rcul.11
a subject in itself. Nevertheless, his Ix)ok i:, i~ll~crcritly associated .tlrrlcture of crystals as a subject for meditation. Contemplation i~pori
with the principles of music from covcr t o covr.1.. 'I'llr r;ctios which in I l~eirgeometry is said to provide a route by which the conscious~~csr-

music are known as the fifth and fourth inrcrv;~lsoccur again and o f Inan can attune itself to the various qualities of the Consciousness
I )f the Supreme.
again throughout nature. O n e highly specific p;~r:tllrlbctween music
and botany demonstrated by Doczi invo1vt.s I llc. :irr;lngc.ment of the
veins of leaves o n either side of the centr;~l\rc-111. Some leaves, I i A R M O N I C PRINCIPLES IN THE NATURAL
analysed in detailed diagrams, reveal nothink: I(..;s Illan a perfect I'SYCHOLOGY OF MAN
occurrence of counterpoint in the ratios and ~)~-ollo~-rions t o which I begin to understand more deeply thr rs.vence of our art (music) and it.$
thc vcins are arranged to the left and to thc rig111 4 1 1 r l ~ stem.
c cdtmtntal Power over the hirvrnr~saril, /Man, being a creature of nature
There arc in particular a number of fundamc,u~;~l occurrences in and subject to the cosmic itrf1rtmr.c.r /Illz/ inform all earthly beings, must
naturc of' the riumber seven. There are seven rrrws in the periodic ~ir~cc/.rhave been under the .srtlrly uf't/)rl/ mu.ric from his earliest dqs;
table of clcnicnts (hydrogen, helium to Aourint., Ilcbc,n to chlorine, l,/i organism reverberated wit/, it.; oibrdtion and received its rhyrhtlrir-
argon t o brol~~inc', krypton t o iodine, xenon tr) ,I.,~;LI
ine, and radon - Bruno Walter
trtrlrr11se.r.
to element l 1 7). A slightly different way of o r d c ~ , i the ~ ~ gelements is
t o give the t w o r;irc-earth series basically thcit- own rows in the 'I'!I~. 1111rsva1s and harmonic.; of nlusic, mirroring the geometry t r f I 11r
table, but still we find that this gives us scvcn rows of stable I ~ c . , r v c - ~ i \ may
, also be prc.;cnt 111 some mysterious way within 1101
elements, these rows beginning respectively with hydrogen, lithium, I I I I I ~l l ~ l~hysical
r form of man, but also within the patr crllk*I 11 III.,
sodium, potassium, rubicliurn, cesium and hafnium. The seven rows I ~ ~ y c l i o l o gIty .has oftcn been pointed out, and evcri c ' l l t l ~ r . 1 ) o l b k . .
of the periodic table of clcnicncs arise out of the fact that a number wrictcn on the sl~bject,that the architecture of prrviotl*. I I I I I ~ - . I I I I ~ Y I
of different elements tend to display similar physical properties, and tll\l~l.~yrcl r;~tiosand proportions such as arc fnuntl ~ I 1111-
I 1 1 1 1 1~ \ .II~.III
are therefore listed together. ( T o give an example: helium, neon, rl1114c.I:rnm the constructions of ancient (;rc.c-~c. 1 1 1 I 1 1 t t . . ( 111 I 111.
I I I I ) I * ~ . recent ~iiedieval and Gothic pcricl[l\. ~ I I ~ . I ( . r..ul*.l III.III~
'THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE PHYSICS OF THE OM

I of
s.1111l~1t.e h~ildingsbased almost entirely upon the intervals of of man is in itself full of inip1ic;rtions. .Yet
...
wr. should .
not
..
I II r.~vr.fifth, fourth and so on. The same ratios are also found in the .~lw;iysimmediately assume that all sirch i r ~ r i MJN!~
W I I I lis of the g a n d master painters. At times these ratios in art and 1111kcd to genes, chromosomes, etc. for t o c111 lc trap
. I I ( l~itcctureoccur with a frequency and precision that can only be 111 ~naterialism. Ur-song may bc drnior~! l1 1hc

(.ortscious and deliberate; at other times it seems likely that the ratios I l11 ~ ~ gprocesses
ht and the natural flow 01' bncclc )usnc.\c \ W rr1c.11I 'IS so
were included unconsciously, because they 'seemed right'. Yet of the ~r~linhibited and spontaneous in inf;~nrs). I ~ I . tl~c~rrr~c~lv~~c :.IIIIII.~IOW

conscious and unconscious occurrence of such harmonic ratios, it is lrnkcd to the harmonic which t l ~ r; t ~ ~ ~ . i Ir~~cl~l lci c ~ 1v c0~IN.~ l
difficult to say which is the more astounding and ridden with deep I llc foundations of the universe.

implications.
That such ratios can occur unconsciously seems to be supported 'TOWARDS A GRAND UNIFIED FIELD TI I E( )I( Y ( ) I
by the phenomenon known as Ur-song. This phenomenon takes us I'HYSICS
deeper still into the natural framework of the human mind. For Ur- Olrr data thus far suggests that the entire univt-rev I I I . I ~ . 1 1 1 1 - 1 1 . I)r
song is the name given to a fundamental type of melody that infants 11;lscdupon vibration; that vibration may be the l u n r l ; ~ ~ r ~I cI . I.I~I I ~I ~ ~ . .~l

everywhere in the world scem to sing quite spi)ntaneously, without 111' each and every energy form known t o sciencc. Y 1.1 t I r ~ I- r ~l j r - I l 9 . 1 1 1 1 , I

having learned it from their parents or the cultitre around them. O n I~ossibilitymore astounding and mind-stretching ~ l i : ~; nI I I ~wc- I1.lvlm
the face of it, there is no obvious reason why children, if they yct touched upon: the potential of bringng forth ;I ' ~ ~ ; I I I I 1I 1 1 1 i l~ r . r l
melodies spontaneously, should not I~cginwith any of the I icld theory'.
infinite variety and number of different toncs ;IIIJ tone-relationships. W e have already seen that, though using their own tcrnlinl l l ~ j ~ : ~ ,
The notes of the Western cfi;itonic scnlc arc., ;ifter all, but a few 1)oth the authors of the Upanishads and the ancient Chinc\c. wc.~c.
points on a spectrum of tone-frctlircncic-s t1l.11 :~c,tuallyincludes an ~.crtainthat a form of sacred vibration was the source ; t r l t l 1.1--11
infinite number of points or minutcly-tliifcr~~r~t pitches. Yet in all rlirture of all the forces in the universe, including light (whirl1 wc1111cl
lands, children from the age of ciglltceri rl~clntl~c t o two and a half .~lsoinclude the entire electromagnetic spectrum, since light ic 1,111
years have been found to spontancoi~sl~ sin!: mc.lociic fragments orlr narrow waveband within it). Let us note in this resprct 111r
with the intervals of second, minor third. nntl rn.~ic)rthird. Thence, in interesting fact that ultrasonic sound vibrating a glass rod causes 1 1 1 ~ '
their second and third years, while systemar i t . ; l l l y c-xploring the use rod to emanate both heat and light. In other words, this is a drmon-
of these intervals in what may be a very i r n p o ~ . t ;clcvelopmental
~~~~ strable example of sound energy becoming the energies of both hc;it
psychological process, children then g o on t c I i ~ l c . l l l c l ~fourths
' and kind light.
fifths. (A descending third is a pitch differcnt.~(11. interval such as Physicists are today searching for Einstein's dream, a unified
that between 'this' and 'old' in the tune 'Tl~i\o l t l rnan . . .'. An I'icld theory that could, in onc go, cxplain all the forces of nature.
example of a fourth is the interval between 'Don ' .~rrcl'-ald' in 'Old 'I'hcre is even the hope of finding ;I grand unified field theory that
MacDonald had a farm'.) Only at the agc of' thrrc. cloes the par- would Icombine in one theorctic:il cxpl;~nationand one basic underly-
ticular musical style of their own culture bcgin I I I influence them, in!; h)rfce all the dynamic qu:~li~ics o f the smallest and most fi~nd:~-
thus putting nn cnd to their spontaneous and i~rtlcpmdentexpres- 1111~111:l1 yet known 10 scirnce. Such a discovery woirltl
sions of the Ur-song. (UYis a German prefix for ori!:inal, primeval.) revolutionize all of .;cic.~lceand all of life, openin!: 1111
In 197 3 the conlposer and conductor Leon:trtl Hcrnstein, in his vnble technological po.;.;il)ilities.
Charles Eliot Norton Icctures at Harvard, descrilxd the Ur-song of ~rdingto the data wr h;tve discussed so far, thc pllv\lt ie.1..
the world's children as an ; ~ r c h e t ~ ppattern.
al H c said that the song ~r~vo~vcxl in this search may rlo worse than to look t o disirttr~n, I . .
consists of a repetitive, dcsccnding minor third, often accompanied Ilc-inl; the key to such a discovery. In their search for t111- I I ~ I I I I I . I I ~
by another descending step to a fourth. In his opinion, Ur-song is ljowrr hchind all manifestation, they should, perli;tp~.,I I I I ~ II!#IIII\.
the joint product of the pliysic;~llaws of harlrnny, and of the innate. I,yp,~cs11rr. starcmcnt of St John:
genetic pattern of all human beings."
The concept of the diatonic scale being written into the genetic e Word, and t h Wnr,l
~ 1,:rl t , s t t l ~ (,,I,/, , r r t , /
2 3.2 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE PHYSICS 01; Tli l i O M
the W o r d was God ... A l l things were made by him; and without ~ l l i l l matter
~: and dynamic energy, 1-1I - I I . , '1r1ill11.1.' ( X I I I ~ I ~ Cwith
S t h ~
him was not any thing made that was made. 1 1 1 illlcval Celestial Waters of the a n c i r ~lil:ylfli.~~~s.
~~ f<y 'c!yn;~nlic
tl,~.~c' is meant God made rnanifcst; IT~(';II>~IIJ; . L I ( . S ~ ~f
1111. , ( ~ Ithc ~I
The last great unification within physics took place over a century Word into the Celestial Waters. Tllc tlrscrnt 01 IIII',V I I , I - ; I I ~ W I~O ~ C V
ago when Maxwell revealed that magnrtism and electricity were /:ivcs rise, at its different frequency-lrvrl.;. I r ) ,111 I l ~ r~ . i ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ o ~ ~ ~ ~ l
really different apsects of the samc forr,c. It is literally the result of I lil'lcrent forms of energy. But the imll() l , ~ . i s , . 111.11 ; i l l IIIV

this unification that today we have television sets, microwave ovens, It I I ~ ~ w nenergies represent only the de.frt*~rt 1. 11 O I I I S I I ~ I - ~ I
and thousands of other inventions. If W C wcre to tap the source of 1 1 1 1 0 matter. These energies represent ~ , I I I 1111.~ I ~ ~ ~ ! ; ~ tlrn~il'i~.;~.
r<\i~r
an even more fundamental unification of forces, the possibilities of the vibration - from cosmic I.,IYS IIIIOII!:II ',IIIII w.Ivrs ;IS
would be almost boundless. N o mattcr how mind-wrenching these slrgnetism, electricity, light and heat, :111d~ I I ~ I, 1,1 1 t l i l ,.c 1 1 1 1 1 ~ 1 . I I I ( I
possibilities may be, the potential to rc:~lizcthcm follows by straight- ~.tngible,material vibrations.
forward and uncomplex logic oncc i t I > c c o ~ ~possible ~cs to convert all 'l'he realization of the implication o f this rl1;l y provitlt. III(. kr.y 1 1 ,
forms of energy into any other. The potcnti;~lfor technological llnlock the scientific discovery of the agc. Fr)r c i - ~ ~ ; ~1 ,iI cl Il r'%r~lc'l.it
advancement that a grand unificd ficl'l tllcory would open up would qrl~ools which are said to have preserved int;~cr ~lcr11c.1-11:. 01 I I I ~ .
actually be no more magical or mir:~ci~lo~~s I ~ I ; I I I that opened up by c brigirlal ancient wisdom have this t o say: that thc v i l w ; ~ ~ \ o~
Maxwell. After all, a television srt or tligi~i~l watch would have tloes not move in 'straight lines' - but, in a scnsc, in circlrs. 11
seemed miraculous to the n i n c t t . c ~ n t l ~ - c c * ~l11;tn. i ~ ~ ~ ~just
y as the wordS, the W o r d does not forever become progressively 11f.m
~otentialsstemming from a nrw, wic11.r 1111.or~ \ o ~ ~ r justl d as startling vibration. Like the reflection of a ripple off the bank of a pollcl, 111r
to us at first. For instance, clrctric~iry , li,:l11 , I I I ~ I 11r;tt would all be vibratory force reaches a point in its 'arc of descent' ;II w l ~ i c l ~
interchangeable with gravip. This we I I I I ~ II I I J I\(. i~ JX bssible to develop cxtrernes meet, after which the vibrations begin ascending in fi,c.[lrrcrr~v
machines for levitation. to cnnvcri gr;1v11y i l l 1 1 li!;l~lor heat, or even I , R c ~ to the planes of Spirit. The point of the return is arrivcxl ; I t
to make gravity from clectricity. il~l(.~,!!y~ . I ) I I I ~ I)c I transferred Iwtween cathodicity and magnetism. From here on, just as v i b r ; ~ t i o ~ ~
(probably in the form of what modcrn p l ~ y \ i c I .rlls 'gluons') from
O,
hrought substance into being, even so does it once more carry it out
higher planes of existence into the physic ;II I ~ I . ~; I ~I I~~vice-versa. (. of being. Thus there exists, it is said, a 'Night Side of Nature' - ;I
Thus, instant materialization and dcrnnl ( * I . I . I ~I ( ~ 111' / ,should
II be rcalm of nature and of force which it is possible for man t o tap, and
possible as a matter of course. in which all the known forces have their opposites. Here, positivc
Opening the door for waves of forcc t o ( . I ~ I (Is(.~ly + I . into the polarity becomes negative, cold hccon~csheat, and gravity becomcs
material world would also enable man to t : ~ l , i l l f i r ~ i r c . sources of gravity-repulsion. Between thcsr two rxtremes. a neutral point can
omnipresent energy. Such supplies of infinite., o ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ i l > energy rcscnt 1,c reachcd, and this provides t l ~ kcy t to tht ~racticalapplication of
would expose as false the very concept that V I I ~ . I . ! : ~ is 'limited' or anti-gravity as well as numerous olhcr developments.
that its available supply is 'dwindling'. Therc :II.~. ~.r;~lly no limits to
what might become possible if ever a grand unil ic ;I[ i c 111 theory were ASTROLOGY AS THE MUSIC OF THE SPHERES
brought forth. 111rffcct, it would be the 'theory' o I tllc Word itself;
and as the Bible :~J:cmantlyreminds us. ' W ~ ~(;ocl I I all things are There's not the ~mallestor17 ,(d,il-hthe# behuldest,
possible'. All thc cvidcnce seems to tell us th;tt ;III of nature does I3ut in his motion like an 11t1,4clrings,
indeed f~~nction by virtue of one fundamentill iorcc. The theory, \l111 quiring to theyorttqs-ryc,l/cherzxbims;
then, can be said to bc ;ilre:ady there, just waiting to be plucked from .\rrih harmony is m imuror~alsouls,
the tree of abundancc. whilrt 1hi.r muddy zJestirrt'of decay
Relevant to all of this ;irr the teachings of modern esoteric Dorh grossly close it m, we cannot bear it.
schools: that though the univcrsc and its many diverse phenomena
and forms of energy may appear complex, the Creation is in essence
extremely simple. Only two force principles are at work in every-
THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE PHYSICS OF THE OM
i.ll;~ngcaccording to the movements of the sun, the moon and the 11 tll~lcncesimultaneously affects people living in tli ff'crcnt rcgions of
I~lanets.The study of the effects of these changes in vibration was r l ~ c * world, and has been found to continuc rhvcn in cxpcrir~lrntal
thc science of astrology. According to the ancients, the astrological ..~~I,jccts placed six hundred feet under ground."'^"'
harmonics change in such a way as to affect all of matter and life. '['he moon also affects geomagnetic activity o n c:~rrli.;lnd this
This idea is widely held. Though it receives its most famous I I I . I ~account for at least somr of its docunicntr~linll~lrlicrsovcr lil'c.
exposition in Pythagoras' Harmony of the Spheres, a similar 11 was reported by Harold L. Stolov xntl A. (;. W . (.:;~lnc.rol~i t 1
concept can bc traced to a number of ancient cultures. In the above 1064 that their analysis of 3 1 years of d ; ~ trrvc;~lr(l :~ ; I I I :tvr.l,:isr 01' ;I
quotation we find the notion emcrging even as comparatively I I ~ I per I ~ cent decrease in geomapcric :~ctivity tl~lt.in~! 111rS ~ V ~ tI.~ys I I
recently as Shakespeare. (Hcre, Sliakcspeare also agrees with the I~rcccdingthe f d moon, and a four per crnt :Ivrr;l!!r i11c rv;I.;c t l u l . i ~ ~ { :
traditional esoteric concept that the clivine man can 'tune in' to, and 111cseven days following the full moon. 11iot1,1:h 1111-.~(. 10111- prr i.(*tit
be aware of, the heavenly harmony, hut that the ordinary dense li!:urcs may not seem large, a statisticill ;~li;ilvsi\\IIOW\ 111.11 III(.Y
mortal is too far out of alignnient with tl~i.; harmony even to be II;IVC 'a less than five per cent probability ot' I i ; ~ \ ~ i i ~( j, I: ( I I I . I - I ' ~ ~ I ) y
aware of it. This much is clear iron1 tlic. last three lines of the r JI:ILIC~ alone.94
quotation..) The planets are much farther away from r:~rthth.~n1111. 111111111,
What evidence is there for the scirncc- ( 1 1 :rstrology being valid, ,tnJ sonne are at a far greater distance from us t h ; u ~cvclt ll\r .;r111, Y c-I
and for the concept that it is I>a.;c.tl I I ~ M I I I vibrations from the I llcre is strong evidence that they too exert an influencr c)vcnl.rvc-l~l'i
heavens ? I 111 eartlh. J. H. Nelson demonstrated over 30 years :tgr) I 1i:11 t 11c
i IN.. .~\trologyitself is rapidly
Whatever its modus o p ~ r r l ~ dni;~y l)o~itionof the planets it is possible to predict changrss in 1I1r clln,
emerging from the misty rc;~lms01. ~ I I ~ ) ~ . I . i\ I~ i o l i ,newspaper columns which in turn affect the earth's magnetic field, thus spoilin!: r;ltlio
and ignorant laughter. to cst;~l>lisl~ itsr-ll . I \ :I v;ilid science. It '
~rceptions.~The alterations in earth's magnetic field ;~lstI ;I f'l'rrt
accomplishes this the more frccl y ; I I I ~l l ; ~11'\51 i ~ ~ when it enters the living creatures. Nerve activity, for example, is known to hr sul~tly
halls of science in disguise, rlndcr ;IntIrllc.r II.IIII(': [here exists a 1111luencedby all such changes. Also, as the planets move arouncl in
growing body of information cullc~il 1ro111 ~,lt~sics,statistics, tllcir orbits, corresponding variations have been found t o take pl;~ce
astronomy, chemistry, psychology and, in 1x11-I i c I I ~ . I ~I)iology,
, which i l l the electrical potential of t r ~ c s . ~ "
indicates all manner of influences which t11c. * < I I I I . I III' moon and the Regarding human beings - ; ~ n dapproaching closer to the subject
planets exert over life on earth. Astrology C l v , 1 1 1 ~I IIII(#I. name smells OS astrology proper - Michxcl G a i ~ ~ u e l has i n conducted a series of
just as swcet! *.~;~tistical surveys over a numhcr of decades into the correlations
-4 number of marine creatures such as oy\tc-lL4II.IVI. Iwcn found to llrtween character and the astrologic;tl conditions at birth. His
be sensitive t o the position of the moon irrc\llc.c I I V ~ .01' whether or I'indings have been widely rcportcd, and the reader may well be
not they are in water and can feel the t i d ~ . ~ ' ()lher ' ~ ~ ' ' creatures I:~tttiliarwith them already. Thc most important of them are sum-
respond to the moon's 28-day cycle. Onr. of 111(~11i, the worm il in his book, The Cortrtit- Cloc.~,s."'Briefly, Gauquelin found
Platynereir drr/m~rilii,swarms to the surface of I 11(. #,(..Icvery time the o be strong statistici~lct)rrcl;~rionsbetween the astrological
moon reach- its last quarter.9u It has been diu ovcrrd that potato present at birth and t t ~ tr ype of profession later taken I I by ~
tubers react to thr position of the moon: thcy tli<pl:~ychanges such 111, ii\licluals. For example, pllysici;~nsand medical doctors rendtd t t I
as in their rnetnhollc rate according t o whethn or not the moon is II.IVI. I,rm born when Mars or Sitturn had either just risen or li:~tl
above the horizon, i\ :II its zenith, or whether i t i\ setting." r t I their highest posit ion in the sky. O n the other Ii;~ncl.I I I ~ .
. ~ t r . ~ i ~ l to
As for the influcncc o f the sun, it is now conimonly known that . I ~ I it. I ~ ~ > f e s s i oincluding
i6.l ns, musicians, painters and writrr.:. I r.tl~lrcl
all manner of events - lx)litical, social, military, scismolcgical, 111 11 1 0 I~lrnishindividuals who had been born at such tin~c-~. A ~;',III~:
atmospheric and biolog~c;~l - occur in cycles of about eleven years, )111itc,ri l l thc birth sign tended to be found in thr 11i1-I 11 11.11 I , , I 11(

apparently following the regular eleven-year cyclcs of sunspot 1" ,111 ic.i;~~ls and soldicrs, but rarely in those of scicnt i \ t <
activity. By altering the earth's magnetic field, sunspot activity has
been found t o affect the internal processes of human beings. This
.' 11, THE PHYSICS OF THE OM 237
'SHE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC
'1'1 I E IyLANETS SUITE . .I I I ~whines
"11 and hisses of the magnetosphere and beamed them
earth. These were then speeded up and played through a
All 111ismay mean that there is, after all, something to astrology.
liut is there any evidence that the astrological influences of the iynthesizer, and the waves were indeed found to consist of a
I ~ c ; ~ v ebodies
n l ~ work in some way that is related to vibration, or to f melody. O f the waves, D r Hunt, a British scientist who
:I sort of celestial music? Perhaps there is. From the study of our q%rtllnccl with NASA on the Voyager project muses that, 'Perhaps
own planetary body we do know that it is possible for planets to 111c-y will reach Top of the Pops in years to come.'
'chime' like a gigantic musical instrument. Seismographs first II' 1 . 1 planets
~ do radiate tones across the void to each other. then
revealed that the earth 'rings' with deep vibrations when the 1.1, Iors such as their relative orbits, orbital speed, ancl distance from
powerful Chilean earthquake of 1 9 6 0 was noticed to have sent ~ I I IitnotherI. could be expected to be very important f;tc.tors in deter-
oscillations throughout the sphere, the 'chime' being reduced in rr1111ingthe harmonic results. This sets one's mind imnlediatcly to
'volume' by a half every two days. Of course, these vibrations were t l ~ ~ ~ ~ of k i tBode's
lg Law.
far deeper than could be heard as audible sound, having a wave- I\odcls Law is one of the most clear-cut astrnnr~~iiical rnrssagrs
frequency of li 3.1 and also 54.7 minutes. Since 1960 many other 111.11 the universe has to offer us in order to convince man o f thc

chimes, more subtle in volume, have been recorded on these same ~l~lct.r.rnt order and meaning within the Creation. It was J o l l ~ n I). ~i
two pitches. (Interestingly enough, these pitches of the earth are I ' I ~ I I IinS ,1766, who first discovered the Law, but six years 1;itcr
twenty octaves below the audible range of man, whereas the tone of It~l1.111n Bode did a better job of drawing attention to it, so t l i ; ~ tit
the atom is twenty octaves :thovc i t ; rllus the hearing of man is .~i~r.rwards became known as Bode's Law. Titius had noticrd that
placed mid-way bctwccn tllr wo~.l~ls of t l ~ cn1;tcrocosrn and those of 111 of the planets known to astronomers in his day possrsscct mean
the microcosm.)'" ( $ 1 l i ~ a ldistances from the innermost planet, Mercury, thcsc. orl)its

If other planc~s.ilso L ~ I ~ II I II I111is ( . I:tsl~iol~, it would be quite con- I l1.4 I ~mingprogressively greater by the ratio of 2 :1 as tllc planets
ceivable for tl1c*111 )
I( I : l ( l i . t ~r (-11.1
t I I )nl.t!:rit.i i t v il~rittionsof extremely I l l e rr;tsed in distance from the sun. That is, Earth was twicr ;IS far

low frequency ;rcross 111t. v o i t i . 111us inciu~~in!:1.c.sonatlce and har- 11,1111Mercury's orbit as was Venus, Mars was twice as f:tr fro111
monics in cnch orlirr. (:t.rt;ti~~ly rllc pl;tncts :Irr ' i l l c ol~tact'with one h1rrcxry as was Earth, and so on. The ratio 2 :1 is, of coursc, the
anothcr in rill 11i);llrrr;tngcs of' tlir electronl;~~:~lrr i t spectrum, since I .tlio of the octave itself, and so it was as if thc pla~lcrr;Iornicd a

each srncl O I I I l)owc.rf;~l radiatiom of radio ;~ntlother waves. Yet U 11,rin of octaves, each next planet reprcsrntin~nnc oc.~;tvc.The
there art rvrn inilic;t~ionsthat incredibly deep vil)r;ttions in the fre- tl~*.t;tncesinvolved were not exactly of thc r;llio 2 : I , hltt wcrc near
qilency r:tn!:ca of only one wave per forty seconil~(111c;tningthat the t.,lou~hto suggest to early Europcan ;tstrnrtorllc.rsrll;ct a definite law
W;IVCS i11.c 1 ~ 1 c . 1 1 s('vc11million miles long) travrl tl~roughthe flux of : sort might be involved.
space."" 11s yr.[. tl~cscwaves are still cloaked in n~ystrry. vever, there was a gap in t h c ch:tirt 01' octaves: there existed
Thr sun i~sc.IS11;tsbeen described as a 'grr;tr nltlsical instrument' ~ w n$anet between Mars ;t11t1 111pilcrwhere, according to
by Dr M:trtin Pomerantz of the Bartol Rcsr-;trch Foundation, Law, there should havr I~cl r11 0 1 1 t - . l-'hen, in 1 8 0 1, Giuseppe
discovered Ceres, a planc~c: l i t 1 with ;.I diameter of 480 miles
Newark, I)cl:tw;~~.c.. I>r Pomerantz and others 1i:tvc detected oscilla-
tions on the .;IIII'S surf;tce which they bclicve originitte from acoustic ~rbitedalmost exact1y whrr Hodc's Law had predicted that
I'
or vibratory w;tves inside the fiery sphere. Eighty overtones or . I I I I . I I I P ~should. Not only did Illis cilscovery fulfil for Bode's Law

different kinds of vihr;ttion have been observcd. with periods of ~ I i r b.1.111tlard supporting facrr~rnec:cssary for any scientific law: that
1 1 m . l , ~ , l ~ l t l be able to predict fttrtllcr discoveries; but Piazzi had not
from two to eight rnint~t~s.
1 1 . 1 1 1 111r Iraw in mind at all when he discovered Ceres. H e had
These oscillntions. :IS well as the radio waves of space, have been
transposed into audihlc sollnd. The results, though interesting, , . I I I I ~ J yI III.~II making routine observations for a catalogue of star posi-
cannot really be said t o correspond with music as we know it. 1 1 4 111.. 1 ..11 W , hundreds of other ~lanetoidswere also discovcrcci

However, Saturn's magnetosphere produces waves which, when tr11tl1111 1 1 1 ~ . s:irnt orbit, and the orbit became known as tlir nstrroid

transposed into sound, have been described as 'a slow, dreamy 111.11 ' I l l ( . .ts~croids appear to be the remains of a plztnct whicll oncc
melody'. When Voyager 2 drew dose to the ringed world it ~ i c k e d I, uIIrlwr.tl tl~i-,orhit, but was somehow mystcrinrlsly ilrsrroycti. This
.l IH THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE PHYSICS OF THE OM 239

11 ,rnlcr planet has by some been posthumously called Maldek. 1111-~risclves with the observation that, 'It is probably a mere
Morc discoveries were to follow in the fulfilment of Bode's Law. tttl~~cidcnce'!In fact, a science based upon m;lterialism can say
1 s t )I. since 17 72 there have come the discoveries of Uranus, Neptune ~llttl~ing else, no matter how many morc pl;tnrts 11li#l11.yrt be
.11it1 Pluto. Of these three, Uranus and Pluto have mean orbits lI16.(1,vcredin accordance with the Law. (Thr d;iv lipon which thc
cxtrcmely close to the exact distances necessary to complete two ' Y I',~ctor'of God is finally admitted and rrincc~rpor:~lccl Il;~ckinto
further octaves. Neptune has sometimes been cited by reductionist IIII. scientific outlook of man will hr a siKniiic;~nrr l ; ~ y indrccl.
materialists as evidence that the Law is no law at all, since the planet I'rrhaps no event more than this will sipn;~lrhr ii>rni;~l ;lrr.iv;~lo f lhc
does not fall upon an octave position. Yet in fact it is located almost 1\1l11;1rian Age, in which religion is to hc mrlrcs scic-ntil'ir,, ;111dsci~ni.(-
exactly half--way between Uranus and Pluto, as though to fill in the 1111,r.c religious, for the perfect wedding o1'tIir I WO.)
half-octave position. Table 3 shows the exact distances of the llode's Law concerns itself with the distan1.c.s 0111 I'ro~iiM c.rcl1l.y
octaves going out from Mercury, taking Earth's orbit to be two ~ I rllc I orbits of the planets; but therc may ;il'ic, rxisr olhrr. I~:~rl~lonic-
units out, and shows too the actual distances of the planetary orbits I lws. unnoticed by astronomers, which conccrn t l ~ c u cl~c.c.tI.~ 111 r l l c

themselves. Itl.~~lrts' movements around in their orbits. Litcr;~lly.tIi~.\v.;l~c.c.tls. O I I


I 111- harmonic level, would represent the planets' pitcl~-l't.c.cl~~c.~~~ in. 11
Table 3 : Bode's Law I I I . I ~ therefore be the case that when planets comc i r l l c , C O I I ~ I I I I I1 i o 1 1

w 11 l1 one another (i.e. become arranged in a more-or-lcss cr ~.II,I;III I I I 11.


Planet Perfect Octaves: Mean Orbits: l:,ulig out from the sun) that 'chords' are produced. Wh;tr is ir~rvrc*s~ -
units of distance ;ictual units of III,I! in this respect is that a number of regular planetary cc~njl~rj<~ion.;
from Mercury distance from Mercury #lt t . 1 1 ~over particular periods of time which, in their ratios 1.0 C:I,.II

Mercury 0 0 1*111rr, reflect with considerable accuracy the ratios of length wliic.li
. I I I- rlccessary to produce the diatonic notes of an octave.
Venus I 1 .l This is best illustrated in diagrammatic form. Figure 3 shows ;I
Earth 2 2 I I I I ~representing an octave, divided into seven intervals by cieht
Mars 4 3.7
Asteroids 8 Aplwox 8 I !~:rrrc3 :Planetaty Cot~junctronsas 'Chords'

Jupiter 16 16
Saturn 32 30.j
Uranus 64 62.6
Neptune ( 6 4 X 1+=96) 98.9
Pluto 128 130.1

Could there be further planets yet to be discovered, also keeping


to the predicted orbits of the Law? If so, the nearest would be twice
as far out as Pluto, and therefore not an easy body to locate.
What do contemporary astronomers themselves say of the Law?
Smaller astronomical texts rcfer to the Law merely as 'a curious 1 1 1 ~ . IIIII. tq1111cl ;is well, for instance, be the string of .I I l l r r - \IIIII,:I*II
numerical relationship', without even mentioning the essential fact IIIII.~I~ .I! i~~~trurnent. Planetary conjunctions t;~kr r i l . ~ c r I , V ( -III I I I V
that it completes a series of octaves. More detailed texts content 1,4 0 r r ctirll: 1 0 there samc ratios that divide up rhr Ivn!:~ 11 I r t I Ilr *,r I 111);.
.'.II) 'SHE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE PHYSICS OF THE OM 241

I I I I I I ~cli;igram,
~ the numbers below the line, beginning with 24 on I~IIVIICY (such as cosmic rays and beyond) could crcate - and sustain
I I I ~Icli, show the numbers of years involved; while above the line I 1 Ilr present moment - atoms and worlds.
I I
.II.C ~llciicatedthe conjunctions of each planet with the sun and the ( )nc or more kinds of wave-forms, travelling heiwc.cn thr planets,
c;rrth; the planets involved being represented as two- and three-digit c 1 111111 also account for many astrological effects. In fhct, the planets
rlumbers. These numbers indicate the number of conjunctions which the I I I . I ~ intcract much more continuously and intimatcly 111;inis usually
planet has made with the sun and the earth within that time period. -.~l.q~rcted. A report by Gerald Atkinson in thr 7',iin\crt fion.~[!c the
(Since these would always be bound to occur as the two planets -I rnrrican Geophysical Union (December 1 964) stal cd I ~ I ; I Ist;cl ist ic.;~l
continue in their orbits, they are not statistically important.) I vlilrnce had indicated a relationship between mnpnctic- ;tcmlivit y on
T o take Jupiter as an example then, it encounters a conjunction 8 I I I I) and the positions not only of the moon, hut ;11>c, (11' M carcury
with the sun and the earth every 398 days. This being a little more 11111 Venus. But, what was more, the study found tl1;11 intc-rpl.~nrt;ir.y
than a year, it means that Jupiter comes into conjunction eleven times w.1vrs may have been the cause; specifically, the anion 01. sllock ;incl
every twelve earth-years. .4s it happens. each eleventh conjunction Inlw waves in the supersonically streaming plasma coniinb: 0111 fro111
takes place virtually exactly every twelve years. and so we can see I Icr wn. It is therefore only possible, though, for this p;~rricwl;~r inlrr-
that Jupiter appears on the diagram at the 24th-year, 36th-year and I l l . ~ ~ ~ r teffect a r y to be exerted from a more inward-c.~rl>it inl: rl;tllc.t
48th-year points. What is more, every 2 4 years it comes into con- I I ~ I I I I Ione further out from the sun. Thus, while Mercury ;~ntlVrn~l.;
junction nct only with the earth, hut ,~lsowith Mcrcury and Venus, rIirc.t our own geomagnetic field, we might at least 11.1vc. III(.
making a four-planet line-up. 'Twclvc ycb;lrslater, on the 36th-year S. ~i~.;f'action of knowing that our planet likewise disrupts wl~.ttrvc.l;
point, Jupiter encounters ;i conjullrtio~~ riot only with the earth, but 1 . 1 i l i o reception there may be on Mars! In fact, Atkinson clitl lint1
also with the main portiol~of t l ~ r,i*.rrroicl hclt. Then, finally, as I 11.11 the position of the earth influenced the frequency of the s~rrf:~c.r
shown in the right of thc di,cgr,tni, 1111. ~ + X I I Iyc;tr sces the rcpetition I ~ ~ a ~ tknown ~ r c s as Martian blue clearings.
of its conjunction with M c r c ~ ~ r; y~ n dV C I I I ,I I~I .I ~thc completion of 'I'hat high frequency waves from space could significantly affrct
the octave. ~ll~tlitions
I on earth would tend to be indicated by experiments into
Only further statistical evaluation i ~ ~ l eilc.tc~~lninc
! whether or ~ t l rcffects of known vibrations produced in the laboratory. For
not this table of data is open to criticism o n I wrr points which occur ~ ~ . t t n p lite , has been found that music is capable under laboratory
to one in looking at it. Firstly, the data wo~lltlllrrtl to be examined c llltlitions of. changing the chemical structure and the strength of
1

statistically in some detail before its real worrl~01 significance could 1I v.;~als.This effect is particularly marked when ultrasonic music is
be known, since possibly such conjunctioli.; would always be 110.r~l in the presence of heat.79 And since we have suggested that
expected to occur, through chance. Seconrtly. t11(- tl;~taused is from w.~vc-frequenciesfrom the heavens cquate with the ancient science
the standard astrological tables. However, .;II~.II data is earth- 1 1 1 .tstrology, this confronts us with the distinct possibility that
oriented. including only conjunct~onswith t h c c.;tl.tl~,wherras there .~.~lrological conditions themselves 111i~hteven be able t o influence
secrns no obvious reason why significant cor~j~l~~ciions excluding ~llr-;~.c~~r;tble physical and chemical processes.
earth. such as could be gleaned (at length) Ilom astronomical Aln;r/.ingly enough, this does sccm to be the case. W e havc
sources, S~IOLIICI not also be included in the schrn~c-. Yet, nevertheless, ,111 l - . l l l y briefly reviewed some of' 111c effects of the heavenly bodics
the alignrnrnls ;ire at the very least thought-provoking. being most . I I I I I 1 1 1 1 . i ~ positions upon organic l i i ~ and , upon the atmospherc of
suggestivr o f ;I sc.rirs of cosmic chords. I 1 1 1 t..tl.ilr. The sunspot cycle and other conditions have l1r.c.n
Experiments such as those with Chladni plates or with Hans '$1 . I I t V l lI, ;iIly linked with the occurrence of earthquake ancl ot III-I
Jenny's tonoscopc leave us in no doubt as to the potential which ~ , I I , . I I ~ I IAnd, I I ~ IinI ~view
. of thr cffect of music on crystals, tllc- IIIO*,I
sound vibrations possess to take undifferentiatcd substances and I I ~ I ~ . I ~ * ~ I Idiscovery
I I ~ ; of all is that in crystal growth. t l j ~l l ~ y ~ ~ l t . l l
instantly organize thrrri into regular forms. From there it only ~.l~.l~ 01l r 111c
~, crystals have been found to be slightly inllllr~lcrtl
requires one step of the imagination to understand how vibrations of I * a l ~ i l i l ) j ; 10 t11c positions of the zodiac and thr I l l . ~ ~ ~ r'1'111%~
t '~.a
a much lower frequency (such as the seven million miles long I I*.,w c v y c.rc;ires quite a link between astrological inl1111+11t.I 1 ~ I 1IIC
h

electromagnetic waves mentioned above) or of a much higher fre- I I I I . , I 111:11 lhcy may be based on vibration. ( I t :tls~)tl~t.rlw'~ 1 1 1 1 0 i11111l)l
74.2 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE PHYSICS OF THE (-)M 243

rllc entire concept of the perfect scientific experiment, with its l sound as when you tear silk ;
,\ k i r ~ t of
controls and laboratory conditions. Should the finding come to be I { I I ~ ~ I ,, I S from a stream;
independently replicated. we will then have to live with the I I.~l>l>i~~g, as a flag before the wind ;
knowledge that the ever-changing influences of astrology cannot be ( , ~ ~ t ~ hissing,
i n g , as from flames:
excluded from the tat-tube!) I(o,tring, as from a storm;
\,VIlispcring and glistering.
INFRASONICS, ULTRASONICS A N D ACOUSTIC
ODDITIES I w l , tllings are noticeable from tllrsr cIc.;c.~.i~~lio~~*.. 1;iry.l. 111(-ir
Acoustic oddities and phenomena rrlated t o sound-vibrations 1111ll.1ri1y with each other, which suggrxts [II:II 1111.I ~ l t r ~ r ~ o is ~ ~ ~ t . ~ ~ o ~ ~
beyond the range of human hearing arc reported from time to time 1 ,l,,r.tr ivc, and not a figment of thc i m ; ~ s i n ; ~ ~.i\ (o- t~. o~n t.l , I )I(.
in scientific journals and newspapers ;IS though they were strange, . I ~ l t ~ ~ l of , ~ rthese
i t y descriptions with thc kincl OI ~ I I I I I I111.11
~ ~ 11.s111la
misbegotten misfits of the aural world. Rut it becomes increasingly ~ V I I ( . I I c!learomagnetic waves in spacc are pickrtl 1111 . I I I ~ I ~ I I I I V I . I I ( . C ~
apparent that many 'strange' acoustic plicnomcna may not be quite I I I I~ I ~ o u n dthrough a synthesizer ! Perhaps in sc )rnr ,,I I..II\!:I+ W , Iy I 111.
so 'strange' or 'odd' at all. Tlicy m;cy simply constitute those rare I I I I ~ I ~ : L makes it possible t o hear the eternal whispc.rin!: . I I I ~I .~O . I I I I I ) :

instances when the vast universr of' ;rctrustics which exists beyond t ( I 5 1 3 ; ~ ~It. is not at all impossible for ele~troma~ncti5111 ~ 1 1 1 r r - 1 Iuw I I 1
our own range of hearing a t timrs o v c r l ; ~ ~and s enters into our t rrli~cnaturally converted into audible air vibration.;. I ;c rr. , I III~III.,
11-t

perceptible range. .I ~ttlmberof reported sighting5 of meteors and mctcorirc.s .t1.1. 1111

It may be that the intcrplanri:try ~ ~ I Iitsclf


K is sometimes audible I crrd where the observer first had his attention dl.;iwll t o 1111.
1.t

t o the listener upon earth. ; ~ n dwi;llrllll .111y nred of a music syn- a,l~c.ctacle by a rushing or roaring sound from the burning Ilcrtly. Yt.1
thesizer ... ~~tr-tcors are usually seen at such a great distance that it w o ~ ~ l111. (l
We have seen that astronnmic;~1/;1s11-1 l l r ll:ir.;tl rvcllts do influence ~r~!~ossible for ordinary sound-waves to arrive at the ol)sc.~.vr.r'.~
earth's magnetic field. What is nlorr, 111i\ I 11.1tl i n I urn has much to .
I~,\itionat the same time as the visible light .. unless the ol>.;crvc.l.
do with the production of thc Ne~rtl~c.rl~ I.i):ltts, the auroral wc.rr. hearing electromagnetic waves which had somehow I,rrl~
phenomenon visible from Norway. C : I ~1.1, ; I I.I IICI other northern I l.;~nslated into air vibrations in his locality.
lands. And numerous reports attest th:~ttlu. . I \ I ~ ~ ) I . ;;I ~times
t appears A lengthy scientific paper by Charles R. Wilson in the Jorrrnnl o/'
along with an audible sound. Since the :iun)r;t i.; ~.c.l;t~ed to the super- (,'ropbysical Research of April 1969 provides support for the ide:~
sonically streaming plasma from the sun, i t I I I . I ~ 111cn be that the III;IL the aurora is related to frecjurncics of sound which man cannot
aurora is occasionally able t o render thew ~ 1 1 . 1 1 - vil~rationsat an t ~ c ~ r n ~ ahear. l l ~ Recording and ;in;llysing infrasonic waves at
acoustic frequency suitable for the human car. (:allege, Alaska, Wilson found their structure to be related to the
One of the most thorough investigations i111o111caurora sound I imc and space distribution of the s~ipersonic auroral motions during
was undertaken by the dedicated researcher oi r llc I I ~rthern ~ spectacle, I ~ ~ lmagnetic ;~r substorms. Kitpid :iuror;ll motions accompany thc
Sophus Trumholt, and was reported in thc NIIII~W OS 24 September, I)~~c;tk-ii~ phase of magnetic s ~ ~ h s t o r nand ~ s , it was then that t l ~ r
188j. Earlier that year he sent out about a tlir111\;111d questionnaires i~~I.r;~.;onic . .
waves were observcil r o occur. Wilson was able to vcril'y
to all parts of Norway, asking if the recipicnr\ Il.td ever heard the ~uroralellectrojets gencr;ttc. the infrasonic shock waves."" 'l'l~r
aurora sotlnd, anci if so, what did it sound likc? Of the 144 replies I , then, seems to be ;tssociated with acoustic frcquc.ncit*\
he received, 92 (04 per cent) believed in the sound - S 3 (or 36 per In, I,clow :m d above thr r;lllgc of the human ear.
cent) because thry hacl personally heard it, and the others because I .- - by ultrvsonic and infrasonic wavrs, ~lO1lll.I 11
/ \ PI;IIIC':
they knew people who hacl heard it. Of the scores of descriptions of 111c.ni!?(.ingrclated to thc cyclrs of the sun and the plnnr.~.;. . .
the aurora-sound which Trumholt received, we can list a sampling: 'I'hc occasional translation into audibility nf ; I C O I I ~ ; I I ( 1 1 1 r l
vil)r:~tor~ evcnts normally beyond the range of hti111;11l l1v.11III!! I I I . I Y
Quiet whizzing. hissing ; .tI.;o hc rcsponsiblc for the large number of nr11c.r .,I I .III!:I. IIIII~I*,J I I
..l

Soft crackling, sizzling; 1 1 t ( - air which are reported from time to tin11.. \ I I I I I rt.lll,lfb,,111.
' 1.1 T H E SECRET POWER OF MUSIC
THE PHYSICS OF THE OM 245
~!:~ll#rt.il y c ~by most scientists, yet they have been faithfully
I, I I I r y people some minutes beforc the physic;~Io11sct of carth-
tl~llrc,tcd and published for a number of years by writers and
n Ill.lIrt.s.)Rcsearcher R. W. B. S t c ~ h c n siurthcr s t : C.;
~ ~I 11:it:
~ I J I I I . I I : I ~specializing
S
- phenomena. The t w o most common
in strange
Iorms of strange aerial sounds are those known as 'barisal " rmns' and
t l ~ c'Big ~ u m ' y ~ latter h c of these is a low-pitched, intermittent hum
I111crnaldamage may occur due t o the i;~cttI1:tt 1il11.1son1cw.~vcs
reported by people from many parts of the world. Writing in Fate,
1. 1 \ i l y penetrate deeply and may inducc rcsnn:tnL c.1It.r on r)l.g;clls
Lucille C. Hieber has offered her o w n description of the H u m :
. . . Accidents, absenteeism, and othcr factor5 ~ n t l i iin:!;~ ~rlr4qr..~cl.~-
I l r )n of human performance can be corrcl:~~ctl W i t 11 i l l 1 I .~\orltc
For about a year and a half I have been hearing a humming of
cv,~vc\arriving from storms 200 miles a w;iy " l 1
this same nature. While there is a low humming sound connected
with it, there also seems to be a more pronounced overtone in the
' n ~ ~ l11 statements expand our conceptin11 of just ~ I I , I I )111111 I ' ~ . .11it1
middle range. It is continuous now, and sometimes loud and
11.11 rlle effects of even inaudible vibrations ,111 , i t l t l 1 1 1 , I i 1 '1'111..
(
sometimes faint, but always there.
I I I I I I ~ ! us ~ to t w o implications. Firstly, that natur;il w:~vt..11 rr~rrtiY I I L 11
.. . the hum does not seem to be so much something heard as 1.- I llose that might originate from beyond thc c;~rthc.1 t ~ l l t l i IICI(.I*LI
something felt, possibly a form of radar; for one woman stated
~ l rt ~us. . ~These waves would relate at least p r t i a l l y to 111c ; i r l t I(.III
she hears it even when she closes her c;irs.""'
1 1 P I N r.ption of the O M , the seven Tones, and astralo.qy. . . St.c-o~~tll v,
1 1 1 1 I' we are apparently so ignorant as yet about thc Ion!:- I c.l.111
The possibility that the Big Hum n~ighr be purely physiological
m 1 I 1 . c r s on human beings of inaudible man-made wavc-forms, sh0~11~1
and internal seems discoi~ritctl C 1% that it is heard by IT,,. rc;illy use them so lightly and frequently, without a g r c ; ~ tclc.~l
many people togcthcr, :ind wit11 c. sp;~cc-timelocalizations, Ill#tl.r. research being undertaken first? As the reader rc:~cls ~ l l i . ;
when for a period of weeks o r I I ) I ~t t ,~ l l ~~ l~> l . ~ pour
i l ~ ~ sin about it to
4 jllt.ncc, he is being bombarded by hundreds of different 11.c-
the local authorities. O n e famous 'o~ltl~l~c:rk', 101. instance, was in
~ll~l.t~c~ics of radio, and perhaps even radar, waves. Though wc
England in 1960, when the majority r ) l rrpcms came from East
S I I \ I I O ~ hear them, does this really mean that they cannot affect us?
Kent. At that time the phenomenon W;(.; ~:tkvnvrry scriously: it was
' 1 ' 1 1 ~ ancient philosophers had only the live perforrnanccs of'
discussed in Parliament and in military (-,il.c,lc.i.'l'hc Ministries of
trjllng music to contend with. M a k e of it what we will, btlt thc
Science, Supply and Aviation, the Grnt.r:ll I'os~ Office and the
lv;il,ility is there that wrong music, travclling through the air by
Electricity Board all disclaimed responsihilir v.
(01

Illr..tlls of inaudible vibrations, may be a5 dangerous as audiblt


Somc havc thought the Big H u m t n Ix 111t. r~llissionof secret
I P I I I I I ~ : music. Several modem esotcric authorities have stated just
radar bases, but it seems more likely to br rt.l:lrt.~lI O geophysical o r
1 1 1 1 . . 1 0 he so: that the penetration of ihc planet and its people by thr
other factors to d o with vibrations norrn;~lly I~cyondthe audible
I I + 1 1 1 , w:ives themselves from hundred of radio stations broadcasting
range. ( O r somebody somewhere doing a loll~t()M i !)
,I~..~r~l.tl;int music is at least RS dcstructivc in the long run as thc
The picture we are arriving at is one of ;l world permeated with
I I I I - . I I ~ ~(11-
- ordinary sound-wavcs.
sounds and wavcs of all kinds of different frrtl~l[.ncics,and which at
) I i ourse, it is unnecessary t o ;~cldthat as level-headed citizens or'
times are linked to extra-terrestrial factors. [[I ;In early chapter we
1111 ~-r~l,!:l~tened modern era wc rnust discount such wild ideas. A l l ~ i
looked at the various very potent ways in which audible sound
111 I~I!: nCllh them, therefore, w r h ; ~ dbetter also discount the c.nlrc.1 I
affects man's mind, body and emotions - and not all of these effects
rill 111.~ t r,llclucted by A. H . Frcy. as reported by Mary anti T)I 1 l l . l l i l
depended upun the sound needing to be consciously hcard. What,
v 1 l l l l l ~ ~
then, of the effects upon man of infrasonics and ultrasonics. not t o
mention electromagnetics?
l l(. IOIIII(I L I I ; I ~ some human subjects exposed to I > ~ ; I I ~ I1 '1 ~1 l i l t h i
T o take infrasonic wavcs, for instance, these have been found to
1" r;ltl;cr sets perceived sensations o f sn~lnrl L I v . . ~ I 11 I . l h . 11.1

I I cause d i s ~ ~ u i l i b r i u mdisorientation,
, blurring of vision, nausea and
tl11.r7in!:, clicking, hissing, or knocking, dcpr.~lrl;l~!! 1 1 1 1 I 11,. I t . ~ r ~
~l' l lassitude. (Identical symptoms to those which have sometimes been
i c s . w ; ~ s takrn I O t n u t 1 1 1 l l l - I I ~ I - ~ . . I I I I V
. . I I I I I IC~l ~I .; ~ r ; ~ t . t ~ r i s tCarc
l I(, ' M E SECRET POWER OF MUSIC THE PHYSICS OF T H E OM 247

I I., I I I I C , I ~ I O I I (by loose tooth fillings and the like) of the pulsc- 4,111' r l I . ~ I I Icmtury.
I W h o can say what scientific dicr.ovcrics are yet
111ocli11,tted signal. A peak of electromagnetic powcr density of as I , grl~l~,?
IOW '45 400 microwatts per square centimetre at the observer I \ I I I ~ I ( - 1I1 1t1;~nneeds t o treat music with a grcatcr rc.sprct. Mlisic is
could be perceived '1s sound ... W e shall not discuss here the #I I r l l ~ I I .:incl vibration is the energy of thc Suprr.nic-. 1,ikc liuclc~r
possible mechanisms for electrophonic hearing, but perhaps the which can be used t o destroy an rntirc city, 01. to ('11111isI1;l11
electromagneticwaves act direc~lyon the brain [my italic^].'^^ , ~ ; y requirements of that same city, musir I O O is ;L 11n1tt;tl
.lnd its ultimate effects, for good o r cvil, 111,ly 1101 IIC ;l1 .l11
Would not such signals also act upon the brains of those who could - 1 1 s . ~ ~ ~in ~ their
I I ; ~potency
r t o those of nuclenr c.ncr!:y. O n l y m;ln can
not hear them? Perhaps it is time for the invention of a portable . I ' I,!V IIOW music is t o be used; and thus, pcrlinp.;, tlr.i.~tl(. ;II,II wll;lr
anti-radio-wave body shield. But in the meantime we are going to 1 1 1 - I rwll ~ ; I C Cis t o be. As w e treat the energy of t11r . I I O I ~ I . will1 ~:I.~.;II

have t o live with thirty o r forty simultaneous transmissions of pop . 114. -tnd caution, so too d o w e need to handlc ni,~sic.111 ~ l i c - l i 1 1 ; t l
and punk coursing through our blood, bones and brain. Which is. we should strive t o realize more fully, it .;(.t9~ns, tl1.11 w l i ~ r ~
brings us directly back t o the subject of music and its power . .. ;tl with sound we are dealing not merely with 111(. c.r~c.l.~:ic.~ of
r, nor only with the art of mortal minds, but wit11 ( ; o t I .
CONCLUSON
W e have seen that wave-forms, whcther nudiblc o r otherwise, are a /\I y sotcl counselled me and charged me to listen fir r1nicc.c ~ l ~ , rirr
rt
far more important phmomr.nnn than is usually recognized. The neitherf r m the tongue nor the throat.
information w e have lookcd at ;llso strol~glysi~ggcststhc objective /{+re that day I heard but dully, and nought save clnnrour ' i v d lorlrl
reality of the OM, its link with astrology. ; I I I ~its actual ability to cries came t o my ears;
affect matter o n earth. All this 11;~s( ' I I O I . I I I O ~ I ~implications for the l l r r ~nou I have learned to lzsten to silence,
musician and music-lover. This vcry 5;irnc. ~ ~ o w ocf~the r Oh1 is that ' I 'o hear its choirs singzng the song gages,
which was said to be contained within ,111 . 1 1 1 c l i l 7 l c ' solind. Chladni (,'hantingthe hymns of space, and disclosing the secrets of etemi!~.
plates and tonoscopes demonstrate n l o s t ,t:r;~~~liic:~lly the power of - Kahlil Gibran
music to organize and re-organizc suhs~;~ncc.\ .~it,ordingt o the tones
produced. All this leaves us not vcry 1-ts A I ;III from thc idea that Notes
some music is objectizrely good and somc n~usir-ohj~rtivelybad or evil.
'11 was the particular hallmark of thc god, M a r d ~ k ' s , ~ o w that
e r hc
(Once. passing by a crowded dance hall wl~c.l.c.rock was being
I ~ ) u l dcausc objects t o vanish and to be crcated by his words. This
played, I could not help perceiving the floor I 11 thr I1;t11 in terms of a
I X I W C ~the other gods asked him t o clcrnonstrate as they spread out a
Chladni plate, and the danccrs appeared f1)1.. l 1 1 world like the
1 1 1 ( 8

!;:krmcnt in front of him. Thcn, 'As Mnrdnk uttered the word, the
j u m p i v , hclplcssly manipulated grains of s:~ntl.)
g;rrrnent disappeared; and ag;~illhc spoke, and, behold, the garment
Consiciering that Western man only emrrl:cll ;I k w decades ago
w ; ~ there.'
s
frclm thr. ninctcenth-century style 'little p r ; ~ n ~ ~ l oc rs ' 'tiny coiled
springs' thcorics of the atom, the fact t h ; ~ tr l ~ rearliest rccorded
civilizations wcrc already aware of the in.;uhstantial, vibratory
nature of mattcr can only leave us awe-struck. Whence came this
knowledge? Whcrc., ;tnd how long ago did it first arise?
Whatever thc ;InSWer, that the ancicnts possessed such
knowledge makes clnr thing clear: that it would be most unwise for
us t o dismiss other aspccts of the ancient wisdom such as those
appertaining to the inncr powcr of music. It might be said that our
current understanding of the real nature and ability of sound is as
yet in the same kindergarten stage as was the physics of the
MYSTERY OF PYTHAGORAS' COMMA 249

Appendix to
6.
The Mystery of Pythagoras' Comma Ill,wcver, given these twelve notes, if a rhirrcc,r~~l~ I I O I C w,15

11 II.IIII)LC~, in order to complete the octave with n sc.1ic.~~ I 11 I wc.lvc.

One of the greatest of the mysteries of the science of sound is the 1 1 1 1 u . 1 "ills of a fifth, it was found that the octave coulrl no/ /'I. ~o/,.l/ly

strange phenomenon known as Pythagoras' comma, which since . l~ll~/llr/rd! This is a universal law of the physics of ronrb . ~ n di~lclrr'cl,
,
time immemorial has been to man a symbol of his fallen state of 4 11 ~ r ~ ; ~ [ h c m a t iac scycle : of twelve fifths complctcs stvcn oc~;~vt..;
imperfection. e mystical numbers: twelve and seven) plus ;I little ~iiorc-.
Given that different pitches of tonc arrange themselves into cd mathematically: ( 3 :2)12 > ( 2 : 1 ) 7 by ;I sliglir rxt:c,\
octaves (which have the ratio of 2 : l ) , Inan from the earliest times This interval, since Pythagoras was one who notcrl i t , 11:1\
needed to find a method whcrcby thc noics within each ocrave could known as Pythagoras' comma. The differencc is n r;~rio( I S
be calculated. This coulcl 1~ done, ir was discovered, by using the [) :8 1, the extra 1 being the comma.
next most fundamcl11i l l , 1 1 1 ~ 1I I ; I I ~ I I I ~ I I ~ O U S tonal ratio, that of 3 :2, o r comma produces huge cosmological, as well as practic;~l,
the interval k L purc fifth. If one pictures the octave ~ ~ l ~ l l ~ ~ t , ;and ~ t i oresults.
ns Since this system of calculating twclvc:
as a circle, t ~f a fifth represents a seven-twelfths 111 11 I.--cloes not perfectly complete the octave, the specific twelvc

circuit of r l ~ ! o'clock, moving clockwise, to 7 ral1111c~cit produces are imperfect for use together in harmony. Thcy
o'clock. Thib I;I\~(.:,0 1 1 ~I I I C C I ~ . By continuing around clockwise r I 1 I I I I 11 Ixrfectly harmonize since they d o not divide the octave into

again, anc)rllc.r ~>itcllis produced, but not at 2 o'clock on the same I I r I ly accurate divisions of twelve as, say, the hours of a clock d o
circlc, li)r 1111. 'c,irclc' is actually not a circle at all, but a section of a 111 1fr.l l l y divide a clock face. Yet to adjust their slight pitch-
spir:tl W I I L I I .;l)i~.;tlsupward into higher octaves. By going around # I d * I r~lvtncies in order t o produce perfect harmony would rendcr
1

clockwiui. i l l , I ,,c.l,ic*sof perfect fifths, a series of twelve notes can be 8 10 11 I I O I ~ imperfect as an interval of a fifth, or as a ratio of 3 :2. Thc
pro~luc~c.tl,I t . l . 1 1 (.cl hy the vibratory ratios of the series 1, 3 :2, I if., 1i11g of their musical system was p;iraniount to the ancients, for
( 3 : z ) ~:1,1111 . . I ) 0 1 1 1 0 ( 3 : 2 ) l l . T r y this out for yourself: by advanc- I I LI I ~ 111usic had to harmonize with thc ercrnal laws of the universe.
ing twr'lvc' l i nd a clock face in jumps of seven hours at a 1 1 1 4 1 1 IIII.(* the perfect ratio of 3 :2;ind its interval of a perfect fifth
tlme, you W I I back at 1 2 o'clock, having landed once on S I I 1-!:;1rded as sacred and inviol:thlc. If the system resulted, as it

each hour. m 1 9 , I. 1 1 1 I 1 1 ~ . harmony of moreal music hcing imperfect, then this hall

Howevrr, rh(-.c I wc.lvc notes could not practically be used as the 1 ' 61 I I C as a manifest symbol oI' man's fall from grace, and of tllc.

scale of a systrnl 01 11111sic, sincc they extend over several octaves 1 ~~riperfection of thc nnn-licavenly realm of time and sp:tt,r.
with wide g : ~ p s in I)c.twcen each note. Therefore the ancient I ~lrrliapsthe ancients wcse correct in this, for the commit is . I
philosopher-musici;r115 tlcviscd schemes whereby intcrvals of a fifth 1 1 1111:l- . 1 1 1 t 1 widc-ranging phcnomcnon, being literally 'writttrl i 1 1 1 ( 1 '

could be used to c a l c ~ ~ l :I ~welve l c notes within only one octave. For I 1 1 8 ~ ~ I I ~ . ,.{I I I :lncl mathematical laws of the universe. We art. r111 ~.I.~II,I:

instance, the Chincse wcnr rlp in pitch by the ratio of 1 :3, then I , a I I I I I O I i.!!io~ls of thought difficult for the Western rnintll ro ,:I . I ~ , I , .
1

1 , 1 1 1 1 1 1 1 . I ~ ~ i \ c i l ) i lyi r sccms to bc that it is by the p l l r . n ~ ~ ~ t O~ I rr~~l~~


down by 3 : 1, up by 1 : 3, ; t ~ so ~ done. Such a practice was capable of
producing twelve approximate notes all within one octave, as shown I. , I I I . ~ ~ : I , I . . I ~ , ' I ol11111;r th;tt the very nature of our 1ivr.s W I I ~ I I II II I V
in Figure 4.6 1 1 1 1 1 I ~ ~l~r,l.l.~lily
I is ;rrrnngcd.
l![\
THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC MYSTERY OF PYTHAGORAS' COMMA 211
'I'I~(,l~t:ll~ h comma
c may be a symbol of the imperfection of man's I .# I-Ierbert actually went s o far
al~!:~n :,S 10 ;~ssoci;ttcman's tonal
1111 rrf:~lsticte, the very same comma provides the way 1t~1111.l l(*c.~
ion with the Crucifixion:
11.11 Ic r o the original state of perfection. For the comma is not a slight

~rl~c~rval lesr than seven octaves, but in excess of them. In the ancient I'llr Cross taught all wood to resound his N;irnr.
world this fact was widely conceived as a symbol of renewd. The W h o bore the same.
c.yclc of twelve perfect fifths did not and finish a cycle o f seven I l i \ \tretched Sinews taught all strings, whxt k ~ y
octaves, but exceeded it, and thus, as it wcre, spiralled upward. I,. I)c,>tt o celebrate this most high D;ly.
There is cvidencc that this upward spiral of renewal was mystically ( :clurort both heart and lutc. a n d twist a s o n s
associated with the widespread ancient myth of the the Pleasant and long:
archetypal 'bird' which is resrlrrcctcd from its o w n ashes. ( ) I , \incc all musick is but three parts vied
Pythagora.;' corntna, then, can be Seen as being God's o w n engram And multiplied,
writtcn into the very laws of the universe and of physics. And it is ( ) Ict Thy blessed Spirit bear a part
by thc nature of this engram that man is heir to the promise of AIIJ make up our defects with His sweet Art.'"'
cvcntual resurrection and ascension our of thc dim caverns of mor-
tality.
I S. Bach became the first major musician to dcp;~rt f1-(1111 1111.
Through the ages civilizatiorls J ~ OftC'rl
; wrestled
~ ~ with
~ the ~tlt.:~lisrn of tradition, opting for the pragmatic appro;lclr 01 ( . ( l ~ ~ . ~ I
riilcrnma o f whether to put up sit11 ilrllx'r~c:ctmusical pitchcs while 11-lnlwrament,or octaves divided into twelve 'equal' division\. ' 1 ' 1 1 1 5 ~

retaining pure idealism in thcir sysrc.nl I'itc]~-calculation,or else t o 1,11rlrrd up vast new avenues of harmonic possibility, ; ~ n t lI ~ t l1 1 1 1 .
depart a little from alienrncnt wirll t \ , , . Ilc.:~vrnl~ ideal by taking the wily into the towering musical developments of the eightcr*nlh , 1 1 1 t l
~ r a c t i c a path
l of slightly a d j r ~ s t i l lr I~l c . i l Il,,tc.s in order t o harmonize ~ ~ i n c t c m tcenturies.
h The intensely religious Bach was ;IS go(ltl #I:+
them. Though there were indi~,iJll:tl li!:lirc*s who dissented, the , 'Well, since we d o find ourselves in this fallen slatr 01
ancirnt cultures optcd, ill ~ll(.iritIc.;~Iisni,for heavenly imperfection, we had better be practical about it, harmol~i;ll.
alignment at the expense of having sliKI1tIFimlx~rl'cctrelationships usic, and b y this very process begin composing a new ;11i(.I
betwecn their notes. However, by the sr.v~.ntc.c.l\~li century AD the 1,crtcr art form. An art of enhanced sublimity can in itself lcarl 11s
Wcstcrn world had begun its mLry into t l l ~I,l.c.s(-nt era of science luck t o the heavens.'
and logic. This era was marked not only ;ru ;trritude of over- This. in essence, is a summary of man's relationship a n d dealings
n~atcrialism,but also by a most useful p r a g n l . l t i ~ ; ~ ~.I.llis ~. pragmatism with the phenomenon of Pyth;lgot;tl;;' comma. But it is not the end
cntcrcd into the debate on tuning, and c,,lltlovr.rsy heightened: o f the entire story, for the he;tvcvdy hodics themselves have a final
should man opt for hcave~ilyperfection I I I I I \ ~ ( . ; I ~inharmony, o r ~ s l to
c add.
for :I dcphtrture from abstract idealism for r l l r . s.~kc.of expanding '"'7 have noted a number of' lin~csthat the months of the year
music's l i ; l ~ n o n i cpossibilities? ( ~ l on~ tIlr ~ ,wry down-to-earth associated in antiquity wit11 rhc total twelve notes of thc
level, thc (.on<trl~ction of instruments such as Itcvl)oards according t o )l octave. But there arc. of coursc, two slightly different kinds
the Frccct1[\ of' idcalism was proving insupct.;~I)lyproblematic in .. 111hs: thc solar or ca1cntl.11. I I I )n1:11
~ which averages 30.44 days,
somc aspect.;: :I grr:it many more keys were tlc.ccssary in order tv I ~ : of 365.2 56 t l . ~ ~pcr
I T I : I ~ ~;I Itotal s year, and the synodic I I I ~ ~ I I -
incorporate the 1ii;111y 'extra' notCS CrCateLl a cycle of perfect 11lo11r 11 01' 29.5 306 days. Thr \c,l;tr month is exactly one twclftl~0 1
fifths.) tlir I I I I I ~ . it takcs for thc r.;trtll to orbit once around thc S I I I ~ .'l'llr
The idea of ~ I ; I I I ' \ ini\'~rfcctState being rcl.\tcd to a tonal rnis- month is thc time which the moon t;lk(.s 1 0 1 1 . 1 ~ . * ~
alignment with thc Ahovc was widcsprcad in the poetry of thc its phnscs - SAY,from new moon to IIC-wrill 11 111
seventeenth century Clcn~cntPaman wrote: I.tr month is not exactly the same ;IS ;t ro1.11I I I O ~ I I ~ I1 1.
rc~rn.i~.k.~hly closr, with the curious rcs11l1 I I I . I I I 111.1 r. .I I 1.

Screw thee high My heart: up t o T h r Ang&' key ~illl;ttrIyIWCIVC lunar months (yes, that n ~ l ~ ~ i rl wi.1~1.
, r . ~ .I!:.IIII ')
W h a t if t h y strings all crack and d y e ? lcncti~rye:lr. Indrcd, sincc solar rnonthr; ol'lr.~.Ir-,-,I I I I V I Ir l l s . - 8 ~ , t : ~ ~ ' 8
O n such a Ground, Musick 'twill bc to dy."" ot their coming ;end going than do thclsc o f I 11r I I I O O I I . 1 1 11.1.. I I - ( . ( ~ I I ~ . I I
n
ffi
2
?
m
-
.I THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC

I'ytli:tgoras' comma is an eternal reminder to us of the ancient


~ll~stical concept that there exist two fundamental states or fre-
clt~n~cies of being: the dense and physical state of mortality, and the
s ~ t t cof immortality as attained by Enoch, Jesus Christ, and other
great masters of East and West. And that it is the goal and destiny
of all men t o so purify and perfect themselves that they can be tran-
slated from the lower state to the higher. If the W o r d was made
flesh in one man, the Word can be made flesh in all. Coda :
The Ancient Wisdom Revisited:
The Modern Esoteric Viewpoint
'r )l), please, Master, will you tell us all about t hc Ikc .;i'
/\I) ironically naive question if ever therc w;ts (III(.!YCI 111c
F$ l c.r smiled benevolently at the chela (disciplc), c ,111 , I IIIIIII(II.OII%
18,r

I 111k1r
tt of the eye betraying his inner reflections.
'Wcll, I cannot tell you all about them,' he c;~rrl;~llv~ ~ c ~ ~ l l i r ~ ~ l .
1 1 1 1 1 11 you have reached a very high Initiation. Will you li;~vc.wl1.11I

d.,,, 1(.11 you, which will be partial and inevitably misleading, t r r w~ll
,, l111 witit until you can be told the whole thing?"06

l 'l I 1': GNOSIS RETURNS


I lw cllcla and his two companions decided that anything woulcl Ilc.
1 1 1 l.trr;ible to nothing, and so the Master proceeded to talk for sonw
r r l r l l . upon the subject of the seven rays. The chelas, taking notes ;IS

I 1 1 4 - M aster spoke, understood portions of his information but, as hc

11 1 1 1 I'oretold, found much of it incomprehensible. However, the


h i .~-.~c.r's discourse marked only the beginning of what was to come.
I Ilt-;.r;~fter.stage by stage, an ;~hundantwealth of fascinating data
rc.1.~ clea eased to mankind on thc srlhjrct of the seven major rays or
, Much was to be told ahout tlic individual nature of the ray.;.

1,c.lntionship to each nchrr. ;irld, above all, how they cacl~


I ( - ( - the material, psych~)lo,i:ic;tland spiritual patterns of lil'v

~.11~1h.
I I I C above conversation did not take place in ancirnt l utli.1,
I 1 1 China ~ or Egypt o f thc 1 0 n ~ - ~ a s s egolden
d ages ~ I rC1 1 1 1 ~ ~ 1 -
I I I I I I * ~ 'l'llr talk is recordcd by Charles W . Leadbeatrr, wlto w,I*.
1 + c T 8 . ~ .1 1~) ~h;tve ~ . taken in the late nineteenth century, '1'111. I l ~ r * l . t
1 1 t t .t..lic.tl rhc clucstion was the author, M r C ~ o ~ c r - O ; l k l ( . ~ , 1111.
. r ~ ~ k l

P I I = , I (.I w;ls 1)jwal Kul, one of the brotherhood of A C I C ~ ~ I111 . . nrvll .I..
Id

I 1 1 , ( ; I(.;,I W l ~ i t eBrotherhood. The incident t t ~ c ~ lk~ l . ~ cc11 111111.1

. l 1 1 1 I,,!: 1 1 1 ~ . c : ~ r l ydays of the Theosophical Socictv.'""


210 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC CODA 2j7
The fact is that the wilder excesses of gross materialism in construct a table to show the main attributes of each of the rays.
science, and in the general outlook of Western man, in many ways Table 4 shows which chakra, colour, God-qualities and perversions
peaked around the late 1800s, and have since been steadily on the of the God-qualities relate to each ray. Not only music, of course,
wane. True, present Western civilization can hardly be said to but all the activities of life - every thought, word and deed -
display the same extent of a mystic;tl outlook as prevailed in anti- amplify one or more of the seven rays or their perversions. Never-
quity. Yet there is present in the Wcst today what is almost a theless, the use of tone is a major means by which the seven rays or
hidden force at work; an underground network of individuals who their perversions become amplified. The column indicating the God-
cannot ever be specifically pinned down, dcfined or counted, since qualities shows which psychological and spiritual qualities are
there is as yet no one organization - no csotcric Solidarnoit - to expanded throughout self and society wherever beautiful and har-
which they belong. monious music is played. Wrong music amplifies within the perfor-
Meditation, astrology, human aura siurlics, reincarnation, mer, the audience, and the community at large the various listed
acupuncture - one could compile a lenbrlhy list of such subjects perversions of the rays. From this table there may be gained an
which are now captivating a considerablc intc.rcst in a large minority understanding of many of society's present ills, as well as the under-
of people. The gnosis is returning. Clothrcl in so~iirwhatdifferent standing of how these ills may be dissolved by the promulgation of
raiment perhaps, and with more of an eniplt;~sisupon scientific docu- correct music such as Eastern and Western classical music. Looking
mentation, but what is essentially the s;tmc. \ysrc~tiof beliefs as that at the table, I am struck by how immediately and noticeably these
of the ancient wisdom is again finding qui~c.;I ~ll~rtihrr of adherents. traits appear in people whenever music is played, good or bad.
And this time it has more than ever t o t e a l 1 11.~ .tl)out the power of
sound. MUSICIANS REDISCOVER THE INNER WORLDS
Esotericism in the form of myths and rcli!;ic-)us rcxts can be read As the gnosis has gradually re-emerged in recent decades, composers
and spoken about fairly comfortably by ; I I I - i t is sufficiently have lost no time in incorporating its precepts once more into their
removed in time so as not to disturb us a n ~ lIi)rt.r 11, 1 0think. But art. O r then again, did they ever fail to do so? From the very
when we find that same esotericism ~onfrontin~: I I - , , with all of its beginnings of the Western classical tradition and throughout its
claims, face-to-face in our own time, we h;~vt-l l ~ r . 11ie ~ ~ inevitable history, strong elements of mysticism have been incorporated into
dividing of the way between the acceptors ancl r I I 5cc.prics.
~ numerous musical pieces. As wc noted in an early chapter, many of
H o w objective and valid are the tenets of mc1(1t*1.11 c-sorericism? It the works of J. S. Bach, Kccthoven and other great composers are
would not be possible in this book to debarc I I I ~ . cl~lc.stionat suf- deeply mystical. Yet this kind of mysticism is of a general nature.
ficient length as would have worth. I would \ i l l l l ) l y say, on the The spiritual outlook of thcsc. great men, having come naturally to
personal level, that a number of experiences it1 liit. 11;tvc. taught me, them. was not for the most I-I;II.I related to any particular esoteric
for one, that no truer statement was ever uttcrrtl 111;cnthat truth is school. (The obvious exccprio~lI I I rllis hcing Mozart, who to a large
stranger thafz fiction. At times science fiction x n t l cvcn the most extent based his operas ancl I~isi~~.;rrorncntal works upon the meta-
fanciful of fantasies havc absolutely paled, appcxiil~ginexpressibly physical and numerological princil~lcsof Freemasonry.)
unimaginative, in comparison with some of thc cc.c.t.c.lswhich reality From the late 1800s, howrvt.~,.,clid particularly within our n w ~ i
has elected to offer glimpses of. This being said, i t riltrst be left to the century, the stream of serio~lzco111p~3CI>of music has bccn c ~ ) r l
reader to make up his own mind as we now cliscuss some of the nected to a background of c~sc~~cricism to a degree rarely rt..iIi~l,ll
things which modcrn csotericists have to tell us about the inner wen by most musicologists. '/'his esoteric backround can hr. \rrbtt rrt
powers of sound. retrospect to have been the /.wirnv fi.zctor behind the comporrr:r ' 4 / J , I I , I>/ 1.r

Since the conversation between Cooper-Oakley, Leadbeater and style and subject matter.
Djwal Kul on the roof of the Theosophical Society's headquarters, One might ask, how did there come to be this nlarkr.tl . I + . I 1 1 114 14 111

the great brotherhood of Atiepts to which Djwal Kul belonged has of recent composers with the esoteric? P e r h ; ~ ~I .l ;l v 1 1 1 1 1 ~ 1 1 1 1 1 1 1 1 1 1
11

given out more information on the seven frequencies of the Word finds itself being directed naturally by rnl~sic I ~ I I I I 1 1 1 I L I I I I , ( I
B 1

known as the seven rays. From this information, it is possible to mysticism and metaphysics. O r is it, o n 111t. l l r r I 1 I I I1 , I I 11,
411 1111
Table 4 : The Jeven Rays
-
Kay Chakr.t o r Corresptrnding (;od-clu;~ltt~c\of clir r;iy Pcrvcrqivtib uf the God- C h o h ~ no r Lord f o i u s i ~ i ~
nu. ccutre which colour qualiticb of thc r.cv the Clirist-conbciousnos of
sustains rhc t h r r;iy a t this tirnr; l o c a t i ~ ~ n
trrqucncy of of thcir retreats"
rhc ray in
the Anammv
oi nl.tn

l Throat Blue D l V l N E \YII,L: FIunian will, al>.;rncc of El M o r y a :


Ornnipotcncc. pcrlci:tio:1. L .
cncrcv. rrnpcrkction. qt.rtr o f Darjceling. India
prurection. faith !n*-c~x:~<i,~n.
,int~bc

2 Crown Ycllow D I V I N E \,trlSDOhl F! --.:Y !,,.!,:. I


- . F : I ~ A :l,)y;c, L*llltr>.
Oninircictlce. illuriiir! i r ' p-.
,
. -
. ..~-.r ,. :C I , < Gr.inJ T r t o n . T c r t ~ nI<angc.
!indcrst.tndi?<. ? %c-.- . . .- - ---,. . -?<..<.-. , ,,~r,.~,,. I l ' y o c ~ i n g .US24
- . .. . . . <

,-F
Hr.irt i'inf. - 2 . ~ L:,
.- . .- - . . ,-,.-- H.,l,.*r11s.:~. \~lfi\ht~ci\, P.~itlrllr \'c.i~'tiicn
(:1.7,.,:?: :<:F::. L,.;;-.- ...
;... .~ hurran .)
n p a r h y . \~-1liu,4li1>.
. . 5otrtllrrn 1:r;cnc.c
<l~,irtt:,.~cc..tit-~ti C I \ ~ ; I y- , I ~

5 Third c y r Grccn DI\'!NE SCIENCE: Superstition, rrror. dist.a>e, H ilarion :


Truth, healing, divine visinn, absrnce of nlnnifesr Crete, Grccce
abundance works, lack

h .9(11:u. plcxus Pwplc aijd DIVINE PEACE. Emotion21 ti~rbulcncr, Nada:


Gold Minirtratinn, ~ r r v i c c . :*h~occntricity.<oct.~lc l i q ~ ~ c s . Saudi Arabia
~ C ~ I ~ P I C < S ~ C <hdrnllc~snrss
\. - gnngs, ww;cr, i'rec ~:Ivc,
disruption of f a ~ n i l y,ind
community life

7 Seat of the soul V i o l 5 I I I V I N E FREEDOhl- Servitude. rotc, di\orderliness, Saint Cicrnl~il;


Ritual, tran\niutation, ju>ricc, d o g m a , inju\ticc, hardness of ~ r a n s v l v a n i a .R n m a n i ~ 2nd
.
mercy heart T ~ t b l chlounrain in
Tcton Range. I t ' y o m ~ n p .
lJSA

.-- - * #g\ lrr offices of r h r wvcn Ctloh.:n\ 01 rhe rn)? *re pn\lrii,n\ In thc hierarchy of the (;rent \ % i t ~ R ~ ~ ~ t h e r h owhich
n d h,~\.<crrhrrJ srnis: r l n c
-- - . ~c n.,mcc i,f conlr ci the grcaf souls whvsc ~ttainmrnth;is qual~frrdthem to rlrhody rtlrtr pwitions ~t [hi\ tltilc drc .n.clLknw.n >:ud:nti i1f:hc 11,

- --r~.hT\ ~ l the
f scvcn Chohnns art. ldrgclr focutcd un the crhcr;' planc of hcing, but thcy al\o includc concc'~lcdFhy\'cai .~sfccrs I r I \ the rc>plln-
- thc
:?"-ne r l i thr Choh;~nsro ovcrsrr anli direcr thc acritrities occurrtng on cach rxy at aU levds of hcinp t h r ~ u ~ h r ~ u !r!atlct.[ry hr~dy

- - .. n in C l ~ w bthe H<qhr.ct oun~nitrBook 1 l"'


?(I() THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC
CODA 26 1
loystical mind turns naturally t o the art of music? Whatever the
,inswer, there is no doubt that music and mysticism g o together like I . I ; ~Sittie, was a member of the Frcnch Rosicrucian Order. Arnold
the proverbial horse and carriage. Each of the t w o fields of llornberg delved deeply into the Old Testament and into the
endeavour illumine and add to one's striving and attainments with ..,,~l.ilist teachings of Swedenborg. W h a t influcncc this had upon his
the other. The sage of old would have said that the t w o are so bIl*vc.lopmentof the revolutionary technique of scrialism w e can only
closely connected because mysticism Is music, and music i~ c tl~~jecture, but it must have been considerablr. Tt is an alnlost
mysticism. l ~ ~ ~ i v c rfeature sal of students of the esoteric, and understandably so,
The conscious use of esoteric principles in music can be traced I ~ I . I I their studies assume prime importance over almost anything clse

back even to the period before and during the Middle Ages when 111 tl~cirlife, and certainly in their inner life of intuition and intellect.

the original ancient wisdom t c a c l ~ i n ~disappeared


s from public view. ('I'lrc standard kind of biography which is written about composers,
Peter Hamel states: 'A tradition of musical esotericism, manifesting .I<.well as othcr great figures such as politicians, writers and scicn-
through Rosicrucian and other c:~hlalistic, Pythagorean and II*,IS, continually neglects to note this vital factor. Whenever the
alchemistic groups, runs right t11rr)ugh the Middle Ages and up to I t*c.ord shows that a musician studied esoteric matters (and some-
our own times."O I IIIICS when the record does not show it!) we can in fact be sure that
The modern phase of musical csnt~ric.is I II('SC studies were of at least equal importance t o him as his music.
,en one of mixed
blessings, however. Though many ni.tjol. :rs have worked / \ I I ~t herefore esotericism will have lent itself greatly t o the shaping
from an esoteric background, f ) y n o Illr. ' them were the 01 his personality and his artistic style.)
l-
purified chalices into which thc prrSrc,~ I.qqos could be poured, rollowing in the footsteps of Schoenberg, the other serialists
as demanded of all musicians hy tht. :trrc.ic.n~philosophers. Some- wcbre also esotericists. Webern studied, among other things, cab-
times their motives and characters wcrc. in~pt~rc.; ; ~ tother times 11;~listicnumerology. Josef Hauer (1 88 3-19 59) was a Rosicrucian
the esoteric teachings which t h y t:lppc~l wt3~v3 I hcl~~sclves faulty, or ilriliate who saw each note of the scale as havi.ng its own particular
else were imperfectly understood. Alcx:~nclc.rSc~i;tl)in( l 872-1 9 1 5 ) , -q)iritual effect, and thus devised his note-series in order to group
after early years as an admirer and folloir~c.ro I 1 1 1 t . WOI-ks of Chopin, I l~cseeffects into particular sequences. Other well-known musicians
elected t o delve so deeply into metaphysic;~l~n~~\ik.,tl bystems that, in I1;tve also reflected various esoteric doctrines or aspects of occultism
the view of many commentators, his actu:bl 1n11sicIrccame as much i l l thr:ir works, among these being Olivier Messiaen ;ind C;irl Orff,
hindered as helped. Scriabin's aim was to ~r;t11~1:1tr 'the essence of .tnd even, in certain pieces, Sergei Prokofirv i ~ r ~ c P;tul
soul and spirit1 into musical notation, to which r-rtcl he utilized a . ~..i l n a e m i t h . ' ~As for the contemporary ;Iv;tnr j:;irtl(+, I I I ~ . draw
1

'
l
~
complex thcoretical background of T h e o s ~ ~ .l ~l n~d~colour-tone 111orethan ever upon esotericism 3s tllc f; I I o r rhcir works.

correspondences. However, the end result is wthll clc.scribed by his I I I O I I ~ ~their own particulnr hritncl 01' ~ I I I ' 11;~slittle in

follower, Sayaneyev, as 'the ecstasy of hypcr-;I(.\I11c.1ic emotions, of c)lllrl,on with the genuine ;trric.lc. *1'11(. 0 1 1 rp1111 Cage is very

nameless nightmares, of love and suffering'. T h r r l~i~~f'characteristics 1,trj;cly oriented around his ~IV;II-%C*II ~ ~ l ~ i l o ~(cvolved
o ~ ~ l ~ after
i~s
of his style were often those of morbidity and sc)rr~)w; and whether .ling the lectures of thr Zcmn M:I\I1.1. I ). T. Suzuki, for several
these are truly 'the essence of soul and spirit' is opt.11t o question. In Ils during the 1940s). l'111. nlohl rcccnt major work by
England at around the same time, several Irssc~composers also I\ . I ll~rinzStockhausen, entitlccl .\/ri~iu,w;is released in an LP format

based their style upon a system of what they I>clicved t o be the ( w i t 11 .i tmver very much 01' 111~.I l< music style) accompanied by
(

accurate correspondences between musical notes and visual colours. ~ I ; I , I ; V ;lItcr page of metaphysic.;tl !:il>l)i.rish written by the composer,

The resultant music w;~snot, however, highly memorable. ,tttc.\ti~~!:10 how his latest prr,dr~ction reflects the Music of the
Some of the morc successful esot ericall y-inclined composers were Sl)llr*rrs;IIIJ the sacred tones rclcased by the astronomical body of
briefly discussed in Cha pter 2: Ilebussy and his leadership of the I tillc.
weird secret group. the n-.r n o r y of
.
Sion, as well as his fascination 'l'hcsc 1lI;iny distortions of the genuine principles of esotercism arc
with the occult works of Edgar Allen Poe; hlaurice Ravel, who was 111o\i 11111;)rti11l;~te for, as Mozart, Beethoven and others have
intrigued by many aspects of occultism. Another prominent figure, 11~.11ionrlr;itccl, nlctaphysics and mysticism are capable of providing a
11c.111cndor1s fount of creativity. But this is true only for those who
262 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC CODA 263

are humbly willing to adjust and shape themselves into conformity to CYRIL SCOlT, 'THE FATHER OF BRITISH MODERN
the esotericprtnciples. The opposite results when there is an absence of MUSIC'
humility and listening grace: the result being that the composer Cyril Scott, whose writings we h;lvc had occiisic I ~ II ( I c1110tcfrom
1
seeks to shape and adapt the timeless truths of the Spirit to his own will. several times in earlier pagcs, was nnothcr 1tli111i I , I ~ ~ ' I (-(l
I I c,ornposer

I l l
In the purer of these two paths Gustav Holst, for one, possessed the who may have drawn his inspiration f'sorli thc grc.;~tI>otly of' Adepts
humility to succeed excellently. His deep studies of astrology known as the Great White Rrothcrlloocl. Ccrt;linly Scorr l~imself

~i I
resulted in his popular and timeless The Planets Suite, while his
knowledge of Sanskrit and of Christian Gnosticism likewise resulted
believed that he did. 11is 193 1 l,rll~lic;ttion. Thr /n/l,~or(
on Histoty a n d M o r a l ~ , "was
r. o/' Mtt~ic-
~ ~ an irnport;~ntand ~ ~ i l I r l l ' ~ ' V~ ~l l~lI~~ I I I W
I in highly original and accomplished spiritu;il works. in its study of the inner powcr of music and w;ls I,II(.01 111cI'irsl
In the United States a quite uniquc composer, Norman Thomas books in modern times to renew people's thinkin!; ;111c\ .Iw;Il-r.rlr.;\ 1111

~i
Miller, has brought forth several tone pc)cnis which truly deserve to the subject. Yet what is perhaps even more fascin,~tit~!: 111;111 111rl+ook

be called New Age music. Working froni A background of the itself is the background and life out of which it wit.; W r;t t rn. I:( lr I 111.
I l teachings of the Great White Hrothrrhood. N. T . Miller has life-story of Cyril Scott serves well t o show us j~l:;c I ( ) wll.11 y,rc..rr :I
evolved a style which, while in many w;iys I~cingentirely novel, also degree esoteric sources have influenced the art and ;lr1isls 01 I 1111- c1.1 y .
seeks to return the tonal arts t o ihr 11,.1ditionalprinciples of Cyril Scott was born at Oxton in Cheshire O I I L7 S r l ~ ~ r ~ l l l i r r .
,
aesthetics. His music deliberntcly ;~voicl.; rllc trap of over- 1879. W e are told that by the age of two and a hall' hr W ; I L ;~ljlrI O
intellectualism, and can be undc.rsrootl ;I lid enjoyed by any pick up tunes by ear and perform them on piano, ;incl r l ~ \ ~ l.II.;O tl

spiritually-minded person. lt is ron:ll caxi.rpl where dramatic improvise. Not, however, until he arrived at thc ripc olcl :I/:V 411'
tli,c.orci. N. T. Miller's
development specifically requircs ;I ilclil~r~~~;~rc seven did he receive instruction in how to read and writc n~usic.:~l
most important work to date is 'l'kr r ; r ~ l lr,( C r r n ~ l o t , 'a~thirty
~ notation. Perhaps not surprisingly, by the time he had maturrcl S r o r ~
I'
minute tone poem of unique and sc~rsclli~~~: .;llirit~~;~lity. Miller is . had developed into a virtuoso pianist. A. Eaglefield Hull, r l ~ r
actually an accomplished multi-niedi:~ :1r.t15t. I)c*ir~gnot only a musicologist and general editor of the Waverley Music LAovn,'s
I. Library, once wrote of him:
musician, but also a painter, poet, p h n t ~ ~ } : r ; ~ ~;tnd
r l ~art
t . ~ ~director.

~
l:~'
I
Yet in The Call of Camelot he seems somrhow t l r 11.1vrcombined all
of these talents into the medium of music, ior rllcrc- c o ~ l l c ihardly be a
composition more picturesque - and even 11I1111o~:r:l~hic - in the
clarity of the visions which it offers to the atr1111c.tlIisic*ner.The Call
of Camelot is the voice of the indwelling Goil, t11r inner Grail -
Last night I was spellbound at the nonchalant ease with which he
played through his suprrl> I'iltno Concerto from the full score MS..
rippling along (as 1 [lung tlic pages over almost continuously)
with truly astonishing gift.; of tcbchnique, touch and reading;
calling us t o be all that we truly are, all th:~t t ;od is. The work whistling the while flurc ;~ntlv~olinmelodies, and vocalizing horn
utilizes an orchestra, other more subtle instrur~~c-nts and sound- parts in a nawl ~ o i l c ,like horn notes forced through
effects, and indescribably moving vocals to tr:1ll.;,~orlthe listener - mutes. Where and how clicl he attain such tremendous
with Merlin through an enchanted forest; ridin/: with Arthur into powers?1l 0
the thick of nn i~rchetypalspiritual-physical b:ct~lc; in procession by
twilight to a torchlit cathedral. Besides bcing cleeply mystical, More than for his playing. I~owcver,it was as a composer th:tr
l
Miller's work alsn constitutes a most potent call t o action. If this is C g d Scott gained a wide ~.rl)nt;ttionin Great Britain and o n I I I ~ .
the spiritual direction of the music of the future, then the years ahead Continent during the early twentieth century. His works intlrltlr~l
hold much of promise in store for us. Including lyrics by none other symphonies and other orchestral pieces, choral compo.;ilir,l~\, .l
l
l i ~ than El Morya, the famous Adept and Chohan of the Great White
Brotherhood (adapted from his writings), the work peaks musically
number of pieces of chamber music, and a very large 111l1l1l1r.1 111

songs and works for solo piano. Strangely though. hi, I I I I I * . ; , 1'. l 1 1 I It-
and spiritually with a transccndent vocal meditation, 'The Revela- known today - strangely so, since during his day 111- w.1,. I I I W I 11 111r.u1
tion of the Holy Grail'. in the same breath as artists such as VauRhan WiIli;1111~~. A I I I I 1111 1 t . 1 ~ .
Percy Grainger and Claude Debussg. A . l l . l ~ l l l - 1(.111
I 1 11111 ~ . . ~ i r l
2 64 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC CODA 265

1; ; around 1920 that Cyril Scott was, 'undoubtedly the richest har-
monist we [the British] possess'.'10 In Debussy's estimate, Scott
from the Great White Brotherhood? Though rhr original material
upon which the 'Initiate' books wcre based wits n o t Scott's, never-

11 was, 'one of the rarest artists of the present generation'.


Besides possessing the aforernentioncd talents, Cyril Scott was also
an accomplished conductor, a lecturer. a translator, and a writer on
.music. In addition to this, at the agc of 2 1 he began writing verse,
and became well known thereafter as A poet. His first published
theless he revealed later in life, when the anor~yn~ily
had been seen through, that he too had 1)1.(.11 . ;I tliscil>lc
initiate; indeed, that he was also ;i prtatag
third books. And, he said, after thc events d
still continued to receive contacts f rom Mas
.
of' thc books
of the
d and
oks hc
,111)od.

,1 collection of verse, The Shadows of .Filenre and the Songs of Yester- ' 1 1
Did it, then, all happen just as Scott sala tnat 11 C I I r~
' day, ' l 1 came out during his early twentirs, and reflected what was Ultimately, each of us must decide for oursrlvrs OII r l r ; l t point. I t
1 then his rather pessimistic outlook of agl~osticism.The second, The
Grave of Eros and the Book of Mozrrnful Mdodies, l I 2 was written
does seem impossible to believe that Scorr woultl Il;tvt. 1,rc.n
deliberately untruthful : throughout h s life, his nlwc )l111 r si11crri t Y ;incl
during what he later called, not altogcrl~rrseriously, his 'decadent' needle-sharp sanity were plainly evident. It is 1 , I I t l ~ cclllr'.;l ion o f
I
phase. However, he went through this pll;~sronly half-heartedly, whether or not he was ever misled that W C I I I I I S I .II lllis ~ioitlt
and without conviction. This phasc W;IS 1 1 ) c ~ abruptly ~ d upon his suspend judgement either way. O n the one hancl, ir is 1 1 i ~1111knc,wli
. ~.
discovery of Theosophy and Indixr ~ l l y Inde
. cd, it would be for individuals who have received some contact fro111
I
difficult to conceive of a morc g r ~ r ])l(. t11;111 t:he life of Cyril later get carried away or misled by others into hrlit
Scott following his finding 01' 1 1 11 wisdoln in order to contacts are continuing when they are not. Yet on I
demonstrate the close rrl;ctionsIiip 111.11 II.I\ ofirti prevailed in there is no doubt but that at least some of Cyril Scott's I~c.licl'swrrr
modern times between esc~tcsici\t~~ ,11111 I I I I I ' , ~ .~
l founded on solid g o u n d . (And I do not say that they a11 wrrc I I ,t~ . )
According to Scott himself. hc W;IS c - v r ~ l r ~ contacted ~ ; ~ l l ~ directly For example, several of the disguised characters portrayed willli~i.
by the Great White Brothcrhoocl, :~ncl i ~ ~ t i t t l : ~ l c sponsored -l~ and the 'Initiate' boc~- k now
s stand retrealed, and all recounted by Scor I
guided by them in the production of mur.l~t r l 11;sn1.llill.r musical and
~ 111 literary works. Already hailed by Eugrnc (,oo.;rns .IS the 'father of
concerning then1 has prcwed genluine. 'David Anrias', for onc. ;ln
astrologer and 'I+hcosophist in the books, was Brian Ross, who ;IC
~1 .

'
British modern music', Scott now turnccl ; t l \ o I ( I 11r writing of 1,- In.
l ' '
one time workea ror nnnle Desanr in India during her time as Presi-
books; books on esotericism and alternacivc. ir~rcli~.i~~c' ,. He was , too, dent of the Theosophical Socicty.
I the author of the series of three 'Initiate' hot4.ca,wl~ic 41 :ire still! very But to return to Scott's cxperiences themselves. The initiate,
well-known among csoteric circles. Thcsc wr.l.c. Iwnnea1 anony- 0---Jing to Scott's account, w;ts as impressive an individual as onc
'LLCVI U I

mously by Scott, using autobiographical mntrri.11j:ivc*n to him by an could imagine. Even as Vo1t;iire described Saint Germain, thc
!~
~ I
unnamed poet. The first of the three, The Initi,r/r, .Some Impressions
of a Great Sou1113,describes the poet's cncoilr\trrs in England
with a high initiate of the Brothcrhood who ;tccr.pl.rdthe poe.t as his
'wondc:rman of Europe'. thc i ~ ~ i t i a tofe Scott's books also seemed
to be 'a man who never dics, ;111rl who knows everything'. Though
he rare ly demonstrated them, l ~ i hspiritual powers by which he could
disciple. The second book, The Initiate in ~ k rhrew W prldl C 14, influen ce the material worlrl ;trcj~~nci himself are said to have been
I follows the spiritual career and teachings of rhc initiatc in the quite SI perh human.
United States, and in the third volume this initiate of the Great But the most important ;1\l)cbctof' the Initiate books frnm 111c
White Brotherhood again returns to the British Isles, after many point of view of our present 1i11c. of investigation is that in rhr St;t~r-.~
ll years of absence.
Some have doubtcd the veracity of these three immensely
this individual - called Justin Moreward Haig, or "JMH", i t 1 t l ~ r
books - was conductink; regular meetings of his chelas, rn;tllv OI
readable and steadily popular books, considering them to be fiction. whom were prominent 1seople in their various lines nf work, ,rrtr/
But certainly Scott himself maintained that the books are factual who included among their ranks, nzusicians, poets, nr/ir/r ,rtt(l r~lrrtrr.~,
accounts of episodes in the life and teachings of the grrat soul about . -
The point being that most among mankind are \in:ll~lrI ~ II I I I W ~ I I ~ [ I ~ :
~ - -- - -

whom they were written. Before continuing, what attitude st~ould to accept the reality and existence of thr R r o ~ l ~ r r l ~ r ~ ;l1t1 1r1 ~: l~ .r t . 111
we take in regard to Scott's belief that he received ciirect con.tacts any case not infrequently incapable of rihstr~.l~in~: t l ~ r . M , I , % Ir-v.;' I3lll.r

; l Ill l /
L (3 0 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC CODA 267
teachings in the form that they are given out. Therefore, besides the 1 l., of Modernism in its (:nni~rcttni, r<lirh M r t . ~ i c , " Cyril
I'l~~lrlropl!~ ~
giving forth of their pure and undiluted words, the Masters have 1 ~rnp;lredthe Modernists t o a lnan who scts out on a walking
often taken the course of training disciples to stGP-down their 1111 the intention of never, unrlrr :my circun~st;~nces, setting
message and vibration. In the broadest sense, this is literally a stage ,c111 ;in established road. In keeping t o such ;r rigid doctrine,
in the stepping-down of the frequencies of the Word. The disciples \ I ltlrrnist thereby finds not freedom. hut tllr u l t im;rtr I)oncl;~pc.
1
then promulgate through their line of service the principles of ethics, I I C is not free to retain those wcll-tricd :~ntlprovctl l ~ r i r ~ c i l ~ ~ c s
morality and spirituality, as well as any more specific concepts 11 :trr the very foundation of bcauty ;~nrlsl~l)limir~ ill r ~ ~ ~ ~ s i c .
which the times might demand for the betterment of the race. But
I 1114. Mocternists Scott often, in fact. prrfc-rrril I O c;~ll 'Moll-
they d o so without usually ever revealing the Source of their initial I 1 I..I\' !) True freedom, Cyril Scott ;rcgurcl. l i r ~wit h 1 1 1 ~cc,nii~clsrr
1
inspiration. In this way, many chelas of the Brotherhood have .uI rl\c. Romantic class, who is able to krep to thr r.;t;tI~lisl~c.d ~>;~ths,
worked throughout history - in the arts, the sciences, and also as 411 I I O I , as he chooses.
politicians and as the great, moral leaders of men. Many a famous
Now it is evident from the second Tniriatr hook III;II '1 M l l ' 'S
and important episode of history - such as the American Revolu- 0 Ir 4 [r of chelas included literary and othcr artists of W(-~rlcl rcpllr r. 'I'll(.
tion, which WC discussed earlier, to name but one - has an entirely I I I, lividual who supplied his own autobio~aphici~l tiintcri;~lI 1 SI.I11 I
different and unrevealed story behind it if the truth were but .I+, ;I foundation for the books, is himself descrihcd ;IS 1101 11 :I I ) ( N - ~
known: the story of the causes behind thr cffccts; the story of the . I I I ~ a composer. (In the books this is the first-prrsrr~~ II;II.I..II~~,
Adrpts of the Great Whitc Brotherhood and thosc historical figures tli\guised under the name of 'Charles Broadbcnt'.) Then, :lr Ic:1s1
who were, unbeknownst to thc world, tlir~irchrlas. This has a most I W O other composers are referred to, one of whom we now know t o
important bearing upon our sttldy o i t l ~ csccrzt power of music. For 11:tvebeen Cyril Scott. This fact, that Scott himself was onc ol' tllc
the story of the prcat music ol' ;111cicnttin1c.s. and also that of the r,ircle of chelas in America for a time, is confirmed in an adricndl~m
Western classical tradition - oi w h : ~;~~ c ~ u ; ~inspiredlly it and of
on the subject of the Initiate books which is to be found in the 1 l)! 5
where much of it really camc fro111- r~ onr ~ ~ ~ l i goes z l $ ~ completely
cdition of Scott's .4n Outline of Modern Occultism. It seems t h : ~ ~
rtnsuspected by all but the few.
Scott must have been, the individual referred to as ' L y d Herbert'.
And yet, a hint of this story of tlic :11!1- t,:111 Pt'~.I~;ip~ be gathered since this is the only composer who turns up in both the second and
from the life and writings of Cyril Scat t
the third Initiate chronicles; and according to Scott's own
Following his encounter with esntcrir,isn~,S r c ~ ~was r never the addend~un referred to nhovc, he himself does appear in these
same person again. Oriental philosophy. " I ' l ~ c + r 1 1 > 1 1and
~ the practice volumes.
of yoga and meditation became his a b t a l ~ i l ~interest ~; in life.
The various artist-chelas of 'TMH' are said t o have been under
Immediately, from this moment on, s~~ct,c*c.cling compositions
the guidance of the ~ r o t h r r h o c doi Adcpts of East and West, the
entered into the realms of mysticism and Orirn1:tlism. From his pen role of the composers being I O bring forth a God-aligned music for
there now came musical works such the tl inclu-style Jungle B o o k thc furthering of the evolution o f LIIC race. It can be seen therefore.
the darkly magical Sphinx, Lotus-land, the Cl~i?rrse Songs, and many should we choose t o accept the :~ccount,just how direct an influence
more. His third volume of verse, The Voil.c* of the A n ~ i e n t , " ~ on the music of the worlcl rllr secret guiding hand of thr
displayed a radical change in subject matter ancl cmotional effect, as Broth~erhoodcan prove to h(*.
did succeeding volumes. Scott's raison d'e"tre as an artist in any
As for the individual n;lmed in the books as 'Lyall Hcrhc,r~'.
medium was now absolutely goal-oriented towards the highest proba bly identifiable as Scott hin~sclf,it is worth noting th:~t; I I or1r
purpose and aim in life - the spiritual path. 11 during the final volume, The Initiate in the Dark Cvdr. ' l " .I
Where would Scott have taken his stand in relation to the strr says t o him: 'And you, you w d write a new kincl r ) l I I I I I ~ . I ~
subjects we have discussed in this book, about the use and misuse of s well as a bcmk on the subject - for which y c w ~ ~~l lI,., r.lvr*
the power of music? With regard to the artistic directions of the t.111~. 1st
3pLdal preparatory training at a Master's hnnrlq'
fellow-composers of his generation, Scott made his position quite
nbrance Scott's path-breaking book, Mtrrir,, Itr (PIrt4f 1~1//1rrrrr1.1
clear. In a hard-hitting but well-argued criticism of the avant-garde,
~ghoutthe age^.'
268 CODA 269
THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC
Yet regardless of who 'Lyall Herbert' really was, there is one angels sing.' Though the critic could also point to Schumann's
passage involving him which never. ceases to fascinate. For at one mental instability, the same can in no way be said of Hiindel, who
stage this well-known English composer is taken, as is 'Charles felt that his Messlab, one of the greatest pieces of music evcr written,
Broadbent' the poet, to the abode of a Master in the English country- had likewise been revealed to him. During its composilion hr. felt
side. (And we should note that in his addendum Cyril Scott, the very gates of heaven had been opened to him, and lit. was ;thlc
writing as Cyril Scott, refers to this Master and his estate in the to see and hear the other-worldly chorusing of s ~ ~ e r ~ l ~ ;~111d sic;~l
South West of England in such a way, as to indicate first-hand divine beings. As he later declared: 'I think I did scc ; t I I I lr:~vrn
knowledge.) Here, 'Herbert' and 'Broadbent' are specially before me and the great God Himself.' It is recordctl r l l ; ~ IIIV ~

prepared to c l a i r a ~ d i e n t hear
l ~ a celestial music from superphysical experience of penning the work moved him so greatly r l l ; ~ t ~c.;cl.s
realms of existence. And then: flowed with and blotted the ink. Considering both thc' Iowc.r.ltl):
stature and timeless perfection of the work, as well a s i l l ; II-I),I!I~I.
From far away I heard the strains of an organ with which was weight is added to the claim that it was revealed to him, ; t l l c l I I I ~ I IIlc
mingled the sound of voices so pure and cthcrcal as to suggest did not have to strive painstalungly to put it together himst-It, 1)s I l l r .
the chanting of a celestial choir, wafted o n ;I pcaceful evening startling $act that it was written in but three short weeks, ancl (111rit1\:
breeze. The music was unlike any music I 1i;ltl hcard before; it one of the most trying periods of his life. The concept ol 'rc.vc..~lr.tl
was subtle, yet melodious, sweet, yrt clc*voill of ;ill sentimental music' is not often gven consideration during o u r I W ( - \ ' - I ~ I
lusciousness; at one moment powc.rf~tl : t t ~ c l ;~wc.-awakening,at materialistic age, yet, whatever its explanation, it seems to I l c , I vc.1.y
another soft and tender as the caress of ;l11 .III~:I-I's Ii;111d. definite phenomenon, and one deserving of further study. In. ,1 l l i 5
'My Brother Koot Hoomi pl;1yinl: O I I I l i s orj;;in ... and the respect, we must not forget either that in both traditional ~ ~ I I ~ L U I I S
and modern esoteric literature there is also the concept o f r11r1.r
voices you hear are those of thc C;;~ncll~;~tv;lb, . .. I .isicn well, and
remember, for one day you sh;ill givc. 1i11111 si11(.11niusic to the being two sides. That is, the good and the evil. Suppressing a sliglil
world ...' shudder, we can recall again those mysterious words o f Stravinsky
It was Sir Thomas who had spoken, . I I I ~ I Ili:; words were about The Rite of S!ring: 'I heard, and I wrote what I heard. I WAS
addressed to Lyall. the vessel through which Le Sacre du Printemps passed.' As for our
The music continued for a while, then I:r.~tl~~.~llv 1;tded away, own day, more than one esoteric authority has claimed t h a t virtually
and there was another silence.'I6 all of the lyrics of the morc heavy rock bands are unconsciously
received as dictations from ~naliciousdiscarnate entities - a claim
This passage is by no means quoted here f o r ~ l r c . tlltbre purpose which becomes not quite s o unbelievable when one pays close atten-
of recounting a thrilling or controversial talc. 1t.rrl1c.1.the account tion to these lyrics, t o see just what cxnctly it is that is being said.
scrvcs well to indicate just how strongly ,t:r~itlr.cl many great For example:
rnnsici:tns may have been, though the world nc)t known it, and
how closc t o our cveryday life these guiding prlwc-l.s Iivve at times Ugh.
approachcci. 'I'hough there would not be room t o irlc.lude them all Ahhh.[A poetic start ! - T>.'I', ]
here, there cxist ql~itca number of such account\, in which mortals Can't help feeling strangr.
appear to have brcn thc beneficiaries of a parting of thc veil, during The moon is up I think I'm p n n a change.
which they hcnrd a cc.lcsti;tl music of indescrih;ihlc sublimity. Some- You're so smooth and tmclrr.
times the individuals conccrticd have been spiritual seekers; some- A livin' breathin' dream.
times they have bccn know11 composers of acknowledged stature. I'm listen' for your scream.
T o refer briefly to two of'th(, Illore widely-quoted episodes: Robcrt I'm almost human; I'm almost a man,
Schumann wrote music at ;i l a ~ cstagc in his lift which he said was I'm almost human.
dictated to him by angels, a clair11which his wife belicved, stating
after his death that, 'It is in th.e music of Robert Schumann that the 'Almost Human' - K i v
270 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC CODA 271

The male rock star, Alice Cooper, says that he took the name after I I I I I I . 11;id been one of the major inspiring factors behind his creative
contacting a discarnate called Alice Cooper during a seance, and I I I I I I N Indeed,
II. at the age of sixty-five he had made his own
that it is the discarnate who partly takes over his actions and singing 11f.1 \u11a1decision to bring his years of composing to an end; but the
on stage. All said for the sake of publicity? Our answer probably M;~.;rrrs,he says, had urged him to continue, which he did until the
depends on just how real, or else how non-existent, we consider the r11t1ol' his life. (At the Masters' own request, Scott recounted, the
non-physical dimensions to be. Certainly the idea of evil entities III-;T work he next completed was his third opera, Maureen
bringng forth new and disruptive forrns of music through their ( 1 'M'ira.)
human channels receives a number of mentions in early Christian Certainly it must be said that whatever the source of his inspira-
literature. St Chrysostom, for onc, said that: 'lest demons introduc- -1cse revelations of Scott's arc of major importance in again
ing lascivious so& should overthrow cvcrything, God established jtrating the reality of the influence of esotericism upon music.
the psalms'. Rarely, however, has thr proc9cssof musical revelation . ~ -ver . our own standpoint with regard to Scott's unusual claims,

(from one 'side' or the other) hcrn so cxndidly described as in I l1;1t he believed them makes the great influence of esotericism upon
Scott's book. llic music undeniable. That a modern composer of such significance
Meanwhile, concurrent with thc cpisoclc o f the musical revela- sl~ouldhave felt himself to be in rapport with the legendary Great
tion, Cyril Scott was at work 11po11I I I C hook which was first Whit e Brotherhood is a quite extraordinary fact. And who can say
released in 193 3 under thc rirlr. ' / ' / W Itr/lrrc~t/c.r of Music on History I 1l;lt among Cyril Scott's many compositions there are not those
a n d Morals.1o9 Unlikr. t l ~ rI n i ~ i ~ ~ I)ook\, rt. this one was released whicln are indeed his transcriptions, to the best of his ability, of the
under Cyril Scott's own nllnlr. I I I I ') IH ;l11 11pdated edition came nspired upon him by the Master Koot Hoomi, and which are
out, being the still-nv;lil:~l)leAI r r r r r , 11, .\rc rrt lt//lrrence Throughout the. sct reflections of the music of the spheres ?
Ages.' Only in r.1ii.i sr~ontlc - c l i ~ ~ rt )l ~ c~ l Scrhtl 1.c.vca1his belief that ,as once said of Scott that he was a hundred years in advance
both editions o f ~ I I Chc~ok11:lcl Irrc.11i ~ ~ s ~ ~ i11po11 r t . t l lliln by numerous 01 ms generation. Perhaps this gives a hint as to the meaning of the
and detailed disc~~.isIo~v, will1 K o o t I l o o l ~ ~I ..II
i Sillgh. one of the I;iter decades of his life. For while the critics, music publishers and
great Aderrs wl~c)11:1ti ;~lso I>crn hrllir~cl I l ~ rI;)rmation of the Iwrformers generally ignored both his early and later work. and
Theosophic.;~lSocirry in thc I;ist quarter oit11r ~ ~ i ~ l r ~ rcentury. cnth while he more than once felt discouraged and ready to throw in the
After ;I Ior~):; ~ l l t l 11.11it1'11l lifC during wliir,l~IIV t 1 . 1 1 l ~pioneered the rowel, he was prevailed upon by those he believed to be his Guides
reawakeninf: o f 1n;in's awarcncss of thc secrrl Ilowcr inherent in all' ro cont inue composing up until the last. This, even though the works
music. Cyril SCOIIp;~sscdfrom this world in 107 1 . And yet, after 1"
CLIL ldrgely unpublished snct i~n~trrformed.
....-.-L

all, to ~ U Ir his own lines : ne autobiography Scntt st;ttm that fro111rltr Mnsters' point of
he first thing is to get t h r work writ1c.n; the rest if needs be
W h a t nrr / / J P r~~nrld'sfoolish
toys, anddeath's ~phmn~rral
sorrows, lit - sometimes even :IS Ion/: :I\ t i l l ;~fterthe composer's
Seerni~~: rntll~rr,yut by the Endless,fleeter than lyb~?ring'sflashes.'l' death'. True it is that many 01 r l ~ c * I I I O ~ . ~f;tnious works of today's
concert: hall repaoire were :IIIIIO!JI , ) t . ~ l l [Inknown during the lives
Needless to w y , nl:tny among the mainstream of the music world o f rhosc who brought them Llr111.'I'.tkr most of the works of J.S.
looked ask:incr ;II these 'eccentricities' of Scott's; his talk of
W. . , . L..

rcvived in the 1800s) 01. )finished1 Symphony of


'Masters', his hooks 011 alternative medicine, esotericism and the r t (discovered as a iii>c;~rtlt cript after h s death) for
like. Further, it I1,15 I~ccnsuggested that his decline in popularity P. If Scott's work wns inrlrc, m e forth from his pen, a
after the heady days of his young maturity, when some felt him to ~lunulrdvears in advance of his );rrlrlauull, it may therefore be most
be the father of British modern music, must be directly related to rntcreslting to ol3serve the corlrsr of events concerning it in years to
this 'dissipation' of his t;ilents. come.
But in an autobiography published at the age of ninety (Bone of
Contention, Aquarian Press, 1969), Scoa discounted this, and ESOTERICISTS REDISCOVER MUSIC
claimed that esotericism, and in particular the Masters who guided - Or then again, did they ever forget it? W e have seen that there
272 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC
exists a certain horse-and-carriage relationship between esotericism I I I I ~ I I I > ~o~ f. obscrvers, One bell, being co~lrimro~~slystruck for quite a
and music. And this explains why it should be that recent decades ~ ~ ~ I I I I vI~acl
, the effect (to the scnsitivcs) o f lii:htin~ up 'hi. entire
obvious inference from all of rhis is tll;~~:,
F.
have witnessed the gradual surfacing o f a new, twentieth-century I~MIIII. Il~c wb;r~rvcrthe
esoteric manner of studying the tonal art:i.With tlle re-emergence of l11ik11ow11 cnergy is, it radiates from all music;~linsrrumrn~h; ~ r l t lfrom
esotericism in general, a new and wider -- ..--l:--
~callaittionof the inner ,111 I l~ingswhich emit sound.
secrets of sound and music has naturally Ixgun to follow. ( ) L I T own century has witnesscd the appcarnncr OI I I I , I I I ~ o(.(,l~lt
In fact, the first esoteric study of the properties of sound to take !!~,otrpsand systems of esoteric thought. While many ~ I I I . I ~ I!,i~riil;rr
I

place within comparatively recent times was that of Baron von r.lrments to each other, they also each possess tlirir O W I I cIi~,li~~(.t
Reichenbach (1 788-1 869) during the last century. Reichenbach's It;uures; but a number of these groups, rnovcmcnls , I I I I ~ NI.MJ/Ij:c
study was part of a more extensive str~clyinto a mysterious force or writers have had things to say about thc esoteric * > i ~ l Ir, I I I I I I \ I ( . .
energy which he called Odic Foric. Ilistinct from magnetism or I Iuivcrsally, they agree with the beliefs of the a n c i r n ~ .(~111,. , ; I I ~11
electricity-, yet related to each ir - lic Force seems to New Age writer, Corinne Heline, who was born into t11v I ' I . ~ , I I I ~ I I ( . I I I
have been the same 'extra' an k n o w n as yet to I )uke family of America's Old South, wrote c o n s i d c r : ~ l ~O IlI~ I llr-
science, which numerous rnodc ~ a v ecome across, wbject. She considered there to be t w o distinct strtams 111 1 1 1 ~I ~ I I I \ ; ~ .
calling it everything from vital Sorr-r 01-rlhcsic cnergy to bioplasma OS the world. Each releases a different tonal force into ~ l r cp l : r r ~ c , ~ .
and orgone energy. Reichenbach'.; m;r 11y clrl ;iilcd cxperiments with Consonances bring forth the constructive force and srsr-ll{:ll~rn
this force, which could br srrn :~n(lc1rcc.l-il)rcl hy clairvoyant sen- man's higher nature; dissonances bring forth the destrrlc~ivtI O S ~ T
sitive~,were first p~~blishrd in srsi:~li~c-(l 1itr111in 1 8 4 4 , and are in ;tnd strengthen man's desire nature. Jazz and modern p o p u l : ~n111aic ~
print today as the book po.;llll~nlnt~.;ly r.lrlitlrcl 'The Mysterious Odic she believed to be responsible for many of society's present ills : '~:ITI
F ~ r c e . " ~ W h a t c l i s t i ~ ~I i~ ~I I ~ I I I I from I most later and juvenile delinquency are twins. Where one flourishes thc o ~ l ~ r r
researchers into this forct. is r l ~ r1 1 . 1 1 1 I t 1 1 l : l r l sc,icntific
y manner in will appear.'13 O n the optimistic side, besides extolling thr arcis1 ic.
which he went about his work. merits of Western and Eastern classical music, and writing COII.
Within a complctcly darkencc1 n)ont, 111rst.~~silives were able to siderably of their beneficial effects, Corinne Heline was also
see Odic Force as 'Iigllt'. Discnvcrin!: r l l ~ \ . I(r~c,ltcnbachdevised a supremely confident that in the near future we are to witness tlic-
number of experiments to see how V ; I I . ~ O111i11gs I I , ~ affected this birth of a more advanced and evcn more sublime form of tonal art -
mysterious 'light'-force. Having ronclr~c.~r.~l ()elk cxperiments in a New Age music, the effccrs of which will radically transform all of
relation to electricity, magnetism, psycl~c,l( colours, chemical civilization. After the tradition of Plato and Aristotle, Corinne
reactions and crystals, he then had the hr:ri~~ w . ~ v c of . trying
. out the Heline believed that music and man's dcgree of spirituality and
effect of sound. Standing in a darkened morn 11 11 .I Viennese sensi- other character traits are indissolubly linked; that in fact styles of
tive, Reichenbach struck a bell. Immediately 111csensitive reported music and man's degree of spiritu;rlity :
that the bell had become visible and lurninor~sto him. Apparently
sound itself emitted a radiation of Odic Forcr. While this force was stand apart only to our lirn~tedpcrcc.ption. In their essence they
both invisible and inaudible to the average perhorl, most clairvoyants are inseparably united, ,end In higher realms of being it i.:
could see it. Reichenbach tried striking orher oh1c.cts- a metal rod, a recognized that musical ~ ~ ~ ~ t l c ~ \ t . r and
n d i nspiritual
g realization
horseshoe magnet, a different bell, glass tumblers - and all were are identical.'
reported as having become luminous by a succession of sensitives.
The degree of luminosity depended upon the strength of the blow, Such writings seem definitely to foreshadow an imminent rn,I,ot
which is to say, the volume of the sound. The light was also resurgence of the Pythagorean dnd other ancient stylm of I I111lkIII!:
brighter, the hlgher the pitch. It was further noted that as the tones on the subjects of sound and tonal art Yet for this rctllrli t o 111,lrrll
audibly vibrated or oscillated, so too was the light seen to become principles to be truly powerful and effective in in arl lrll~,11 i ~1 ,1 l t r . l ~
brighter and dimmer. Upon a violin being played, not only the that it will need to combine not only a rrrltr!:rr~rt. ,,I Ictr~nc.~
strings but also the whole rrsonance box became luminous to a wisdom, but also something entirely new and r r v ~ ~ l1tl ~~1l1 . 1 r ySII(11 .I
< &. "
>g.fi
$-? 9
&,SS.
a-
rz J
X g 6)
" G ,
pg
.7
.J 25
:'" 2
-22
EFZ
' " C
-F:
.2 & m e
2
- *-
-- .> -
276 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC
In this mission of messengership, Mark and Elizabeth Prophet have + -
>.
:; M
given forth in their lectures and books, through the Summit Light- '.l
, ... ', .cC
house, a great wealth of teachings on a variety of New Age L
7- '-c"
subjects. And among this system of thought and its practical .5 .z
application we find much of relevance to our study of the power of L G
2
sound. In The Science of Rhythm for the Mastery of the Sacred Energies -:..E d
of Life,Iz2 a lecture released in recorded form. Elizabeth Clare ::.z, 3cJ
,l U
7z 5
Prophet relates which of the seven rays and seven chakras are par- :,
"I
k
> C
L
.

ticularly associated with which class of musical instrument and 5 2;


which style of music. The lecture, which constitutes the Summit
Lighthouse's fundamental relensc 0 1 1 the subject of music, I m
2
encompasses a great deal of new inforrna tion; but at least a little of 52 ,
it we can best summarize in the form of ;I Itahlc, as shown in Table S. 3 :.S
..S.- .
.-U 2
Among the many other aspects o f r l ~ csc~~cr~cc. of the Word which I I m ,c

the Summit Lighthouse has releasccl i h O I I ~ *of' interest to us 1' g ;


in this book. This is thc practicc of I I Y ~ I III ~I ~ ' science of the spoken
1 'X5 .0n-c
$C
I 2 +.c 2
Word itself - which so clo.rt,iy re.wml~lrs\/kr cirrtfiul and conscious use :
a 2 5 ;. 2
a
made of the spo4erz W o r d t b rrrtricrt/\.
~ 1 0 , gsg.
1
W e have revicwcd in c.:trlicr cl~,~l>lcr:; Ilow the Chinese used
gigantic musical ensemhlcs ollr of' t 1)c.lic.l' I II;II they radiated forth
1 1 1 8
h , a

an uplifting spirirual energy t h r o u g l ~ c 1111.


, ~ ~jrl;~r~ct;
~ how the Hindus S
22
e
have for millennia given mantras :~ntl~ ) I I . I ~ , I I I + 1'1 ) I . I ~ sustainment
C of 3 ,c
(: X
civilization and the physical equilil>riu~~~ I i l I I I V l)l;~net ; how highly
developed was the Egyptian priesthe)otl's sopllisticated system of
..
g 3-2 45
1.

-2 2 2
( , I

invocation (as well as their training in how t11(. sl>irituallyadvanced Q.u

individual should use speech in everyday lil'c.). I<csearching for this I


il U
book into the power of sound and the nioclrr~~ lrscs of the spoken .. -5 -5 a
1.; cT2.5"
word, I was struck by the peculiar absencc tc)tl;cy of such practices. E
The ancients believed the use of sound t o br rllc tt~c.)stpowerful key
': 2 ,>'m
2%
CS g
' I
_J'2 8 2
of all for the unlocking of the door t o higher .;r;ilrs of consciousness .; ."-U 2
as well as for the effecting of practical changes in the world at large. # - r 3 4.S
In contrast to this, however, modern spiritu:~];ispirants and world-
1145a
-5.5 e
servers concentrate almost exclusively upon silent techniques of
meditation. At most, the modern devotee has known only how to :
1, ';
pray, or to sing a hymn, or has uttered a few printed lines from a . i
book. The giving of Eastern chants is, too, not an altogether . ,, .:S ,,

vanished practice. Yct none of this bears any resemblance to, say,
--.. e
m

the extremely scientific use of consonants and vowels as practised in i


'J D W
I
,. E&?g.=
ancient Egypt in order to accomplish selfless, right-motivated, and -, $ 3
highly specif c acts of whitc magic. The head of the Summit Light- m', ,
m <

.,
1,
,,,
!:
a,
',,
3
C:J=-
,;
k

house, Elizabeth Clare Prophet, believes that this science of the


1
spoken Word is thc missing link in modern man's aspirations for 1;:
278 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC CODA
self-evolution. Could it indeed be that the exclusively silent path is 111I11111 1 1 111 I I I C woiI(1 of tilne and space.
in some ways an unbalanced onc, given the dire needs of our age for I 111, !:I~III,: 01 c,~cl.~ c,;i11 with fervor ,111tl I I J V I . ,~~llorn;ctically
effective changcs t o take place swiftly on the world scene? Certainly 111b111.~.4. 1 1 1 1 3 (.11(.rgic$01' the heavenly IIIP.I<, 0 1 1 I ~ c a l ~ , ~ 01l f thc
it was believed of old that whereas meditation and prayer raise m 14 t I I r.1 . I I I ~~ 1 n1;tnkind.
1 In addition, drcr.r.gm5 ;it-(. ; I tl(.lin~tc..;t;cti.-
mankind's consciousness to G o d , only the scientific use of the throat 1,1# I S L I I I ~ rh;tt thc. mind of the indiv~llo,llt 1 l . i ) ' Iollow 10 ;L
111 1 1 1

chakra, applied with concentration and determination, can fully I ~ ~ I .[l


S I t,c~nclusion.
~ And in this case, it i\ llir ~ I I I l~r.ioti
I ~ 01' the
invoke the energies of G o d down into the world of form in which I 01 thc W o r d t h ~ tis made flesh l ) y 111r 1 1 1 1 1 ~ 1 . 1 1 1 1 tllr
I I ! ~ ~ I ~ , ,

w e live. And in a remarkably similar vein t o this concept of anti- (-1) W o r d , that is, by the power of dr~.rc.r\. lly I O \ I I I ~ L I:IW
. 1 l e 11.

quity, thousands of people today also believe the spoken W o r d to be I I I * wortlcd ideas mzist eventuate in a c t ~ ~ : ~ lwl1c.11 ~ t v tl1c.v . t ~ . r
capable of creating and sustaining a most potent a n d planet-wide I Io..~*.t.{l in the namc of G o d and b y the , ~ u l l l o s i ~I )I I 11i.( : l 1 1 I \ I
6 \l

revolution into higher consciousness. 11 1111(. .. .


The most usual form in which the Summit Lighthouse makes use WIIO
I'l~ok~' understand the power of thr 3 ( 1 1 1 , 1 1 ( 1' 1 1 III,II I I ~ ' I I I . I II , ,r

of the power of sound is in the giving of what are called dynamic r\ a l l ~,ta;~lize
that whcn groups of indivic111,tls.Ire I~II,I:.I,L:I.I~ ir~
decrccs. Dynamic decrees are specific worded formulas for the sub- ~ r ~ v o l c the i ~ ~ energies
g of G o d , they are nor merely ;iclclin!: I ~ I I W I - I
limating and perfecting of personal and planetary conditions. I n the It\. l l ~ number
r of people in the group on a onc-plus-ol~c.I~.I..IV..11111
standard exposition of the subject. The .'icience of the Spoken Word, I I I V V arc cntcring into a vcry old covenant of thc srlu.irc- wl11111
penned by M a r k L. and E1iz;theth Clnrt ~ r o ~ l l c ;w. e read: *.llll.lrcsthe release of power to accomplish the spoken \2.!otiI Iry
111~.I lrtmbcr o f individuals who are decreeing and by rllr IIIIIIII)I.I
Various yogic systems of mc.dit:ition offer m cthods Wrhereby the 1 1 1 I ~nesI that cbath decree is given.
mind of man can bc stillcd ;ind ;I ,qrr:~tcr 3Ittunemer i t with the Vv'c hcartily recommend individual decrees t o acconil>ii~;l~
Divine be achieved. Sotnr of' III(QW mrthods 1nccome ...
haphazard I I I I I O ~ blessings
~ in the lives of those who will disciplinc thclrl-
when applied by Wrsttrn rn;in. I ~ I Itllcy . c l , ) rccluirc an advanced 5c.lvi.s in this ritual of invoking light to a darkrned world. Kur
mental and spiritual disciplinc o r 1 t l ~ r13;1r'1 of 111cone employing ,:l.c)iip decreeing, when accompanied by an intense visualization
them. Decrees, on the other h;tntl, ; u r rc.l:rrivc.ly simple to master r ~ f ' the good desired, is mort eificacious on a world scale th;tn
once the basic principles are i i n d r r s t ~ ~ r ~; ~t ln: t lthey are far more i~~cfividual decreeing and will result in a spccdy responsc to those
efficacious. c.lrgaged in it, not only t o themselves but also on bchalf of all
It must be understood that decrccs !:ivc.ri without feeling and Inankind . . .
without thought will not produce the l'1111 I>rrirction which they Rhythm is also important in decrees. Proprr rhythm crcates a
are intended to bring about; for man nrusr havc in his con- most penetrating projection of the spirit~l~il vibrations that will
sciousness the correct patterns of thought ; i r l t l feeling which act as magnetize all over the plrinct t h r clualitics of God that arc bcing
rcceptacles for thc energies he invokes from I he Godhead. invoked through the dccrccs. V1r ~~iorncnr~irn of these waves that
Decrees which are sct forth according to the science of thc form undulating circles over thc pl,~~lctnr.y body creates an intcn-
spoken W o r d begin with a preamble. Thcsr preambles direct the sification of light whercvtsr drvotccs cortir together t o participatr
. ..~ k endeavor.'13t
e
attention and the energies of thc decrecr to his o w n I AM
Presence (the inner G o d Self) and to his Holy Christ Self (the
Christ-identity), as well as t o those cosmic beings w h o havc madc 'Ibese dynamic group-dccrcc stssic,ns of the Summit L i p h ~ l ~ o ~ ~ h 3 ~ .
mighty progress in God's kingdom. ....- L, said t o represent the very first genuine re-emergcncc, ~ I I C I I , 01
c,tIl

These preambles are invocative of the highest G o o d - that is tual science and practice which was once basic :~nlrl r l t : I I I I *
to say, they invoke the goodness of G o d by an appeal, made in : priesthoods. Only by looking vcry, very far hi1c.k i l l I 1 1 1 1 ~1 1 0
thc name of G o d and his Christ, to the hierarchies of heaven to W C cncounter records of anything similar. Such a pt:rt,r ir.1. 1.. L I r [ ~ ~ri.tl
t

anchor their energies and their love in order to amplify to levels t Copyright <C'11)83 byCHllRCHUNNERSALANDTRlI~hlP1-lAN-I;
1x1 l \ &\#1\I \ I ~ I , : , ~ I V I I I ,
of almost limitles comprehension the action of the decree as it is Montana 59047. All RighrsReservcd. Rcprintcd h Pcrrnl<tr,<~~ 1 I ~ I I I Ol ; , , \. :P v., I/ ( i f ,!;.c tr

IYbrdby Mark L. and Elizabeth Clare Prophrt, pp. 2 5 . 0 , -IO-!, I'rH ,I


280 T H E SECRET POWER OF MUSIC CODA 281
taking place in the royal standard of Ur, the city of Abraham, for them harpers, who, playing on the harp, chant sacred hymns t o
the purpose of driving a wave of glooni and pestilence away from Apollo in the temple, setting forth his glorious acts'. Diodorus'
the city. Priest-King Gudea and his musicians are accomplishing this account may refer t o the same chanters as a Welsh account brought
by the power of music and vocalizations, given together. Corinne t o light recently b y John Michell, the scholar and author. In his
Heline commented on the depiction : classic work, C i q of Revelation,12' John Michcll mcntions one of the
Welsh Triads, verses of great age which incorporate oral traditions
Esotericists understood that it w ~ by
s the magic of music that a from bardic historians of prehistoric times. From this account it
cloud of evil and error which envelopcc1 the city was being trans- would seem thdt the power of the W o r d was not only once used in
muted, and the city's vibratory rhythm\ correspondingly raised. Britain, but also, was evidently applied with a great deal of
This important function of music will \orncday be rediscovered sophistication.
and used.' The Triad states that once, long ago, the .British Isles possessed
three perpetual choirs where saints maintained a ceaseless chant,
O f course, different individuals react in I wo v u y different ways t o twenty four hours a day. T h e three choirs of pure and illumined
the idea of men and women acting :IS LOII,II rr,insformers for sacrcd c-;nts were located at Glastonbury, Stonehenge and Llan Illtud
J a l u

energy to enter into the earth from hi!:Iic~ t l i ~ ~ ~ c n s i oofn sbeing. T h e Vavvr (near Llantwit Major in Glamorgan). (This was, we must
contemporary materialist vicwpoin~ w(.~.I I I ( . 1111iversein terms of ember, thousands of years before the first Christian community
matter - as atoms, planets ancl st;u-~l'orri~c~l I ) y cx)incidence - and in estaldished at Glastonbury.) A t each of the three locations 2,400
which the phenomcnon o f lilt. t of nature, being saints maintained the tag-chant, a hundred for each of the twenty
almost completely irrc.1C \ J ; l l I l 1 1 1 l ' ~ h i n ~Yet
s . t o the four hours. T h e chanted verbal formulas of spiritual power are said
spiritual idealist,. lifc .- , 1 1 1 1 1 l 0 ,111 - is what the t o have varied with the hours, seasons, years and other cycles. John
universe is a l l ohor,/. 11.11. vrry ~ I O ~ I I I , 1 1 1 t l l. ) l l r \., 0 4 ( ' of the material Michell states :
Creation of atoms , 1 1 1 c l L V O I I C I ~ ~W , I ' , 1 0 1 , 1 1 1 1 I I I ( . . I jil.ttform on which
life could exi.;t ;111dc i o l v c . . ' l ' l ~ c t~wr o tlivr~,sc.vic.wpoints are never T h e song that the elders sang at the perpetual choir was an
more divcrpnr t l i ; ~~ ~I [l~cil.
I~ rc;~c~ions 10 r l ~ vi t l c * , ~ol-mystical chants astrological chant, pitched t o the music of the spheres, celebrating
by which LII(. , I I I C ~ C I I L SI I C ~ ~ C . V C .tCh~r r v i l ~t r I I I I C world could be the order of thc hcavcns and guiding the ritual order of life on
dispellecl. '7'0 the. ma~crialist,thr idea is c l u i l c - il*l,,~~ional. Yet t o the earth. The templc wab thc central power station of the whole
mysticnl o ~ ~ t l o onothing
k could bc more scn5il)lt 111;cnthat the most country, transmitting throughout the nation the current of the
highly c-volvc.d phcnomcnon in the physic:cl 11nivrl.sc.- man - should divine word, gcneratc~l through the ceaseless activity of its
bc ~ b l cI O ~1c.tas an invokcr and transrnittrr o f tlic highcst of all astrologers, priests and officials. l '
forms of force. For this force or spiritual cnc*r;:y, while as yet being
unknown t c ) sc.icncc. is believed by the mystic 1 1 ) he the controlling The similarities between this , ~ n t lthc huge Chinese orchestras arc
and g u i d i n ~forcc behind all the knownphysic;~lI,)rces. obv ious. However, the sacrctl gc.~icr.;ctionof power b y the saints o f
From tllc. mystical point of view, Priest-King Gudea and the anclient Britain was of a r i i ~ l t ~grcater
l ~ significance, for alrnl-151
musicians o f liis city were simply utilizing a known and tested mcans always it is the enunciated Wol.LI, tllc sounds spoken by Man :I%I I I ~
of dispelling p l ; ~ g t ~;ind
c other evils. They would only have been incarnate Christ, which is of' ;I grcater efficacy than the s n ~ ~ n ~ l ' . 111

guilty of irration;tlity ;tnd foolishness had they.failed t o d o so. inanimate instruments.


Plotting the three sites on 3 map, John Micheil found 1 1 1 ~
THE SCIENCE OF THE WORD IN ANCIENT BRITAIN spaced equally apart. From Llantwit t o G l a s t o n b t ~ r ~ . I I ) * ~
itb

A hint that the sclencc of sound may have been used in ancient miles, and Glastonbury t o Stonehenge is the silrnr ~ l i l ~ l . ~ f ~ l

Britaln is provided by the historian Diodorus of the first century The three sites are not located on a straight linr. I t r r t ~ r , i , Ir , 1 , 1 1 1 #11,

B C . H c wrote of 'an Island in the ocean over against Gaul' wherein the arc of a circle that can be drawn throuf:h I 111.111,111 ( I I I I I~I I I I I I L I .
was found a city consecrated t o Apollo. 'whose citizens arc most of this arc eastwards from Stonehenge t o ;I 13111111 . h 1 1 1 1 I 1 1 1 I (!1 ' 1 1 1 1 1 1 4
282 THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC CODA 283
from Stonehenge, Michell found himself pinpointing a further site at have yet their secrets t o reveal. WCh:lvr John Miclicll t o thank for
Goring-on-Thames. Upon investigating, it turned out that there the discovery that there exist certain clcar associ;ttions hetwccn the
8 I;
once existed at Goring a temple ncar a river crossing of several pre- account in the Welsh Triad and the dceply mystical tcxt of Rcvcla-
l l''
1 ~ historic tracks. Were the circle to bc complctcd. ten such sites in all tion revealed to St John on the Isle of Patmos. 'l'lrc :~nglcformcd
would face each other around its circurnfrrcnce; and the centre of between the lines linking Llantwit with G l a s t o n h ~ r:tnA
~ C;I:isr on-

~
the circle is just south of a prehistoric city o n Midsummer Hill in the l ~ r r (,(cxrs
bury with Stonehenge is about 144O, a sacred n ~ ~ t t ~wliicl~
Malvern Hills.12 ' . .
in Revelation both in the measurements of thc Nrw Jr~.lr\:~lrtn : r ~ l t li l l
An interesting adjunct to Michell's disco verics is t:he subsequent the archetypal number of saints - 'an l~undrril iotr y : ~ n l l l o l l s
l 1
I
history of the middle site named by thc 1~'rinc 1 as one a~fthe locations thousand, having his Father's name written in ~ l i r . i r , lfrr.(.l~r.:ctl\'
of the three perpetual choirs. For rhis is Glastonlm y , strongly (purified third-eye chakras?). The total numbrr of I{ril i5l1 \ . I ~ I I I5 i t r
l
reputed to have been the very first site in n .. ' to which the
nrltaln
l the three sacred choirs was 2,400 X 3 = 7,200: cxncr Iy o r i t * 11:11f# I T
I Christian religion was brought. Tllc Clrristi;ln firit11 is said to have 14,400 (or one twentieth of the Biblical 144,001)). 'l'hi.. r~t~rnl)rr-
I been anchored at Glastonbury :I nlrrC I'rw yc;trs itftcr the crucifixion surely did not occur by chance. Further, Michell intlicittrs III;II 111r

1 1
l and ascension of Christ. What i q in : ~ n yi.:rsr ccr1;tin is that Glaston-
bury became the first major ccnt1.r. ,,l ~ l i IrI ( . W rrligion in these Isles,
and held a prominent position ; I S : I U I~ol:~.;tic., rrligious and mystical
complete circle formed by the completion of the arc of thr t 11rr.1.\ I I I-.
has a radius of 504 furlongs and a circumference of 3. l hX I ' I I ~ ~ ( I I \ ! : ~ .
These numbers are an essential ingredient of the proportions 111 tlir
centre for over a t h o ~ r s ; ~ yr.:llb..n ~ l ' I ' l r ; i t ~ l . ~ ~ t c , s rwas l ~ uchosen
r~ for archetypal New Jerusalem of Revelation. They are also rn;tniI ccr rt l
this role cannot havr Ix=(.II . I ( t - i t l r 1 1 1 . 1 l . A t r . ~ t lion i ~ of keeping the in the traditional systems of metrology themselves, sincc tlir r:t~litr\
energy flowing from t ll:ir r . \ r . ~ l ~ l r ~ ~ l ~. c -r ~t lt l j>t~ril~ril point - energy as of the earth combined with the radius of the moon gives ;I IOI.II
I a spiritual 'powcr sclpl~l y' 11 ,I. I l ~ r -~ ; l l , i t. c i r ~ r l i c . ~ i.IIICI
~ ;~dvancementof figure of 5,040 miles; and a circle of this radius would 1i:rvr ;I

~~
the nation - was st.l.t~r~r~,:l~ I I ( , I I ~ t ' , r witli I 11,. o l r s t m 1)1' ~ the Christian perimeter of 3 1,680 miles.
era. Indeed, tlrr. rlic )lik+. ( ; l , ~ ~ t c ) n lAl1l1c.v ~ t ~ r ~.~tllrr-rc~d during the The number 144 also occurs in the Old Testament's account of
'
Abbey's hcytl;~v1 0.I rc!:irirc.lr 1 1 1 Ilr:tycr ; ~ r i i l(.II:IIII 111orc intense than Solomon's consecration of the Temple into which the Ark o f tlir
'
any of wliic-h 1 11. 1 i l l thr Christi;~nworltl: ;~l~ror~nting to at Covenant was placed. There is no more awesome a record

~
:m 1e:tst scvrr:~l111) I I I , \ rvcry day. than this of the power of specific tones to invoke sacred energy from
I I Rut f'in;lIly . I I I P. It is a timeless esotc.ric I;IW of the flow heaven for the blessing and healing of the land.
'1 '~
of rncrgy tI1:1t \ p i r . ~ ~ l1i 1i ~p~talways tends to atrr:lc.t 111t.opposition of Previously, King Solomon's f;~lhcr,David, in making prepara-
iI dnrknr!~.' 1 ' 1 1 ~ (.if'<-ctivcservice of individuals ancl nrovcments which tions for the Temple, had divided his musicians according to thrir
l conr;iin li!;ht i\ :I tIirc.:.it to the very existencc of rl;r~icl;~ry evil; thus service into 2 4 categories consisting of twclve in each category,
,l
I I evil in ;III i t < ; IOI-I~IS sc.cks to perpetuate itself by t l ~ rc-xtinguishing of giving a total of 288.lZ6 Hcrr, thc 2 4 categories represent the d ~ l i l
II thc liKht. ( ) ~ ~ t \ i i01'l r thc present, civilized socict y provided by the yin-yang polarities of the twclvc Toncs of the zodiac, and the tnt:rl
West, in o r l ~ c .~~ ~ ; ~of' r tthe
s globe and at other timcs in history, the number is therefore 1 4 4 2~.
, opposition of rvil 11:~sIxcn able not merely to tvkc the forms of For the consecration of thc l'emple itself, King Snloliillzr
gossip and sl;~n~lrl.. 1,111 :~lsoof physical violcncc. And in this way assemblcd together a11 of the I,rvitical priesthood, the elclrrc, 1111.
l there eventually c;inw 1 1 1 ~ .order by a military and totalitarian regime heads of the tribes, and all the nicn of Israel. The accnilrll, i l l .'
for the ransacking, ili.;rolution and tearing down of Great Britain's Chroniclcs, conveys very t;tngibly the great hush anil n.r.cio.r. 1 1 1

Glastonbury Abbcy . cxpcctation which envelops the gathering as the Ark is I ~ r r ~ l ~ 1~1 1l l ~ r
And so the light t11:tr ill~tmineda nation went out. The saints
1 !
were scattered, and werc no longer able to congregate to offer them-
Then comes that penultimately powerful moment whrrl 11ir 1 1 . 1 1 1 1 4 1 1
l
priest-musicians invoke the fiery Presence of the Onr :
selves as scientific, self-sacrificing transformers of the Word unto a
nation and a people. And it came t o pass, when the priests wcrr t c l111r.1 r l l r I 11 I 111 114 #l
W e have now only the ruins to look back upon. But even these place: (for all the priests that were prc\c.tlr w1.11.-. 1 1 1 1 t 1 1 1 1 11 11111
CODA 281
THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC
II i s , then the numerous references t o thc power of thc spoken W o r d
c11ct not then wait by course: also the Levites which were the
t ,lrlnot be mere coincidence. T h c scrvants :tncl s;tirlrs o f G o d arc
singers, all of thcm of Asaph, of Heman, of Jeduthun, with their
l ,l(.scribed repeatedly in Revelation 3s conilxitin~ cI;~rkncss with
sons and their brethren, being arrayed in white linen, having
, , o ~ ~ in n da final conflagration of good and evil Ix*li)rc~ l l c *I)ir.tl~of a
cymbals and psalteries and harps, stood at the east end of the
!:I Jden age of peace and enlightenment :
altar, and with them an hundred and twenty priests sounding

' l; with trumpets;) it came even t o pass, as the trumpeters and


For their power is in their ...
And if:uiy 111,111 will l ~ u r t

,
singers were as one, to make one sound to be heard in praising
thcm, fire proceedeth out of their mouth."" . . . / \ ~ ~ t111c.y l
l ; ,, and thanking the Lord; and when they lifted up their voice with
the trumpets the cymbals and instruments of musick, and praised
ovcrcame him [Satan] by the blood of the Lamb. It.11t-I 4 )l 1 11(.
Christ] and by the word of their t e ~ t i m o n y . ' ~ "
the Lord, saying, For he is good; for his mercy endureth forever:

I l that then the house was fi.Ued with a cloud, even the house of the
Lord; so that the priests could not stand t o minister by reason of
the cloud: for the glory of the Lord had filled the house of G o d . . . .
Now, when Solomon had made an cnd of praying, the fire
I ; i ~ l a l lthere
Word :
I O I I 01
~ , is described the final coming of the incar11.11 I II~.

came down from heaven, and consumed thc burnt offering and
... and his name is called T h e W o r d of G o d . And thc ; ~ r l ~ ~ i r * \
which were in heaven followed him ... And out of hi.; I ~ I O I I I I I
the sacrifices; and the glory o f thc 1,ord fillcd thc house. And the
l
p e t h a sharp sword, that with it he should srnite [all cvil i l l ) I I I ~ .
preists could not enter into tllc Iiousc o f the Lord, because the
nations.13'
glory of the Lord had fillcd 1111. I,ol-cl's house. ...
And the Lord : I ~ ~ N * : W 10CSololnou
~I by night, and said unto
liven as the Chinese believed each new age to begin with .L r1r.w
m 1 him, I have hc;~l.tl 111 y 111.;1ycl-,and have chosen this place t o
'I'one which sounds the age's key-note, so too does Revelation seen1
I rnysclf for ( i r l IIOII..(- 01 : 7 . ~ ( , ~ . iIff , cI ~shut. up heaven that there be
1 0 imply that a new inundation of the earth with the W o r d will
no rain, o r I I I I I ) I I I I I I . I I I L ~ tllc locusts to devour the land, or if I
t orne forth, which will be stepped-down fully into the earth by thc
l

send prstilt,r~r1 , a ~ ~ ~I I I~Y people; o ~ ~ j if: my people which are called


. ~ ~ . c ~ h e t ~1p4a4l , 0 0 0 saints, for the full manifestation of thr
hv my n;lnlc,. ~ ; I I ; I I I I~urnblcthemselves, and pray, and seek m y
Acluarian age:
f;~cc.,, I I I ~ I 1 1 1 1 . 1 1 1 1 0 1 1 1 tllcir wicked ways; then will I hear from
I~c;~vc.~l. .111tl will forgive their sin, and will heal their land. N o w
And I heard a voice from 11c;tvcn. as thc voicc of many waters.
111inc~ , ~ ( - V ~ I I , I II)c I open, and mine ears attent unto the prayer that
i:. 111,1tlt. I I I 111i:; JII;LCC. For now I have chosen ; ~ n dsanctified this ;uld as the voice of a grcat 11-lundrr;itnd I heard the voice of
!!, IIOII*,(., t 1 1 . 1 1 l i l y 1l;lme may be there for ever; 2nd mine eyes and 1l;~rpersharping with their h;~rps:
'l 1ni11t.I I ~ . . I I Ia.11.1I11)c thrre
And they sung as it wcrc ; I 11c-whang ..
. and no man could
I; ' . I

T h e Tcnilrl~.1 1 1 \t~lonlon and its use, then, provides the universal,


I(.;~rnthat song but the ht~ntlrc.tl ;Incl forty and four thousand.
\r\lich were redeemed from I I I ~c~: ~ r t h ... , These were redecmr~l
110111 among men, being thc first-fruits unto G o d and t o 1111.
archetyp:il r l l , l l r . l r : 1 0 1 ,111 peoples and all ages Similar temples, where
l ..1111\.).
'the Lc)rd'\ rvvs .111cl His heart were there perpetually' were
/ \ I I L ~ in their mouth was lo1111dn o guile: for they arc wi111tr111
established in .cnt lc.111I\rit,tin, and the same could be re-established
l.l,lll . . , l 3 2
today. In fact, 1111.1.r.. I I ( . .I number of hints in the Bible that the
science of the Worcl I I I , I ~ i~ldecdprovide the essential kcy for the
bringing in of a new goltl(.l~age.
I I I I W 'y.~I~~l.;~rccl
with thc dccpcs~o f meanings is that lint*: ' A ~ \ t l\lrl.r;
'.1111!: ,I< I/ ;I new song' (my italics)! The 'new \OII!:' I-. 1 1 1 4 (4
111
W e can take, for cx;trnplc, thc book of Revelation. Revelation is
Il..rh (11 councl it1 both Ncw Agc music and in c n l ~ ~ ~ i . i . ~I rl t~. yi Ill\ ,I I I \ ~
coming increasingly to be rccognizrd as being, in part, an allegorical
111vt11.;11ions. O n e of thc most important thinss ; I I ~ O I I I 1 1 1 1 % 111 M ~II!!
key to the events that arc to accompany the transition of the earth
W l i h tllc Ncw Age ay n fullv ~ n , ~ ~ ~ l I r !:rbltlr.~~
I - , it, ~.c.l;\tionsl~i~ . , . ~ t . t lr.l.1
from Pisces t o Aquarius. If this is a correct assessment, and I believe
THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC
111 t ivilixation. O f the new song and the N e w Age w e must remind from all o r c r thc world, ;IIT 11ow hcIc1 .it rhc four cardinal
llll,~ls;~nds
o111.sc1veswhich, according t o the tenets of the ancient mystery of the year, as well as :L(oth(.r tin;::\. I I I 1l1c [Ul~itedStates
schools, will be theparent, and which the oflqring. For the power of (wl1c.1.~the largest :ind central g ; ~ t h c r i ~; iI ~~ C\I1c.Ic1) ,~ncl, ~ I s oin other
music and the enunciated W o r d rules everything, Vibration being ~~.llions. Let us therefore clc)bc wit11 1 l l c 8 wol,cl\ 0 1 ' }!I Morya
the creative force of the universe. Therefore the N e w Age cannot lllllls~lf:~
come first, somehow arising spontaneously, and the new song
appearing only as a result of it. Rather, it is always the new uses of Of such import has bcen the coming-to!:c.~11,-I 1 1 1 ' t l r + \ ~ o l : . r ~of ~ , light
sound which lead the way into the new era. T h e N e w Age can only clown through the ages that whcn r h c % I I I I I I I I ~ I I , I ~ ; I ~ I I I owits IIs~~
ever come forth as a resalt and oflspring of N e w Age music and the founded, I set the pattern of thc clu;~rrr*r.lv c~)l~Ir.jc.ncr.., 101 111c
intense, devoted practice of the science of the spoken W o r d . anchoring of the cycles of :hc y r ~ r - .I<? (11111111!: II~!!I.I~I~.I. 10111.
times a year to give and recrive, ch181;1\( ) I I 114.. l b . < c.llclrxl I I I . I \ ~ I . I . ' ~
THE HALLOWED CIRCLE OF THE AUM render an incomparable service. t o the ( ; I , ~ ; I I \%'l111 I * I ~ 1 1I1 Ilr~rliootl.
W e approach now the conclusion of our study of the secret power If you behoid our quartc.r!y ronlr.l.r.nc r = I T O I I I I l ~ rI I I I I ~ . I
of music and sound. And yet, bcfore closing, one cannot help but planes, you would obszrvc how t h r chvl;i\ I ) ~ ~ i l It ll ~ IrI I I I c.1 ~r.ltli l l
wonder: what would be the cffcct - personal and planetary - were the plane by their dcvr~[ionh;111cl l ) ? r l ~ c .rrrlc.llr~~.h. ~~ .III~I
the sacred science of the W o r d , as practised in the three choirs of the how hierarchy l o w r r ~a grid t11,it i \ the 111.111<1.1l.i t i l l I I I . I I I l , ( ... 111
saints of ancient Britain, to be resumed torhy? W h a t magnificent the ethcric plane over thc phlrsic;il pl;~cr.w11c.r-rI 11,. !.I..-.I.. I l i ' l l l t

resurrecting energies might not this I~cstowupon the British Isles, The mandala is like a snowflake - 11nic111r. I I I ir., C!I..,II:II. 11r4\,c.l

and upon every nation upon earth! I n ;III iigc whcn s o many poten- seen before, never to appear ag;~in ... I ; , . l t l l I ~ ~ I I It l 1I. 1I1 . I , ,
tial catastrophes threaten with an inln~inc.nt lrrcscnce - terrestrial scheduled and each dictation th;ir is ,qivc-n Iill.. I t r I 1 1 ~ 1 11 I * 111 1 1 1 I 11,.
upheaval, world war, totalitarianism and st;~rv;~tion, to name but mandala, and the application o f t h r srl~tic.l~;s I I I I ~II..III( ,. 1 \ 1 1 - 1 1 I I O I I
four - it may be of great significance that thc ;inc,icnts believed the of thc sacred fire that can bc. rclc;i\rd i o r l r v I , l , ~ r ~ nI
powcr of the W o r d to be capable of avcrting ;ill such occurrences. Our conferensrs are hcld 1;)r I I I C , 1111.11111!: 1 1 1 1 1 1 1 Y I , 1 1 1111. 1 l1 l

And even if any of these eventualities conlr t o pass - a global y - r i i I I I I I I I I ..I


11c.1 1 1 r. .111(1

economic collapse of large proportions ;~ppe:iring particularly alltumn equinox. The pllvsic . I I I I I . ~ T I11, , ~1 1 1~1 . ~ 1 1 8 1
111 1 1 1 I I I ~c o 1 1 -
likely for this decade as I write in early 1983 - what might not a ference and the l i g h ~rc.l<..c\r.tlI I ' I ~ I I I ~ltr.I I I I . I . 1I1I1 1I . 01 111~. , i t L , ~ ~ ~ ~

rebirth of what John Michell called 'central powrr station(s) of the the of the srh;lcc,rl 1,. 1 1 1 1 . 1 1 r . \ l ~ . ~ ~I ) y~ ~.I\c('II~!~'~.I l ~ . ~ l ;IIIII
whole country, aansmitting throughout the n;ition the current of the lln~~scendedbeings si'rvill!: 1 1 l ! : v r l l r I . I I I l,,. r ~,~,fc.rc.nc.c.\ hrr thc
divine word' bc able to accomplish for the swift resurrection and fulfillncnt o f a cosmic I'LIII 1 5 , F,, 1 1 8 ' 1 1 1 1 1 . I * , I! I,. 111 Ilr.;~vcll.
t

stabilization of a new era of peace, prosperity ;ind I>rotherhood? Whenever pc)ssiblc, v011 . . I ~ ~ I I I I I *I . ~ . I , I , 1 1 1 , o l ~ l ~ o r ~ u ntc;i t attcnd v
O n e of the final conclusions of our study must be that the secret such a conference. FVh,rr ',, ,111 1 1 I . , I I I , , l 1 1 I I I I C ! I L I ~ I ~possible
C thc
power of music and sound should not be sccrct at all. As of old, impossible through thc ;tlc-l~r.t~~\. 1 1 1 1 1 1 ~ 1 1 11 1 i o 1 1 t o y(li1r ow1.1 G o ~ l

when the correct, studied use of music and verbal formulas created Rcing. Not onl; a r c r I ~ . - . t , I I , I I I I I I * I I L ~ . ~ the most impcrt,~nt
and sustained grcat golden age cultures, s o too can and should this rxperiencc of a lifetime 111 1t.1 ! I T \ I , l I Ilc c.xp;\nsion of consciousnc*\\
power be used once more. That which was, and then was not, must :tnd the transmut;irion ( , I r ~ l ~ r c i l ts~~t,stance
l in pour worlcl. I N I I
be again. your willingness to wrvc . I \ ,I co-ordinate on c.:~rtli I;,[ 1111.
I n fact, the return of the science o f the W o r d t o the carth seems hierarchies of light will earn !or. you a momentum of ~ o o r ~l , I l11.1 I

already t o have begun. W e have noted previously the importance that you can ill afford t o bc wirhout.
with which the ancients regarded the t w o solstices and thc t w o G o d nceJs man and man needs G o d . Thic i\ tllc I . I W 1 1 1 1 1 1 r .
equinoxes of the ycar. And it is at these times that El Morya has hallowed circle of t h r AUM. And when y o u I l r l t l ~ I I I I I ' ~ I . I I
called for conferences and gigantic decree sessions to take place in
our age. These conferences and group-decree sessions, attendcd by iCopvnghr 9 1983 byCHURCH UNnrERSAL AND TRIUMPHANT, IN( . l l\ ;1.I I V I I llnn,1I )I I .
hlonrana 59047. All Rights Rcscrved. Reprinted by Permission. Frorn 17~1r I w f ,~i d t i + ,1!1fh
by El Moq-a. pp. 77-8; 1976 ed.
?MU THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC
s1;tnding in that circle, ever-widening, that is formed for the final
relcase of the Lord of the World to the devotees at the conclu-
sion of a conference, you will know that all 1 have told you is
indeed true; and by the thread of contact with hierarchy which
you have established, your life will never be the same. l*

Further Reading
(And Listening !)
'This list is designed not simply to go over material which 1111. 131-r-t V
ding pages have already covered, but t o expand into furtllcr I r.1.11t.11
areas of music and esotericism.
On Beethoven
Why 'On Beethoven'? Though the subject of Beethoven - lllc I I ~ . I I I ,
[he music and the mission t o which he set himself - has not hcrn ;I
1)rominent part of this book, a study of Beethoven is aau;tlly ;l11
ltrchetypal musical experience. For Beethoven himself was :In
;irchetypal spiritual artist. In studying the music and Iifc ot'
I3cethoven we actually attune ourselves to much broader issues - tllc
cwential spiritual philosophy behind all good music; the necessity
Ii)r altruistic motive; the struggle between purity and error in thr
Iwrsonality of the artist himself; how music can be used to
sl>iritualizethe race, and what kind of music does this. Beethovcn
was quite aware of the power of music, and in his life story and
works w e see how supremely he put this knowledge into practice.
Beethoven, His Sjiritual Derelopnren~by J . W . N. Sullivan (firsr
l ) t ~ l ~1927,
. now in edition, by George Allen & Unwin,
I .o~ldon).The most author;~titivchook on the subject of its title.
I I i!:llly readable and quite short ( 1 2 7 pages), yet full of penetratin,t:
;ll..i!:ll~ into the spiritual aspccts o f I<cc.thovenand music in gencr;~l.
Iirv*/hoc~en and the Voice o/' Got/ by Wilfrid Mellers (Fahrsr S,
I .ondon, 1983). his I,ook is a companion volunlc. 1 11

Il&r(-h and the Dnwre o/'God, by which we can br crrt.1111 I t t

I I r ~l t t . ~ l i ly . Sure to become a key tcxt for a deeper u n d c w t ; ~ ~ t c l ~ l ~ ~ : 111

rl~c.\l>il~i~.~l;tl/mmotional mcanings behind the notes of ! l c ~ r ~ ~ l t l l \ ' l ~ ~ t ' ~ ~


~ I I . Iworks. ~ I I Mcllers analyses the music in great r l r . t ; ~ i l , I I I I L I ~\~. ( - l ,
t t o ~ r .t ~ ~ - n o t rn:tking
c, this title more suitable for hc wlict I 1..1t1*. 11111..11

I I I , I ~ Itor 111c1;1y111;1n.
II(t~//)oa~n \ - l y Marion M . Scott (1. M . DCIII t% \ ~ I I I - , , I . I ~ I I ~ I I I I I ,
.ltN~ THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC FURTHER READING 291

1') ;,l), Quite possibly thc best onc-colunic work ;iv.~il;tblco n 11, 11ie science of the spoken W o r d . Onc* of t-hc niorl remarkable
bc.c,~llovcnas man and mu\ici;in. AI intelligent introdtlction to thc I ,I roks I have ever read.
.;ubjcct, but without being over-scholarly. Marion Scott sprinkles Prayer and Meditation by Jesus and Kuthrlmi, I ')OX. l'lic latest
hcr pages with a good deal morc h c x t than is oftcn t o bc found in r.~lilion also includes a sizcable section on the givi111:0 1 dynamic
st~ldiesof composers. tl~.c.rees.A handbook, therefore. on the threr n i ; ~ j o .~I ... ~ ) ~ X : I So f the
Beethoven's Nine .Symphoities Covrelaled 2ci1h /he Nine .Sjiri/ztu! pr,itice of the spiritual life: prayer, meditation and ~ ~ I I , I I I clc~crrcs.
I I ~
~\/Iy.iterie.vby Corinnc Heline (J. F. Rowny Pt,css. Santa Barbara, \Written by Masters of the Great W h i t e R r o t h e r h o o ~ ~ .
1971). New Age writer ~ o i i n n eHelinc examines the esoteric The Science of the .Spoke:en Word, M a r k and E l i x , ~ l ~ cI-'~~lo~~ ) l ~ c t ,
aspects of each of the Bcethovcn symphonies. 1083. The standard work on the scicnce cif invoc:iticr~~ . I I I I ~ 111rII<,C

O n Rock M ~ s i c r '1- dynamic decrees. Includes much instruction on t l ~ (VII * 11t.1 I I . , I I ~ -


R o d andRok: The Impact ofRock MusiG 012 S e l f a n d S ~ c i e by
t ~ David \lrluring flame, and essential key for the purificxtio~~ . . ~ ~ I ,111cl
111 l
Tame. Available from Veritas Publishing Co., P.O. Box 20, Bullsbrook 6084, \ I )cicty.
Western Australia. The Science of Rhythm far the M a s t e ~of the 5ncr(,'/ /iwr~:r:ic,\o/
The Mannit Minstrels. A Handbooh on Commzinirr.Yubversion ofhftlsic I .if;.; Uses and M isuses of the W o r d in the M zlsic of Ei/.v/ li~rl/M'CSI
by David A. Noebel ( 3 6 4 p p , American Christian College Press, Tulsa, Illizabeth Clare Prophet, 1 9 7 8 . Boxed set of t w o c ; t ~ s t ~ t l c( \7
Oklahoma, 1974). Thirty-nine chapters and six appendices include: I~ours).Includes musical examples.
'Communist Use of Hypnotism'; 'Disrtihurion of Communist Records in The Call of Camelot. The orchestrated tone poem composctl Iy
the United States'; 'Rock, Drugs nnd rhc Rr;~rlcs';'Rock and Revolution'; Norman Thomas Miller is distributed in cassette form by the
'Communist Subversion oTFolk Mu5ic-';"I'hr .Y/r/!; ON[! - Broadszde Axis'; Summit Lighthouse. Besides the title-piece mentioned in the. Coda
'Spiritual Implications', ; r l i t l '( ;11i1Ir1 1 ) A( I ion'. hl;y I~(.difficultto get hold 1)1'this book there is also an hour of further music. Performed by
of in Europe, rhouj:h, i~ i r i r to~ lie ~ publishers, or to I :xcelsior.
Summit X~utliMinis~ric.' ~ : ~ I I I I~ion
: I ofwhich Noebel is
By Cyril Scott
the director), P,( 1. Itos 21 \, (;( ) X O H ~ O , USA.
Music, Its .Secret Inf7ue?zn Throughout the Ages. First p p e r b a c k
(,Jition by the Aquarian Press, Wellingborough. 1 9 7 6 . T h c Initiatc
@ T i ~ fI ) ~ I Y;\l /,\I( /)/I*(/In 13017 l d ; ~ r s o(~lhl ) l > l ..lr.;on hlinistrieq. lxnks are published in Great Britain by Routlcdgc Rr Kcgan Paul:
Box L(>-IIX, I)c,n\jc.r. (:olor;rtlo. 1973). NOI I;II. I~rliindNocbel's i n the USA by Samuel Weiscr: The Initiate, .sotr,~lmpresrions of a
l,ook .ill r l ~ ~ s ~ l i 1x11 ~ y . I c ~ sdctail. Larson wrilr.\ (ro111 knowledge. (,tljat So141;The Initiate in /he NP,'~World; The lnitiafe in [he D a r k
I I ~ I 111);
\ IW,I.II .I 1.1 )c.k 311it;iriYt hi~nsclf.But ;~g;rili,tlif'Lci11t to obtain cyi/e. as mentioned in the C n d a under the heading 'Cyril Scott,
tlii., .?1t11. (11 r l ~ c . i\rl.~ntic~ o if. interested, try o)111~1c I il~g
the publishcr. ';,hc Father of British Modern M ~ ~ i i c "(The
.' Initiate books arc. stil!
C I ~ ; I ~ I111, , ' II I ,I ~. I ( . : 'Amcrian Aura'; 'British ~ - I ~ . , I I ,'~S' ;o ~ ~ n\'Lravcs
d I~t~l,lished
anonyrnouslv, accrcditrd to 'his pupil'.)
and r l ~ c . l'..v( I l r * ' ; 'l<ody Blows'; 'Dangers of r Iic I );ilicc': 'The View Other Uscfi~lBooks
From r I I h~ l ) ,~ o ~ i l l o n c'Spiritual ': Keynotes'. l ~ r Hidden Face of tMlrrir l ) y I-lerbcrt W h o n e ( G o l l a n n ,
From the Summit Lighthouse Ion, 1974). Also: The .Si,,pl~ri!~ qt'Pla~ingthe Violin. Each a
Summit Ligh~lroilschooks and cassettes are available from: The Summit 01' 'Zen of musical p c * r I ' o ~ . ~ ~ ~Important
. ~ ~ l ~ e ' . reading for the
Lighthouse. Uos A . I.ivingston, MT 59047, USA. ~ ~ , ~ l l ~ - i n ~practisil~g
lined n~\~\ic.ian,
but also absorbing for the
The G r ~ n tM'l)/tr~Ilro~l~erhood irr the Culrrrre. Hirror3, arid Keii,ion I ; I I ~ c ; ~ J c rHerbert
. MJhonc- Il;ts thc ability to word thc most
of America by E l i ~ . ~ l ) cClare r l ~ Prophet. 1 9 7 6 . This is actuallv a vbolc~.i<01. subjects in such ;L wily its t o make it appear sensible and
book of world-wiclc sig11ific;tncc. An introduction p a t e,~i.ellrt~r.~ to cll~viollsto cvcn thc most sccptic;illy-minded.
the subject of the Grr..l~ White Rrothtrhood and tlicir work. yet Tlrr Golrlet7 1300k of 1,tfi by Azclda. A beautifully poetic and
also much morc than :in i~~rroduction. Contains morc than coulci be ilt.ri'ly r ~ ~ y ~ t i ctrestisc
iil on the seven Toncs and thcir 49 subdivi-
summarized here, i n c i u c t ~ n ~;i chapter containing information \ ~ O I ~ S I. ,Lg~t,ldrecommend it, except that although it was written in
nowhere else available on New Age astrology. Also an introduction 111v I 920s. this 190,OOO-wc-)rd rn;inuscril>r, unlike anything else in
,'v,' THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC
world literature, has never been published! However, booklets of
cxtracts are available from: M R G , Archers' Court, Hastings,
Sussex. England.
Thought-Fms by Annie Besant and C. W. Leadbeater (Theoso-
phical Publishing House, 68 Great Russell Street, London WC1 B
3BU). Several Theosophist clairvoyants have written about the
non-physical structures which music creates on the inner planes. This
book includes a section on these music-forms, and was the first such
study to be written. Besant and Leadbeater say that music has two
effects visible to the clairvoyant: a radiation of spiritual energy
which goes forth in all directions, and a music-form which remains Reference Notes
over the location concerned for some time afterwards, exerting an
Menuhin, Yehudi Theme and Variations Heinemann. 1 (1 7 2
influence on all who happen to be there. 'Each class of music has its
Joshua 6 :1-20
own type of form, and the style of the composer shows as clearly in
Most of the major works written by both Aristotle ant1 I l g
the form which his music builds as a man's character shows in his
Plato include at least several pages on the psychological ;incl
handwriting. Other possibilities of variation arc introduced by the
societary effects of music.
kind of instrument upon which the music is performed, and also by
Portnoy, J d u s Music in the Life of Man Holt, Rhinrharr
the merits of the player.' Thrcc p;lrtic~~l;tr music-forms are described
and Winston, 1 9 6 3
in detail, with colour platcs of c.;~cIi;rllcsc Iwing from the music of
Scott. Cyril Music, Its Secret Influence Throughout the Ages
Mendelssohn, Gounoit ;111cl W;t!:tlc.r.
Aquarian Press, 1 9 J 8
Fantasia. For ; t ~ ~ ~ l w~ lo~coI lI ; I~L ~ I ~ ' I !ii.(.ll i t , Illis 1940 Disney
Blom, Eric (Ed.) Grove's Dictionary of Music and Musictans
production is n IIIIISI ! /\ sl1llc.1.11I ~ I , I I . I . ~ ; I ~I>CIW(ICII
C the visual and
Macmillan London, 1 9 J 4
musical arts. M OSI I 11 I sc.clilcllc,rs (not t l ~ cMussorgsky or
Medhurst, W.H. (tsans.) The Shu King
Stravinsky) arc w l l . ~N~r w .Agc cirlt.m:t was i n t c . ~ l t l ( dto be!
Martens, F.H. 'Music in Chinese Fairy Tale and Legend'
Mll.rir T I I P ~ ~ I.'II INYI,V JA n/lruln~ycompilctl Ily Lionel Stebbing
(New Knowlrd,qc IZooks, PO Box 9 , Horsll;c~l~, Sussex). Music
Music Quarterly V I I I , 4, October 1 9 2 2
ther;tpy Tot, sllc:c,ificillnesses, and for handicapped children and the
New Era Communiry Agni Yoga Society, 1 9 2 6 (transcribed
c:ldcsly. M~~:tit,in child education. Outline of a ncw music therapy.
by Nicholas Roerich)
Rudhyar, Dane The Rebirth of Hindu Music Theosophical
Publishing House, Ady;~r,India, 1 9 2 8
Gulik, R.H. van TAPLore o/'/be Chi~leseLute Tokyo, 1 9 4 0
Wellcsz. Egon (Ed.) Anriotl/ ~/II[/ Oriental Music Vol. 1 of
'The New Oxford Histoy a/ Mtrsic Oxford University Press,
1057
I l (aline, Corinne Mllvil-: 'Tbrg Keynofe of Human Evolr~tioti
41-W Age Press, Santa Moliicn (undated)
It~c~llojaediaBritmltriii~ ( l 5th edition) Encycltrp;~r~~li.~
I \ I i~ ;~nnicaInternational
A,II>I.1 .A. van Chinese Music Shanghai, 18 84
S,~c.lls,Curt The Rzse of Music in the Anlirtrt IVor1,l. I..r,r
, ~ I I CW ~ F 1.M.
. ~ Dent & Sons, 1 9 4 4
S W 6)s cxamplc the books on Rrcthovc~l I i . . r ~ , r l 1 1 1 ~ l ~ r
I ;11rt11cr liracting section of the prcscnt lu )c 'k
THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC REFERENCE NOTES 295

Heline. Corinne The Cosmic Harp New Age Press, Santa 'Mysterious Melody Malady' in Scietzn Di,qrst 89, 3, April
Monica, 1 9 6 9 1981, p. 102
Hindley, Geoffrey (Ed.) The Larousse Encyclopedia ofMusic 'Time 7 February, 1972, p. 45
Hamlyn Publishng Group, 19 7 1 Time 7 August, 1968, p. 47
Ling, Paul Henry Music in Western Civiliyation J.M. Dent Medical World News 1 3 June, 1969, p. 1 3
& Sons, 1 9 4 l Time 12 April, 1968
Quoted in Machlis, J. Introduction to Contemporary Music Curtis, T. Olga 'Music that Kills Plants' Denz!t~rPOJI 21
J.M. Dent & Sons, 1980 June 1970
Routh, Francis; Contemporaly Music, A n Introduction Day, Langston and De La Warr, George Matter in /be
Hodder & Stoughton Educational, 1968 Making Vincent Stuart, 19 6 6
Yates, Peter Twentieth Century Music George Allen & Useful discussions on the subject are in Hilgard, Ernest R.;
Unwin, 1 9 6 8 Atkinson, Richard C. and Atkinson, Rita L. Introductio~10
Griffiths, Paul A Guide to Electronic Music Thames and P.ycbology Harcourt Brace Jovanovich, USA (various
Hudson, 1 97 9 editions), section on 'Genetic Basis of Intelligence'; and in
Also quoted in Small, ref. no. 27 Butcher, H.J. Human Intelligerzce, Its Nature and Assessment
Quoted in Btllletin of the American Cotnpo.rer.r' Alliance June Methuen London, 196 8
1952, and thence in Routh, rrf. no. 22 Bandura, A. and Huston, Aletha C. 'Identification as a
2 7. Small, Christophcr Mu.ric-.h ic/y-Er/r/ri?tion John Calder, Process of Incidental Learning' in Journal of Abnormal
1977 Social Psychology 63, 1961, pp. 31 1-18
I 1 28. Circus Febn~ary1 972, p. 4 l The Viewer and Listener Summer 1982

l 29.
30.
Garr, DOUR'Tht Entll1.s~Sc;~l(.'i l l OMN1 3 , 6, 1981
Fieldcn, Thom:ts /M I I Y Z C rrr~dChrrr~~r./rrI vc )r Nicholson and
Watson (~lnd;~tccl-I932 ?)
Brown, Roger Social Psychology Coilier Macmillan, 196 S
Crosby, David in The Rolling Stone Interviews Arthur
Rarker, 198 1
3 1. Darwin, Cli;~rlcsThe De.rcent of M r r n , iznd ,Telection in American Journal of Psycbia~vy9 9 , p. 3 17
Relation t o .Sex I Samuel 1 6 : 14-23
32. Kcndig, Frank and Levitt, Richxrd G . 'Overture: Sex, Hclinc, Corinne Healing and Regeneration Through Music

l1 3 3.
34.
Mat11 and Music' in Science Digest 90, I , \;111~1;try
Kostclanetz, Richard (Ed.) John Cac4eAllc~iLane 197 1
1982

Mcrrill, Sally 'Composing Computers' iri Science Digest 9 0 ,


l . J;~nu;~ry
1982
New Age Press. Santa Monica
l'ontvik, A. H e i h dcrrcb~Murik Ziirich, 195 S
In Stebbing, Lionel (cr,mpilcs) Music Therapy, A NW
,.4ntholog New Knowlcdgc Hooks, 196 3
l; 35. 'Tc;~cl~ingMusic by Computer' in Mrrsic in Education,
quotccl in Small, ref. no. 27
Kneutgen, Johanncs N
I Iiisseldorf, 197 4
ge der Musiktherapie

'l
36. Skinncr. R.F. Ryond Freedom and D<qziryAlfred A. Knopf, IC;~ilc~, Philip the^ C r r ~I Y I i q c lYIu.~icOxford University
New York, I 9 7 1 I ,rr\s, 197 3
3 7. Podoisk~A4 u.sic For Your H e a l ~ hRernard Ackerman, New I1r!:gic, Andrcw 'Music;~l Adaptations' The Tirrtrt
York Ilr/rritrtional Supplemrtrr I 2 June. 198 1
3 8. Gilman and P:~pcrteMusic and Yonr Emotions E;c-~lll;~rd, Daphne and Gilbcrtson, Moyna Tbr Mlt\rt t o
39. Larson. Bob T ~ Day P Music Died Bob Larson R/linistrics, I l r l p Di.cabled Chi[dren Move available Fror~~1 1 1 ~
Box 26438, Denver, Colorado, 1 9 7 3 I ' l ~ v \ i o t hcr;~py Dcpt, Bray's School, Bray's 111 ).I,!, lit1
/l 40. Ingber, Dina; Brody, Robert and Pearson, Cliff p music I I I ~ I ~ ~ ; ~ I ; I IFnglan
TI, d
'I Therapy: Tune-up For Mind and Body' in Science Digest C;l~c.l'Iicrcl, Inlln; Virdcn, Phil; J u l l i ; ~ ~ i( i~~I ,~, I ~ I ~ - I .111tl II

90, 1 , January 1982 w~\l,:lrl, 7:rcvos Whme M f L ~ i f ?!A .$,l, / l l l l l , ~ ~l,/~ i\'l
A / l ~ ~ f ~ l l
, 1 1 7 7
, It V
/ , , / I I , ~ I ~ ~ ~ Vl, , ~; V~ l i n ~ ~/ I
THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC REFERENCE NOTES 297
Shepherd, John 'The "Meaningv of Music' in ref. no. 6 2 U L . Khan, Inayat TheMysticim of Sound Sufi Movement, 192 3
Shepherd, John 'The Musical Coding of Ideologies' in ref. 8 3. Govinda, Lama Anagarika The W a y of' tkje White Clouds
no. 6 2 Rider & Company (Hutchinson), 1 9 6 6 (p/bk edition
Noebel, David A. The Marxist Minstrels, A Handbook on 197 3)
Communist Subversion of Music American Christian College Polaczek, D. in Suddeutsche Zeitung 1 J Octohcr, 1 9 7 4
Press, Tulsa, Oklahoma, 1 9 7 4 (quoted and translated by Peter Hamel in ref. no. 70)
Lawrence, Vera Brodsky Music For Patriots, Politicians and Kayser, Hans Lehrbuch der Hannonik; Der bGrtnrlr Mcnscb;
Presidents; Harmonies and Discords of the First Hundred Years Akraasis; Hamonia Planetarum and Orphikon
Macmillan, New York, 1 9 7 j Doczi, Gyorgy; The Power of Limits, Shambh;tl;t IJr~l>lica-
Ouseley, Sir W . 'Anecdotes of Indian Music' in The tions USA, 198 1
Oriental Collections 1 and in Tagore, Sourindro Mohun Gardner, Howard 'Do Babies Sing a Universal Sc)rlt:il in
Hindu Music From Various Authors (2nd ed.) Calcutta, Psychology Today 1,f,1 2 , December 1 9 8 1
1882, I, p. 1 6 6 Brown, F.A. 'Persistent Activity Rhythms in the 0yslt.r'
Shankar, Ravi; My Music, My Life Jonathan Cape, 1969 American Journal of Physiology 178, 1 9 J 4, p. 7 1 0
Prophet, Elizabeth Clare 'Sound, Life's Integrating Carson, R. The Sea Around Us Staples Press 1 9 J 1
Phenomenon' in The Coming Rez!olzitiun L?, 1 , Spring 198 1, Hauenschild, C. 'Neue experimentelle Untersuchungcn m m
Summit University Press, USA. This ;irticle is a condensa- .. Problem der L ~ n a ~ e r i o d i z i t aNaturwiss
t' 43, 1 9 J 6 , p. 36 1
tion of a lccture g i v n ~by lili?;~lx-tI~l'soplict in Philadelphia Brown, F.A.; Park, Y.H. and Zeno, J.R. 'Diurnal Variation
in 1980. in Organismic Response to Very Weak Gamma Radiatio~~'
Hamel, P a r r Mich;~c.l'I'l~~ar,,r:lr Mltril- t o !he Self: How t o Nature 21 l , 1 9 6 6 , p. 8 3 0
apprecidle r/)/r/I ' . Y / ) C ~ ~ P I I1'I tt~ll~ii
r ~ ~ ~ (rI iI.;IIIS.
ct Petcr Lemesurier) Takata, M. 'Uber eine neue biologisch wirksame Kompo-
Compton I'r-vss. 1 0 7 X nente der Sonnenstrahlung' Archiv Met. Geophys. Bioklimar.
Tirro, I;I*;LIII<.Iii~,::,,/I I.li.\~i~ly J . M . I1rn1 cYc Sons, 1 9 7 9 486,195 1
Mons;isr;l~,Alicr English 'Music - Soc,~hing,Sedative or Takata, M . and Murasugi, T. 'Flockungszahlstorungen im
S;lv;igc 2' :I~~cricnr~ Mctczlry Scptemhcr I 00 l , p. 4 7 gesunden menschlichcn Serum, kosmoterrestrischer
Mil1;lr. I)ill 'Rhythm and Blues' in T ~Hidory P of Rock I, 2, Sympathismus' Bioklimat. Beibl. 8 17, 1 9 41
O r l ~ i sI'~~l.)lishing, 1982 Stolov, Harold L. and Cameron, A.G.W. Journal of Geo-
M:rslwu) 1;trrdt.r de Mythologie physical Research 69, 1 December, 1964. pp. 4 9 7 5-82
W;II51In, 1,yall Supernature, Hodder & Stoughton, 197 3 Nelson, J.H. 'Planetary Position Effect on Short Wave
)c.nny. H;~ns Cymatics I and II, Rasilius Press AG., Signal Quality' Electrical Et~~cineerhg 7 1, 195 2, p. 4 2 1
Swir~.r.l,l;~nJ Burr, H . S . 'Ttce Port~liti;il and Sunspots' Cycles 234,
C;I~)I.;I. I i l . i t jof The T'ao of Physics Shnmbhala Publications October 1 9 6 4
(LJSA), I:rml;~na(UK), 197 j (;auquclin, M. The Cormic Clocks Peter Owen, 1 9 6 9
Gl;tclrcwski. Andrew 'The Music of Crystals, Plants and l l eirtzler, J.R. 'The Longcast Electromagnetic Waves' .Fcir~~-
Human I3rings'. rcprinted from Radio-Perception September li/ic American April 1 96 5
1 9 j1 Wilson, Charles R. Jorrmal ofGeophysica1 Resedrch 7 4 , A 1 7 t . i l
Murchie, Guy 7 ' 1 .Seven ~ ~ Mysteries oflife: an E.rploration in 1')09, pp. 1812-36
Science and Ybiioiop!y Houghton Mifflin Company, Boston, t l ic-her. Lucille C. Fate 1 4 March 1 9 6 1, p. 1 22
1978 Strphcns, R.W.B.UItrasonics 7, January 1960. pl) 3 0 { l
Kriiger, Wilfred L)rl.c Unizlersum Singt Trier, 19 74 I{ornig, Mary F: and Lamar, Donald 1,. .\X:v rrrr,l 'I'c~lc,\r~~r.
Andrews, Donald The Symphony of Ltfe Lee's Summit, ? X , ()ctohcr 19(34, pp. 2 14-15
Missouri; Unity Books. 1966 ) I I O I (11 i n M cllcs~,Wilfrrd fltlrh ,it/,/ / / v l ) # / , I , ,I/ ( ;{I[/

I~;IIX.I <'Q l::~l>c*r,


l 080
, 1 1 1 ~ THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC REFERENCE NOTES 299

ll Ocsterley, W.O.E.: Introduction to Charles, R.H. (trans.) Isaiah 45 :11


The Rook. ofEnoch S.P.C.K., 1917 Michell, Tohn Cig of Revelation Sphere Books. I97
l . Charles, R.H. (trans.) in ref. no. 104
106. Leadbeater, C.W. ; The Masters and the Path, Theosophical - - -

Publishing House, Adyar, India, 192 1 Revelation 9 :19


107. From information in Prophet, Mark and Elizabeth Climb the Revelation 11 :5
Highest Mountain Book \, Summit University Press, USA, Revelation 12 : 1 l
1972 Revelation 19:13- 1 >
108. Miller, Norman Thomas (composer) The Call of Camelot Revelation 14 5 - 1
(see Further Reading (And Listening!) section of the prcsent
book)
109. Scott, Cyril The Influence of Music on Histoly and Morals
Rider & Company (Hutchinson), 193 3 (updated edition :
ref. no. j)
18

110. Eaglefield Hull, A. Cyril Scott: TbeMan and His Works


Waverly Book Company (undatcd)
1 111. Scott, Cyril The Shadows of .Filenit ilnd the Songs of Yesterday
l Donald Fraser, Liverpool
1~
l
112. Scott, Cyril The Grall~of Eros uttr/ '1%1(' Book of Mournful
Melodies vith Dream '/;.orn tIrr. litirt Donald Fraser,
I
Liverpool
113. His Pupil Thr 1ni11,rtc; .So?ttr I?r/p~r\.~io~~ of' a Great Soul
Routlcdgc k Krg;in I'.rul. 1 9 2 0
114. His Pupil Tkf Initi,~/(* in the Nuer World Routledge &
'l K c p 1';1111. 1 927
l l j. Scott. C y ril 7'he Philosophy of Modwnirn~i~ its Connection
alith MN.~IC Kcgan Paul. Trench, Trubncr Nr (:ompany
116. Hir I'ripil 7'br Initiate in the Dark Cycle, Rourlcdge & Kegan
I':iLll, l OZ2
11 7. S c c r ~ t ,Cyril The Voice ofthe Ancient J.M. W;ctkins, 1910
118. Rcichrnh:~ch, Baron Karl von The Mystrrious Odic Force
( o r i ~I.> ~ ~1 IH44)
x Aquarian Press 1977
119. Rcvcl;itio~l'l :.l
120. Rcvcl.~rionI 2 : 3
12 1. El Mory;t 'l'llr Chela and the Path Summit University Press,
USA, l970
I 122. Prophet, Elizrhcth Clare The Science of Rhythm for the
I Mastety of the Srrcr~dEnergies of Life; Uses and Misuses of the
Word in the Mtisir of East and West (see Furrher Reading
(And Listening!) seciion of the present book)
12 3. Prophet, Mark and Elizabeth The Science of the Spoken Word
(see Further Reading (And Listening!) section of the present
book)
Index
Aalst. JAvan, 58 Bach, Johann Sebastian. 20. Capra, Fritjof, 2 18
Acoustia. 18. 113. 114. 116. 48. 65, 74. 75. 77. 78.92. Caribbean, 189, 190
117, 159.242-246 99, 103. 123. 130. 132. Carlos, Waltcr. 103, 104
Aesthetics. 90. 103. 123. 141-143, 154. 217. 251. Carlylc. Thornas, 227
127.134.144 259,271 Cclrs. 206
Africa, 189-192.204 B&, 26.160 Ccrcmony, 41. 172.21 3
Ahata. 171. 172 Ballad, Guy W. and Edna. Chakra(s), 183, 217. 218.
Akbar. Empcror. 17 3 275 277
Amcrica(4 (scc also. Unitcd Bandura. A.. 147 Chambm, Lnlic A.. 137
States of Ammca), 30. 94. Bax.Amold. 133, 263 Character. 146, 147. 2 13
100. 109. 111. 165-168. Bcatlcs,rhc. 149. 185. 188 Chicago. 192.197
177. 190. 204,265. 273. Bcauty, 83. 87. 127. 128. China. 14-17. 25. 30, 31. 33-
277 133 71, 77, 80. 91. 131. 156.
Awahau. 171.172. 183 Bccthovcn. Ludwig van. 26. 180. 181, 183. 206. 209.
Anarchy (anarchic. 45.48. 52. 74-77. 79. 80. 212,216.276.280
anarchistic), 3 1.40. 59. 9 3. 81. 92. 98. 99. 101. 114. Chladni. Emst. 216, 217.
102,104,108,118 119. 124. 129. 132. 140. 240,246
Andrews. Donald. 220 154,188,216.259.261 Chohans. 217, 218. 262
Anrias. David. 267 Bchaviomkm. m Chopin, Frcderick, 132, 260
Anrhcil. Gcorge, 99 Skinnnianism Cbmmatic scale. 47, 130
Apllo. 280. 28 1 B m y . Chudr. l 8 8 Chrysostom. Saint, 27 1
Aquarius. age of, 29. 126. Brrnstn'n. Lconard. 230 Civilization, 1J-18. 21, 56,
239.284 Bcsant, Annic, 265 59.62.69.160,162,183,
Arabic, 227 B ~ a n s 174
. 187,203,246
Aristotle. 1 9 Big Hum. 244 Colc, Nar King. 200
Ar~nstrong.Louis Daniel. 197. Blakc William. 1 13 Colcman. Ornmc. 202
I 9n Blavatnky. ~ r l c n aP.. 218. &lour. 44. 149.222-227.
Arcrr~sion.2 J 4 219.274.27Y 257.218
A~i.1,204 Rlun, 68. 187-205 Comm, thc. 201
A I h murir, ro in l+, axiom. Bode. Joha~ln.237 Communism. 69. 1 10. 163.
17. 120. 127 Badc's I t w . 237-241 164.204.275
Airrnl rqrral art. 110; astral Boldm. R~ddv.190. 191. 121. 130.131
Computcr(s). 106. 1 1 5. 1 19-
a I I D ~ I ? I I C W ,89. 90; 197
a*tr.tl~ I J I I ~U9, RmJn., Pierrr. 1 1R Confucius. 16.17.34.40.63.
A I I ~ ' I ~(.1~.1111l0~ical).
IB~ 41. Rnhma(n). 173.201 72, 84.87.88. 148
4). 11, 14,1>1.134.233- Britain. 281)-ZR6 Congrcarc. W i a m . 1 77
111 'Rmadhmt. Charln'. 267. Consciousnm, 19, 49, 10. HI).
A~k~nrt~n. ( ;n;rltl. 241 261 96. 99. 122. 124. 144.
AI~IIII(~),1l K 1 ~ ' l Rnrwn. Julicnnc. l l 8 152. IT$. 162. 170. 1 4 .
Ata~t~.~l~tv,94. I 3 I 22 1
A I I I ~ 14
N ~+,, 244 GF.John, 103-112.122. Cnnpct. Ali~r.771)
ArrIt1.1, >'>l 124.129.131.261 Cwtprr 0 . 1 h I r v . ? l l..)If*
Attre~,?!ft Ca1iTnrni.r. 109. 121 C ~ V ~ T ~A. C
. I I~ I~CW0I C
,1 .
Carntmdia. h7 ( ' ~ c d t a d ~ n.'%,
~, 4 1 , .Ir, 114,
.
(:.t~nrrun.A Tr W 7 16 ! l l l ~ <'IO,! l ? , . ' I f # , ,'!l,
I E SECRET POWER OF MUSIC INDEX
.'?-L. 232,233,237 Gamclan of Bali. 26. 101 Hilarion, 271 K~n~alcy.
Waltm. 191 136.112.193 Otis. Johnny. 200
1 :rn nhy. Dnvid. 1 54 Garr. Doug, 1 19. 12 2 Hillagc, Stcvc. 126 K jrr (rock group). 269 Morya. El. 262. 274.271.
r :~~n~lingham. Mcrcc, and Gauquclin. Michcl, 2 3 7 Hillcr. Lejarm, 129 Krtnlrgm. Johanncs. 1 58 286.287 Palnc. rhc~mx\.166. l 6 8
{l.lncctroupe. 1 1 1. 12 1 Gmesls. 207.208.216 Hindemith. Paul. 94. 9T. 261 Knycr. Wifricd. 220 Mozan. Wolfgang Amadcus. Parnm. Clrmcnc. 2 1 0
(:i!wcd Air. 1 19 Gcrmain. Saint. 265. 275 Hippocrates, 156 26.74.77.78.99, 11 3. Patrkar.
P C ~ C O C Pand~t.
~G.lry. 22ti
178
Rung. 17-61 .
Cyclcs. 38. 39 Gibran, Kahlil, 247 Hippolytus. 209 Kr~thurni(also known as Koot 114.121.219.261
Gilbm and SIJUvan. 140 Hoist. Gustav, 41. 133. 262 Hwmi La1 Singh and as the Music: church. 72.73; Pcrlcln. I R7
Dancc. 1 12. 17 5 Ginsberg. AJan, 108 Holy Grail. 17. 262 classical, 73.76. 141.163; P m ~ a I. l h
Master KH). 268. 270.
Da jrcling. 2 17 Gladzcwski. Andrew. 2 19 country. 201 ;curativc Pharlqm, 2 12
Homer, l 16 271
Darwin. Charln. 12 3 Ghstonburv. 281. 282 Hooker. John Lec. 200 d f c m of. 1 16; of dapair, Phcrccratm. I f 4
David. 28 3 87; cffccrs of, 28.63. 198- Ph~Ulps.Jnhn. I 3
Hopkinson. Franas, 166 Idng. Paul Hcnry. 90.91.
Davis. Milcs. 201 'I '4 200; d m n i c . 78.79. P h r t c d S d y . ?h, 136-141
Hnangcbung. 10. 53, 15. 16, I
Dcath chants. 69. 70 170,211 1.1nguage. 148. 119. 176. 102. 132; function of, 46; P h e 1 a . 2 1 8 221.224.2?I
Debtssy. Claudc. 79. 87-90. H d , A. Eaglefield, 263 192.208 hcldcntal. 27 ; mama!, 233
260.263 Golden-age aviliution. 17. Humanism, 29.71.79.99 IjlPlantc, Skip. 121. 122. 146: m o d m pop. 137. P~crcc.Giuscppe.
PI~ZZI. John. 1292 17
Dccrcn, 278, 279 62 Hwton, Aletha C.. 147 131 185 ; motives for. 112-111;
DcLus. Frcdm'ck. 1 3 3 Good (-ncss), 17, 34. 35. 72. 1.1rson. Bob, 137. 138. 141. mystical powcr of. 20.2 1. Paces. 28 4
Diatonic scalc. 92. 109. 179. 73. 91. 119, 125, 127. Idealism. 73-71, 210 25.46; the 'ncw'. 73-1 31. Plancu, 61,231-242
290
230.239 128. 135.111. 164 Imprasionism. 90.9 1 1.cadbcatcr. Charles W . 2 1 1. 143; New Age. 134.262. Plants, 141-145
Didinson. John, 166 Gooseus, Eugmc. 264 216.292 281;objmof, 34.61; Plato, 19, 127, 116, 188,
Indeterminacy. 106. 109. 129
Diodoms. 280 Gmmod. Charles. 48 202
Disncy. Walt. 8 I
Djwal Kul. 2 1 1. 2 56
Grainger. Percy. 263
Grant, Cecil, 200
India. 14.26, 30. 80. 141.
116, 170-186. 209, 256
Infrasonin, 242-246
1--
I.rd Zcppclin. 143
'"C' JTda, 200
Txbar. Franz, 114
of, 13-31. 61, 246:
scalc, 16; of the sphcrcs.
23,225.233-231;styla
Poc, Edgu Man. 89.90 260
Pomcrana, Dr Martin, 2 3 0
Doai. Gyorgy, 228 Grcat Britain, 263. 280-286 Innovation in music. 18. 19, 1.cnin. Vladimir Ilyitch. 16 3 of, 2 1 ; Tones. of the Portnoy. Julius. 23. 122. I 48
Dodge. Charles. l l 9 Grwt White Brothrrhmd. I.i\zt, Franz. 73. 77. 98 twclvc. 18; usc of, l l 6 Preslry, Elvts. 18 1
66, 71. 76. 91. 188
Doolcys, the. 140 2f5.262-265. 266. 271, Instn~rncnts,musical. 44.45. IJoyd. David. 11 1 Mussorgsky. Modest Prokofiev. Scrga. 261
Drum. thc. 44. 1 1 0 274.287.290 4 8 - 6 7 , 71. 100. 101. 118- I rrcicr. Alvin, 1 14 Petrovitch. 80-82.91 Prophet, ELzabeth Clam. 176.
Dvorak. Antonin. 10 1 Gmrcc. 14. 17. 25, !o, no. 122. 137. 141. 172. 189. l.yrin. 194-197 Mysticism of music. 41-46, 274-278
118. 156, 18'7, 181) 212 70.96. 124. 134. 173- Pmphn, Mark L. 274-278
Economy. thc, 46 Grrrn. Rrnny. 20.' I~ltcrval.;.42.61-67.92. 137, Maharishi Mahah Yogi. 12 5 171. 259 Pythagoras. 14, 116. 206.
Eddy, Mary Bakcr. 27 5 (;rcpry ~ I Nyr5.1.
I ?OH 208.214.219.234.248
170. 183. 220. 228.229. Mamas and thc Papas. the.
Egypt. 14.25. 30. 80. 116. Grilli~l~t.
l'x111,105 2 39.277 153
11. Namc(s). 176,177 Pythagoras' comma.248-2 14
209-215.216 Gro~sr'~I~~(tronurp ot h1n11, ,uI~I I I I I I I I I . 24.
I ~ ~l~7 ~2 , Nelson, J.H.. 231 Pyrhagorean(s). 2 3. 2 19. 260.
Mantra.211.213
Einstcin. Albm. 2 1 . 7h. t l h~nrrtam~. 4'). 62 I~tv~aation. 42. 213. 285. Mary. Mothrr of Jaus. 27 1 Ncuhaus. Max. 1 18 273
Elgar. Edward. 126. I 3 i K.11 VXI. 44
(~11Iik. 7H7 Man. Karl. 90. 162 Ncw Age, 121. 126, 127.
Elohim. 2 I 3 Iir1.111d.John, 133 132 Qucchua Maya. 206,207
Mastcrs (of the Grcat Whitc ..-
Emotion.81, 110, 127. 117. '1 I.II):, fu\tirt Moreward'. 26 l I*.~acro~~. Imnud. 129 Bmthcrhood). 261.267. N m Jerusalem. 283
141-149
England (-~th).40. I 14 . I 34
Hi11c.y. Rill (;tnd thc Comcts). Ivn. C:lmrla. 94-96 271 Ncwman. Pncr. 140 --. - -
201 Materialism, 13.28-3 1.77- Ncw Orleans, 190-192. 197 hchmaninov. Serge. 1 3 3
Ennch. 2 1 1 Hall. Robm. 1 70 87.116,117.124.l2l Nijinsky. Vaslav. 96 Raga. the. 172. 177. 179-183
J w m , Mlck. 120. 153. 114
E q ~ a rrnlprrnmrnl,
l 6 5 , 66. Halpm. Srcphcn. 12 1 Ia~iary.Chnstophcr. 118 M.ithcws. Max. 129 Nictccnth ccntury. 73. 76 Ravcl. Maurice, 91. 260
211 Hamrl. Pctcr. 178,227,260 J ~ p l n67
. Nocbcl. David A.. 161.290 Rays, the scvm. 2 17
Mrck. Nadada von. 8 4
Eqliinnxn. 74. 5 I. 286, 287 Handcl. Gcorgc Frdcrick. 77, 1.111.27.68.96.98, 103- Meditation. 40. 61. 106. 12 1, Norm (of music), 16. 33. 40. Realism in music. 80-83.91.
E<kirnm. 149 80.99. 132, 140. 110. 43.47.60.61.92. 129. 101
105. 127. 187-204. 273 170.182.262.276
Evil. 17. 18. 11. 7 4 . ~ 1 )102,
. 268 Jmny. Hnns. 216-218.240 141.242 Reductionism. l 3.28, 1 16.
Mclody. 14. 11. 19, 38.43,
l f f . IfiJ.212.21Z.?HO. Hanson. Howard. 1 11. 202 Jrnrho. 17. 18 82.91.93.97. 134, 173. Novali3. I I 8 124 '

282 Harmony, 14. 1 1. 23. 38, 39. Jmr, Trim. I 2 0 Number (and nummlogy): Reich, Steve. l l 0
179.212
Evolution. 19 41.77.80.91, 93.97, onc.47.60. hl.212.213: Rcichmbach. Baron van. 272
Jnu* Chr~st.33. 14. 71. 89. Mrrll~lrln.Ychudi. 14. 122
Existcnrialivn. LO? 134. 173. 177, 179. 206. two. 47.14; thrcc. 48.60: Retallack. Dorothy, 14!.14f
209.21 5.254. 271, 282 Mrw~p,tam~a. 17
Exprmsionirm, 90, 0 I 214.234 1r~h11 of the Crors. Salnt, 2 1 M r ~ r m ~(-ship),
rr 274. 276 fnrs. 14; five, 47.60.61. Rcvolutioo 71-87. 102. I I 4.
Hamis. Wynonie. 200 I(lhn thc Bclovcd. Satnt. 201. Mrw~.krn.Ollvlcr. 261 212,213:rolm. 18. 13. 127,131,188
Fonla~ilr.Walt Disney I-laucr, Josd, 26 1 21 5,231,283 M~ltcll.Inhn, 67,281-283. 60.61.209.212.228; Rhythm, 14. 19. 26.41. 7fa.
production. R I
Fiat(s). 2 13
Haydn, Joscph, 74.77. 99,
110.114
Johnson. Robm. 195 .'96. riRht, 48; rwclvc. 5 l. 17,
61. 106. 197.240. 249-
94, 100. 134. 1 37.1 3').
113. 173. 179. 181. IH?.
Joshua, 17. 18 Millcr. Nnrntnn llomas, 262
Ficldcn. Thomas. 122. I r 2 Hmling. 92. 126, 151-1 19 Mind. l 4 1 148.22j 2 12; thirtccn, 54.2 13 ; 189. 194, IQ', 701. I ' l l
Fifth. pdcct. 61.92.93. 248 IIrlinc. Corinnc. 88. 273. Kayscr. Ham, 227 Minuky. Mirrvin. 124 twcnty-four. 106 Rigidity (in rnur~~ JI
Flctcher. Andrew. 19 280 dcvclopmrnr). l H. 1'1. 7 1
Kcrouac*Jack, 8 1.108 Mit~<rrclr.135, 116, 273
Flosdorf. Earl W., 1 3 7 H rrhcrt. Georgc. 2 7 1 Odic force. 272 77
Key. 41. 76. 81, 91. 93 MOAT, 11-77.61-63
Flutc. the. 44. 226 'Hcrbcrt. Lyall'. 267 hlonrnrrat. Alicc. 199 Olivcr, Joc 'King', 197 Rilcy. Terry. 104, l(\'>
Khan, Ali Akbar, 17 7
Franklin, Bcnjamin, 166 Hrrman. Woody, 97 h'..-~tvrrdi. Claudio. 156 OM, 23. 37. 170-172, 174. Rimlky-K~brr~h,~~, N ~ h l r l ,H~I ~ .
Khan. Imrat. 177
Freedom, 166. 168. 202 Hicbcr, L u d e C., 244 Khan. Vilayat. 177 Ric~ral,1 4 , '17. I H')
Frcrmasonry. 16 1. 168 Hierarchy. 271. 278. 287. ONCE pnup. I 1 1 H t ~ 11111*1t
k , 1111, 10.1, 1 3 1 .
Khatcharunan, h a m , 1 3 3
Frcy. A.H.. 247 288 Orff. Carl. 261 147. 1411. 141, 147. 111.
King. B B . 200
+f\'t THE SECRET POWER OF MUSIC
I nn. I 90.202 'Solomon. 283.284 Ultrasonics, 242-246
Icctrrit h. Hclma, 271 Solmim. 46,14.11.286.287 Unitcd States of America (JM
I{r,rrich. Nicholas, 96. 271 Sophodes, 99 also. America), 197.262
Hogrn. Shony, 97 Sound. 17-20.23-29. 3741. Upanishads. the. 121.174,
H~rllingStones, 98. 113, 114 221,231
Rnmc (-an). 30. 116, 189 Uricl, 2 13
Romig. Donald and M a y , Ur-song. 230. 231
241 232.236,241
Rosiauaanism. 260 Spcech, 120, 173-175. 213 Vanilla Fudge. 144
Ross. Brim, 261 Stcbbing. Lioncl, 292 Varkc. Edgar. 79.99-102.
Routh, Eranas, 101. 108. Stcphcns, R.W.B.. 241 l l2
126,127 Stockhausm. Karlhcinz. 1 12- ~ a i g h a nW&-, ~ a p h .
Rusria(n). 81. M, 97. 163. 114,131,261 124,133,263
164,271 Stolov. Harold L.. 231 Vclvct Underground, 104
Stonehcngc. 28 1 Vmdi, Giuseppe, 126
Sachs, Curt, 181 Stravinsky. Igor. 94.96-98. Vihrationfs). 22-24. 28. 37.
Sadducca. 236 269
Shakespek. W i a m . 146, Subomik, Morton. 102,103
233,234 Sultan. Gary, 2 19
Sak. Lee. 139 Summit Lighrhousc, the, 274-
Samud. Book of, 116 279,287,290.291 Virdcn. PM,l62
Same, Jean-Paul. 102 SW&, D.T.. 261 Visbnu, 173
Satic, Enc. 260 Synthcsizcr(s). 102. 103. Vogt. Douglas. 2 19
Saundcrs. Michael. 140 111,130 Voltairc. Francuis Mane
Sayancyev. 260 Aronet dc. 261
Schombag, Amold, 91-94, Tai chi, 47. 48. 60 Voodoo. 110.111.189.190
121.126.261 Tartchanoff. Dr. 138
Scbubm, Franz, 27 1 Tchaikovsky. Pctcr Ilyitih. W;t~ncr.Richard, 71-77.98.
S c h u . Robm, 268 82.87, 188 U?. 134.114
Scun, Cyril. 24.21.133. T h e ~ o ~ h i cSociny.
rl 2 1 1. Wal5h. Stephm. 122
110. 161.194.263-271 2 16.270.274.292 W.~ltrr.Rmno. 229
Scriab'in. Alcxandcr. 260 Ihtrapy, mtlric!1n Hcalinl: Wnrrrn. Dr Joscph. 168
Saawn, John. l20 Thomrnn. Vlrgil. 101 W.lshinpon, Georgc, 161
Serialism. 91-94, 1 1 3 Thnrcxu. Hcnry David. 29 Wrlrrrn, Anton von. 261
Scx Pistols. 31. 12 1 'Ihorh (Hcrmn Tri.imc*rm*). W ~ I I I IHcrbm,
I ~ , 291
Shanknr. Ravi. 1 7 1. 1 77 50.211 W ~ l l i a ~Hank.
n ~ ~ 201
Shrn~.13 Tihcr. 226 W I ~ \ I )Charles.
II, 243
Shcphcrd, John, 161, 163 Timbre. 44.41. 179 Wi\hart, Trcvor. 162
Shiva. 1 7 3 Tilnothn~sof Milctus, 188 Witchrrafr. 11. 88
5host;ku;itch. Dmitri. 83. Tippet, Michacl. 1 33 Wrrcd. rhc. 49. 12. 171, 214.
101,133 Titius. Joham D.. 2 37 221-227.231.254; the
Sihclius, Jean. 101, 133. 154 Tonality, 76, 91-91, 162 apnken. 274-286
Sidard rcalc. 2 I I Tones: in music, 3 5, 60, 102.
Sinatm. Frank. 26 124,141, 178, 226; five,
Singh, T.C.. 147 16.224; the twclvc
Sirim. 1 12 Cosmic. 22. 37. 38.41 Y q and Yin. 38.47.48,
Skinnn. B.F..114. 117. l 30, Trinity, 60.128.173.222 223,283
162 Trotsky. Leon, 163 Yarru. Petcr. 101.107
Skinnerianitm (hrhavir~urim). Troubadours. 13 1 Yogrs. 173. 171, 177
111-118 Trumholt, Sophus. 242 Young. LMontc, 109
Small. Chrinophcr. I OR. 1 29. T d ( s ) . 22. 34. 73. 80. 127.
160 128.110.203 Zm Buddhism. 108.109,
Society. 15.66.136-168. Tudor. David. 109 124.261
174 Twcnticth ccnnuy. 2428, 19,
Soft Machine. 104 187-204

You might also like